Click on this text to see PAWNS IN THE GAME in PDF format

 
 423703
 
William Guy Carr, Pawns in the Game (1958)
 
Pawns in the Game
 

Chapter 1
English Revolution
French Revolution
Napoleon
American Revolution
Monetary Manipulation
Russian Revolution
Political Intrigue
Versailles
Stalin
Spanish Revolution
World War Two
Present Dangers

INTRODUCTION
If what I reveal surprises and shocks the
reader, please don’t develop an inferiority
complex because I am frank to admit that
although I have worked since 1911, trying to
find out why the Human Race can’t live in
peace and enjoy the bounties and blessing
God provides for our use and benefit in such
abundance ? It was 1950 before I penetrated
the secret that the wars and revolutions which
scourge our lives, and the chaotic conditions
that prevail, are nothing more or less than the
effects of the continuing Luciferian
conspiracy. It started in that part of the
universe we call heaven when Lucifer
challenged The Right of God to exercise
supreme authority. The Holy Scriptures tell
us how the Luciferian conspiracy was
transferred to this world in the Garden of
Eden. Until I realized that our struggle is not
with flesh and blood, but with the spiritual
forces of darkness who control all those in
high places on this earth (Eph. 6:12) the
pieces of evidence gathered all over this world
just didn’t fit together and make sense. (I am
not ashamed to admit that the “Bible” provided the “Key” which enabled me to obtain an
answer to the question quoted above.)

Very few people seem able to appreciate that Lucifer is the brightest and most intelligent of the
heavenly host and, because he is a pure spirit, he is indestructible. The scriptures tell us his
power is such that he caused one-third of the most intelligent of the heavenly host to defect from
God, and join him, because he claimed God’s Plan for the rule of the universe is weak and
impractical because it is based on the premise that lesser beings can be taught to know, love,
and wish to serve him voluntarily out of respect for his own infinite perfections. The Luciferian
ideology states might is right. It claims beings of proven superior intelligence have the right to
rule those less gifted because the masses don’t know what is best for them. The Luciferian
ideology is what we call totalitarianism to-day.

http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_00.html (1 of 13)5.4.2006 12:12:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game
The Old Testament is simply the history of how Satan became prince of the world, and caused
our first parents to defect from God. It relates how the synagogue of Satan was established on
this earth, it tells how it has worked since to prevent God’s Plan for the rule of the universe
being established on this earth. Christ came to earth when the conspiracy reached the stage that,
to use his own words, Satan controlled all those in high places. He exposed the synagogue of
Satan (Rev. 2:9; 3:9;) he denounced those who belonged to it as sons of the devil (Lucifer),
whom he castigated as the father of lies (John 8:44) and the prince of deceit (2 Cor. 11:14). He
was specific in his statement that those who comprised the synagogue of Satan were those who
called themselves Jews, but were not, and did lie (Rev. 2:9; 3:9). He identified the Money-
Changers (Bankers) the Scribes, and the Pharisees as the Illuminati of his day. What so many
people seem to forget, is the fact that Christ came on earth to release us from the bonds of Satan
with which we were being bound tighter and tighter as the years rolled by. Christ gave us the
solution to our problem when he told us we must go forth and teach the truth, regarding this
conspiracy (John 8. 31:59;), to all people of all nations. He promised that if we did this,
knowledge of the truth would set us free (Matt. 28:19;). The Luciferian Conspiracy has
developed until it is in its semi-final stage (Matt. 24: 15:34;), simply because we have failed to
put the mandate Christ gave us into effect.
In 1784 “An Act of God” placed the Bavarian government in possession of evidence which
proved the existence of the continuing Luciferian Conspiracy. Adam Weishaupt, a jesuit-
trained professor of canon law, defected from christianity, and embraced the Luciferian
ideology while teaching in Ingoldstadt University. In 1770 the money lenders (who had
recently organized the House of Rothschild), retained him to revise and modernize the age-old
‘protocols’ designed to give the Synagogue of Satan ultimate world domination so they can
impose the Luciferian ideology upon what remains of the Human Race, after the final social
cataclysm, by use of satanic despotism. Weishaupt completed his task May 1st, 1776.
The plan required the destruction of ALL existing governments and religions. This objective
was to be reached by dividing the masses, whom he termed Goyim (meaning human cattle) into
opposing camps in ever increasing numbers on political, racial, social, economic and other
issues. The opposing sides were then to be armed and an ‘incident’ provided which would
cause them to fight and weaken themselves as they destroyed National Governments and
Religious Institutions.
In 1776 Weishaupt organized the Illuminati to put the plot into execution. The word Illuminati
is derived from Lucifer, and means ‘holders of the light’. Using the lie that his objective was to
bring about a one world government to enable men with proven mental ability to govern the
world he recruited about two thousand followers. These included the most intelligent men in
the field of Arts and Letters : Education : the sciences, finance and industry. He then
established Lodges of the Grand Orient to be their secret headquarters.
Weishaupt’s revised plan required his Illuminati to do the following things to help them
accomplish their purpose. (1) Use monetary and sex bribery to obtain control of people already
occupying positions in high places in the various levels of ALL governments and other fields of
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_00.html (2 of 13)5.4.2006 12:12:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game
human endeavour. Once an influential person had fallen for the lies, deceits, and temptations of
the Illuminati they were to be held in bondage by application of political and other forms of
blackmail and threats of financial ruin, public exposure, and physical harm and even death to
themselves and their loved ones. (2) Illuminati on the faculties of colleges and universities were
to recommend students possessing exceptional mental ability belonging to well bred families
with international leanings for special training in internationalism.
This training was to be provided by granting scholarships to those selected. They were to be
educated (indoctrinated) into accepting the ‘Idea’ that only a One World Government can put an
end to re curring wars and tribulations. They were to be at first persuaded and then convinced
that men of special ability and brains had the RIGHT to rule those less gifted, because the Goyim
(masses of the people) don’t know what is best for them physically, mentally and spiritually.
To-day three such special schools are located in Gordonstoun in Scotland; Salem in Germany;
and Anavryta in Greece. Prince Phillip, the husband of Queen Elizabeth of England, was
educated at Gordonstoun at the instigation of Lord Louis Mountbatten, his Uncle, who became
Britain’s Admiral of the Fleet after World War Two ended.
(3) Influential people trapped into coming under the control of the Illuminati, and students who
had been specially educated and trained were to be used as agentur and placed behind the scenes
of ALL governments as “Experts” and “Specialists” so they could advise the top executives to
adopt policies which would in the long run, serve the secret plans of the One Worlders and bring
about the ultimate destruction of the governments and religions they were elected or appointed
to serve.
(4) The Illuminati were to obtain control of the Press and all other agencies which distribute
information to the public. News and information was to be slanted so that the Goyim would
come to believe that a One World Government is the ONLY solution to our many and varied
problems.
Because Britain and France were the two greatest powers at the end of the 18th Century,
Weishaupt ordered the Illuminati to foment the Colonial Wars to weaken the British Empire and
organize the Great Revolution to weaken the French Empire. The latter he scheduled should
start in 1789.
A German author named Zwack put Weishaupt’s revised version of the age-old conspiracy into
book form and named it “Einige Original-Scripten.” In 1784 a copy of this document was sent
to the Illuminists Weishaupt had delegated to foment the French revolution. The courier was
struck dead by lightning as he rode through Ratisbon on his way from Frankfurt to Paris. The
police found the subversive documents on his body and turned them over to the proper
government authorities.
After careful study of the plot the Bavarian Government ordered the police to raid Weishaupt’s
newly organized lodges of the Grand Orient and the homes of some of his most influential
associates, in cluding the castle of Baron Bassus-in-Sandersdorf. Additional evidence thus
obtained convinced the authorities the documents were a genuine copy of a conspiracy by which
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_00.html (3 of 13)5.4.2006 12:12:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game
the synagogue of Satan, who controlled the Illuminati AT THE TOP , planned to use wars and
revolutions to bring about the establishment of one kind or another of a One World
Government, the powers of which they intended to usurp as soon as it was established.
In 1785, the Bavarian Government outlawed the Illuminati and closed the lodges of the Grand
Orient. In 1786, they published the details of the conspiracy. The English title is “The Original
Writtings of the Order and Sect of The Illuminati”. Copies of the conspiracy were sent to the
heads of church and state. The power of the Illuminati was so great that this warning was
ignored, as were the warnings Christ had given the world.
The Illuminati went underground. Weishaupt instructed his Illuminists to infiltrate into the
lodges of Blue Masonry and form a secret society within secret societies.
Only masons who proved themselves Internationalists, and those whose conduct proved they
had defected from God, are initiated into the Illuminati. Thus the conspirators used the cloak of
philanthropy to hide their revolutionary and subversive activities. In order to infiltrate into
masonic lodges in Britain Illuminists invited John Robison over to Europe. He was a high
degree mason in the Scottish Rite : Professor of natural philosophy at Edinburgh University;
and Secretary of The Royal Society of Edinburgh. John Robison did not fall for the lie that the
objective of the one worlders was to form a benevolent dictatorship. He kept his reactions to
himself however, and was entrusted with a copy of Weishaupt’s Revised Conspiracy for study
and safe keeping.
Because the heads of church and state in France were advised to ignore the warnings given them
the revolution broke out in 1789. In order to alert other governments to their danger, in 1798
John Robison published a book, entitled “Proof of a Conspiracy to Destroy All Governments
and Religions”. [1] But his warnings have been ignored, as were the others.
Thomas Jefferson had become a student of Weishaupt’s. He was one of his strongest defenders
when he was outlawed by his government. Jefferson infiltrated the Illuminati into the newly
organized Lodges of The Scottish Rite in New England. Realizing this information will shock
many Americans I wish to record the following facts :
In 1789, John Robison warned masonic leaders the Illuminati had infiltrated into their lodges.
On July 19th, 1798, David Pappen, President of Harvard University, issued the same warning to
the graduating class and lectured them on the influence illuminism was having on American
politics and religion.
John Quincy Adams had organized the New England Masonic Lodges. In 1800 he decided to
oppose Jefferson for the presidency. He wrote three letters to Colonel Wm. L. Stone exposing
how Jefferson was using masonic lodges for subversive purposes. The information contained in
these letters is credited with winning Adams the election. The letters are in Rittenburg Square
Library, in Philadelphia.
*// From any high-school history book Mr. Carr could have learned who ran and who was selected in the election of
1800, when was Thomas Jefferson president, and when was J.Q. Adams president. [So much for so much ...] What
basis is there to say that Jefferson was a student of Weishaupt’s ideas ? Jefferson was not statist, was not
internationalist. When did Jefferson defend Weishaupt or his ideas; that one letter to Bishop James Madison (January
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_00.html (4 of 13)5.4.2006 12:12:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game
31, 1800) which Mr. Carr probably hasn't even read ?
INSIGNIA OF THE ORDER OF
ILLUMINATI THAT ILLUMINIST
JEFFERSON MADE the REVERSE of U.
S. SEAL *// What is he talking about
(again) ? What had Jefferson to do with
the Greal Seal of the U.S. ?
The above insignia of the Order of
Illuminati was adopted by Weishaupt at the
time he founded the Order, on May 1,
1776. It is that event that is memorialized
by the MDCCLXXVI at the base of the
pyramid, and not the date of the signing of
the Declaration of Independence, as the
uninformed have supposed.
The significance of the design is as
follows : the pyramid represents the
conspiracy for destruction of the Catholic
(Universal Christian) Church, and
establishment of a “One World”, or UN dictatorship, the “secret” of the Order; the eye radiating in
all directions, is the “all-spying eye” that symbolizes the terroristic, Gestapo-like, espionage
agency that Weishaupt set up under the name of “Insinuating Brethren”, to guard the “secret” of
the Order and to terrorize the populace into acceptance of its rule. This “Ogpu” had its first
workout in the Reign of Terror of the French Revolution, which it was Instrumental in organizing.
It is a source of amazement that the electorate tolerates the continuance of use of this insignia as
part of the Great Seal of the U.S.
“A NNUIT C OEPTIS ” means “our enterprise (conspiracy) has been crowned with success”. Below,
“N OVUS O RDO S ECLORUM ” explains the nature of the enterprise : and it means “a New Social
Order”, or “New Deal”.*// Load of crap. It means new order of the ages (starting from 1776).
It should be noted that this insignia acquired Masonic significance only after merger of that Order
with Order of Illuminati at the Congress of Wilhelmsbad, in 1782.
Benjamin Franklin, John Adams (Roosevelt kinsman) and Thomas Jefferson, ardent Illuminist,
proposed the above as the reverse of the seal, on the face of which was the eagle symbol, to
Congress, which adopted it on June 20, 1782. On adoption of the Constitution, Congress decreed,
by Act of September 15, 1789, its retention as seal of the United States. It is stated however, by
the State Department in its latest publication on the subject (2860), that “the reverse has never
been cut and used as a seal”, and that only the observe bearing the eagle symbol has been used as
official seal and coat of arms. It first was published on the left of the reverse of the dollar bills at
the beginning of the New Deal, 1933 by order of President F.D. Roosevelt.
What is the meaning of the publication at the outset of the New Deal of this “Gestapo” symbol that
had been so carefully suppressed up to that date that few Americana knew of its existence, other
than as a Masonic symbol ?
It can only mean that with the advent of the New Deal the Illuminist-Socialist-Communist
conspirators, followers of Professor Weishaupt, regarded their efforts as beginning to be crowned
with success.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_00.html (5 of 13)5.4.2006 12:12:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game
In effect this seal proclaims to the One Worlders that the entire power of the U.S. Government is
now controlled by the Illuminati’s agentur and is persuaded or forced to adopt policies which
further the secret plans of the conspirators to undermine and destroy it together with the remaining
governments of the so-called ‘Free World’, ALL existing religions, etc., etc., so that the Synagogue
of Satan will be able to usurp the powers of the first world government to be established and then
impose a Luciferian totalitarian dictatorship upon what remains of the Human Race.
In 1826 Captain Wm. Morgan decided it was his duty to inform other Masons and the general
public what the TRUTH is regarding the Illuminati, their secret plans and intended purpose. The
Illuminati obtained the services of Richard Howard, an English Illuminist, to carry out their
sentence “That Morgan be EXECUTED as a traitor. Captain Morgan was warned of his danger.
He tried to escape to Canada but Howard caught up with him near the border. He was murdered
near the Niagara Gorge. Research proved that one Avery Allyn made a sworn affidavit in the
City of New York to the effect that he heard Richard Howard report to a meeting of Knights
Templars in St. John’s Hall, New York, how he had ‘Executed’ Morgan. He told how
arrangements had then been made to ship Howard back to England.
Very few people to-day know that general disapproval and disgust over this incident caused
nearly 40% of Masons belonging to the Northern Jurisdiction of the United States to secede. I
have copies of minutes of a meeting held to discuss this particular matter. The power of those
who direct the Luciferian conspiracy against God and Man can be realized by the ability of their
agentur to prevent such outstanding events of history being taught in our public schools.
In 1829, the Illuminati held a meeting in New York which was addressed by a British Illuminist
named Wright. Those in attendance were informed that the Illuminati intended to unite the
Nihilist and Atheist groups with all other subversive organizations into an international
organization to be known as Communism. This destructive force was to be used to enable the
Illuminati to foment future wars and revolutions. Clinton Roosevelt (a direct ancestor of F.D.
R.) Horace Greeley, and Chas. Dana were appointed a committee to raise funds for this new
venture. The fund they raised financed Karl Marx and Engels when they wrote “Das Capital”
and “The Communist Manifesto” in Soho, England.
In 1830, Weishaupt died. He carried the deception that the Illuminati was dead to his own death-
bed where, to convince his spiritual advisers, he pretended to repent and rejoin the Church.
According to Weishaupt’s revised version of the Age-Old conspiracy the Illuminati were to
organize, finance, direct and control ALL international organizations and groups by working
their agentur into executive positions AT THE TOP . Thus it was that while Karl Marx was writing
the Communist Manifesto under direction of one group of Illuminists, Professor Karl Ritter of
Frankfurt University was writing the antithesis under direction of another group, so that those
who direct the conspiracy AT THE TOP could use the differences in these two ideologies to start
dividing larger and larger numbers of the Human Race into opposing camps so they could be
armed and then made to fight and destroy each other, together with their political and religious
institutions. The work Ritter started was continued by the German so-called philosopher
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_00.html (6 of 13)5.4.2006 12:12:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game
Friedrich Wilhelm Nietzsche (1844-1900) who founded Nietzscheism.
Nietzscheism was developed into Fascism and later into Naziism and used to enable the agentur
of the Illuminati to foment World Wars One and Two.
In 1834 the Italian revolutionary leader Gussepi Mazzini was selected by the Illuminati to be
director of their revolutionary programme throughout the world. He held this post until he died
in 1872.
In 1840, General Albert Pike was brought under the influence of Mazzini because he became a
disgruntled officer when President Jefferson Davis disbanded his auxiliary Indian troops on the
grounds they had committed atrocities under the cloak of legitimate warfare. Pike accepted the
idea of a one world government and ultimately became head of the Luciferian Priesthood.
Between 1859, and 1871, he worked out the details of a military blue-print, for three world
wars, and three major revolutions which he considered would further the conspiracy to its final
stage during the twentieth century.
Most of his work was done in the 13 room mansion, he built in Little Rock, Arkansas, in 1840.
When the Illuminati, and the lodges of the Grand Orient, became suspect, because of Mazzini’s
revolutionary activities in Europe, Pike organized the New and Reformed Palladian Rite. He
established three supreme councils; one in Charleston, S.C., another in Rome, Italy and another
in Berlin, Germany. He had Mazzini establish twenty three subordinate councils in strategic
locations throughout the world. These have been the secret headquarters of the world
revolutionary movement ever since. Long before Marconi invented wireless (Radio), the
scientists who were of the Illuminati had made it possible for Pike and the Heads of his councils
to communicate secretly. It was the discovery of this secret that enabled intelligence officers to
understand how apparently unrelated ‘incidents’ took place simultaneously throughout the
world which aggravated a situation and developed into a war or revolution.
Pike’s plan was as simple as it has proved effective. He required that Communism, Naziism,
Political Zionism, and other International movements be organized and used to foment the three
global wars and three major revolutions. The first world war was to be fought so as to enable
the Illuminati to overthrow the powers of the Tzars in Russia and turn that country into the
stronghold of Atheistic-Communism. The differences stirred up by agentur of the Illuminati
between the British and German Empires were to be used to foment this war. After the war
ended, Communism was to be built up and used to destroy other governments and weaken
religions.
World War Two, was to be fomented by using the differences between Fascists and Political
Zionists. This war was to be fought so that Naziism would be destroyed and the power of
Political Zionism increased so that the sovereign state of Israel could be established in
Palestine. During world war two International Communism was to be built up until it equalled
in strength that of united Christendom. At this point it was to be contained and kept in check
until required for the final social cataclysm. Can any informed person deny Roosevelt and
Churchill did not put this policy into effect ?
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_00.html (7 of 13)5.4.2006 12:12:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game
World War Three is to be fomented by using the differences the agentur of the Illuminati stir up
between Political Zionists and the leaders of the Moslem world. The war is to be directed in
such a manner that Islam (the Arab World including Mohammedanism) and Political Zionism
(including the State of Israel) will destroy themselves while at the same time the remaining
nations, once more divided against each other on this issue, will be forced to fight themselves
into a state of complete exhaustion physically, mentally, spiritually and economically. Can any
unbiased and reasoning person deny that the intrigue now going on in the Near, Middle, and Far
East isn’t designed to accomplish this devilish purpose ?
On August 15, 1871, Pike told Mazzini that after World War Three is ended, those who aspire
to undisputed world domination will provoke the greatest social cataclysm the world has ever
known. We quote his own written words (taken from the letter catalogued in the British
Museum Library, London, Eng.) :
“We shall unleash the Nihilists and Atheists, and we shall provoke a formidable social cataclysm
which in all its horror will show clearly to the nations the effect of absolute atheism, origin of
savagery and of the most bloody turmoil. Then everywhere, the citizens, obliged to defend
themselves against the world minority of revolutionaries, will exterminate those destroyers of
civilization, and the multitude, disillusioned with christianity, whose deistic spirits will be from that
moment without compass (direction), anxious for an ideal, but without knowing where to render its
adoration, will receive the true light through the universal manifestation of the pure doctrine of
Lucifer brought finally out in the public view, a manifestation which will result from the general
reactionary movement which will follow the destruction of christianity and atheism, both
conquered and exterminated at the same time.”
When Mazzini died in 1872, Pike made another Italian revolutionary leader, named Adriano
Lemmi, his successor. Lemmi was later succeeded by Lenin and Trotsky. The revolutionary
activities of all these men were financed by British, French, German, and American
international bankers. The reader must remember that the International Bankers of to-day, like
the Money-Changers of Christ’s day, are only tools or agents of the Illuminati.
While the general public has been lead to believe that Communism is a movement of the
workers (soviets) to destroy Capitalism, Pawns In The Game and The Red Fog Over America
prove that both British and American Intelligence Officers obtained authentic documentary
evidence which proved that internationalist capitalists operating through their international
banking houses had financed both sides in every war and revolution fought since 1776. Those
who to-day comprise The Synagogue of Satan direct our governments, whom they hold in
usury, to fight the wars and revolutions so they further Pike’s plans to bring the world to that
stage of the conspiracy when Atheistic-Communism and the whole of Christendom can be
forced into an all-out war within each remaining nation as well as on an international scale.
There is plenty of documentary evidence to prove that Pike, like Weishaupt, was head of the
Luciferian Priesthood in his day. In addition to the letter he wrote Mazzini in 1871, another he
wrote to the heads of his Palladian Councils July 14th, 1889 fell into hands other than intended.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_00.html (8 of 13)5.4.2006 12:12:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game
It was written to explain the Luciferian dogma, concerning worship of Satan and worship of
Lucifer. In it, he said in part :
“That which we say to the crowd is ‘we worship God’. But it is the God that one worships without
superstition. The religion should be, by all us initiates of the high degrees, maintained in the purity
of the Luciferian doctrine ... Yes ! Lucifer is God. And unfortunately Adonay (the name given by
Luciferians to the God we worship) is God also ... for the absolute can only exist as two gods.
Thus, the doctrine of Satanism is a heresy : and the true, and pure philosophical religion is the
belief in Lucifer, the equal of Adonay : but Lucifer, God of Light, and God of Good, is struggling
for humanity against Adonay the God of Darkness and Evil.”
Propaganda put out by those who direct the Luciferian conspiracy has caused the general public
to believe all who oppose Christianity are Atheists. This is a deliberate lie circulated to hide the
secret plans of the High Priests of the Luciferian Creed who direct the Synagogue of Satan so
that the human race still find it impossible to establish on this earth God’s plan for the rule of
the universe, as he explained it to our first parents in the Garden of Eden, told in Genesis. The
High Priests of the Luciferian Creed work from the darkness. They remain behind the scenes.
They keep their identify and true purpose secret, even from the vast majority of those they
deceive into doing their will and furthering their secret plans and ambitions. They know that the
final success of their conspiracy to usurp the powers of world government depends upon their
ability to keep their identity and TRUE purpose secret until no cunning or power can prevent
them crowning THEIR leader King-despot of the entire world. The Holy Scriptures predicted
what Weishaupt and Pike planned would be put into effect until the Spiritual forces of evil
controlled this earth. Rev. 20 tells us how, after these things we relate have come to pass, Satan
will be bound for a thousand years. What the term a thousand years means in measure of time
as we know it I don’t pretend to know. As far as I am concerned study of the Luciferian
conspiracy, in the light of knowledge contained in the Holy Scriptures, has convinced me that
the binding of Satan and the containment of Satanic forces upon this earth can be brought about
more speedily if the WHOLE TRUTH concerning the existence of the continuing Luciferian
conspiracy is made known as quickly as possible to ALL the people of ALL remaining nations.
Research dug up letters from Mazzini which revealed how the High Priests of the Luciferian
Creed keep their identity and true purpose secret. In a letter Mazzini wrote to his revolutionary
associate, Dr. Breidenstine, only a few years before he died he said “We form an association of
brothers in all points of the globe. We wish to break every yoke. Yet, there is one unseen that
can be hardly felt, yet it weighs on us. Whence comes it ? Where is it ? No one knows ... or at
least no one tells. This association is secret even to us the veterans of secret societies.”
In 1925 his Eminence Cardinal Caro y Rodriguez, Archbishop of Santiago, Chile, published a
book “The Mystery of Freemasonry Unveiled”, to expose how the Illuminati, the Satanists, and
the Luciferians had imposed a secret society upon a secret society. He produces a great deal of
documentary evidence to prove that not even 32nd and 33rd degree Masons know what goes on
in the Lodges of the Grand Orient and Pike’s New and Reformed Palladian Rite and the
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_00.html (9 of 13)5.4.2006 12:12:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game
affiliated Lodges of Adoption in which female members of the conspiracy are initiated. On
page 108 he quotes the authority Margiotta to prove that before Pike selected Lemmi to succeed
Mazzini as Director of the World Revolutionary Movement Lemmi was a rabid and confirmed
Satanist. But after he had been selected he was initiated into the Luciferian ideology.
The fact that the High Priests of the Luciferian Creed on this earth introduced the worship of
Satan in the lower degrees of both Grand Orient Lodges and the councils of the Palladian Rite
and then initiated selected individuals to the FULL SECRET that Lucifer is God the equal of
Adonay, has puzzled many historians and research workers. The Holy Scriptures mention
Lucifer only a few times — Isa. 14; Luke 10:18; Rev. 9:1-11. The Luciferian Doctrine
however states definitely that Lucifer led the Heavenly revolt; that Satan is the oldest son of
God (Adonay) and the brother of St. Michael who defeated the Luciferian conspiracy in
Heaven. The Luciferian teachings also claim that St. Michael came on earth in the person of
Jesus Christ to try to repeat what he had done in Heaven ... and failed. Because Lucifer, Satan,
the Devil — call him what you may — is the father of lies, it would appear that those spiritual
forces of darkness deceive as many as possible so called intellectuals into doing their will here
as they did in heaven.
Without getting into controversy it should be easy for the average Christian to realize that there
are TWO supernatural powers. One we refer to as God to whom the Scriptures give many
names; and the other, the Devil, who also seems to have many names. The important thing to
remember is that according to Revelations there is to be a final judgement. Satan will break or
be released from the bonds with which he is bound for a thousand years. He will again create
chaos on this earth. Then Christ will intervene on behalf of the elect and God will divide the
Sheep from the Goats. We are told that those who defect from God will be ruled in utter chaos
and confusion by Lucifer, Satan, or the Devil, for all eternity and will hate their ruler,
themselves, and each other because they will realize they were deceived into defecting from
God and losing his love and friendship for ever.
Once a person reads Pawns In The Game and The Red Fog Over America it will be easy to
realize that the struggle going on is NOT of a worldly or temporal nature. It originated in that
part of the universe we designate “The Celestial World”; its purpose is to win the souls of men
away from God Almighty.
Learned theologians have stated that Lucifer, Satan, or call the head of the Forces of Evil simply
“The Devil” knows he did wrong and knows that he was wrong. He is a pure spirit and
therefore indestructible. Knowing he is wrong he still is determined to drag as many souls as
possible into hell with him to share his misery. This being a fact our duty is clear : We have to
make known the TRUTH in this regard to as many others as quickly as possible so they can avoid
the snares and pit-falls set by those who serve the devil’s purpose and penetrate the lies and
deceits of those who wander about the world seeking the ruin of souls. Wars and revolutions
give the devil his greatest harvests of human souls, because “so many are called and so few are
chosen” Matt. 20; 16; 22: 14. We so often hear what is going on in the world to-day referred to
as “A war for the minds of men”. That is only a half truth and is worse than a whole lie.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_00.html (10 of 13)5.4.2006 12:12:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game
Weishaupt’s plot requires :
1. Abolition of ALL ordered national governments.
2. Abolition of inheritance.
3. Abolition of private property.
4. Abolition of patriotism.
5. Abolition of the individual home and family life as the cell from which all civilizations have
stemmed.
6. Abolition of ALL religions established and existing so that the Luciferian ideology of
totalitarianism may be imposed on mankind.
*// To which one of these points did Thomas Jefferson subscribe ?
The headquarters of the conspiracy in the late 1700s was in Frankfurt, Germany, where the
House of Rothschild had been established and linked together other international financiers who
had literally “Sold their souls to the devil”. After the Bavarian Government’s exposure in 1786,
the High Priests of the Luciferian Creed established their headquarters in Switzerland; since
World War Two the headquarters have been in the Harold Pratt Building New York. The
Rockefellers have replaced the Rothschilds as far as the manipulation of finances is concerned.
In the final phase of the conspiracy the government will consist of the king-despot, the
Synagogue of Satan, and a few millionaires, economists, and scientists who have proved their
devotion to the Luciferian cause. All others are to be integrated into a vast conglomeration of
mongrelized humanity, by artificial insemination practiced on an international scale. On pages
49-51 “The impact of Science on Society” Bertrand Russell says that ultimately less than 30
percent of the female population and 5 percent of the male population will be used for breeding
purposes. Reproduction will be strictly limited to the type and numbers required to fill the
needs of the state.
Because the rulings of the courts are so much in the public mind to-day, I will conclude my
introduction by quoting from a lecture given to the members of the Grand Orient Lodge of
Paris, France, by a top executive of Pike’s Palladian Rite, at the turn of the present century. He
said :
“Under our influence the execution of the laws of the Goyim has been reduced to a minimum. The
prestige of the law has been exploded by the liberal interpretations introduced into this sphere. In
the most important and fundamental affairs and questions judges decide as we dictate to them : see
matters in the light where with we enfold them for the administration of the Goyim, of course
through persons who are our tools though we do not appear to have anything in common with
them. Even Senators and the higher administration accept our council...”
This should explain the “Little Rock” incident, which took place a half century later.
Can any thinking person deny that the conspiracy as revised by Weishaupt in the latter 1700s,
and the plans drawn up by Pike in the latter 1800s, haven’t matured exactly as intended ? The
empires of Russia and Germany have been destroyed. Those of Britain and France reduced to
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_00.html (11 of 13)5.4.2006 12:12:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game
third class powers. The crowned heads have fallen like over-ripe fruit. The world’s population
has twice been divided into opposing camps as the result of propaganda put out by the
Illuminati. Two world wars have seen christians kill each other off efficiently by the tens of
millions without any person engaged having the slightest personal animosity towards the other.
Two of the major revolutions, those of Russia and China, are accomplished facts. Communism
has been built up until it is equal in strength to the whole of christendom. Intrigue now going
on in the East and Middle East is fomenting World War Three. After that, unless stopped right
now by sheer weight of informed public opinion, will come the final social cataclysm; then
absolute physical, mental, and spiritual slavery will follow.
Can any informed person deny that Communism is being tolerated in the remaining so-called
Free countries. The British special branch of intelligence; the Canadian R.C.M.P ., and the U.S. F.
B.I. could arrest every Communist leaders within twenty four hours of the order being given, but
they are not allowed to act. W HY ? The answer is simple. Communism is being ‘Contained’
on the national and international levels of government on the ‘ ADVICE ’ of the Illuminati’s
agentur who give a great many utterly unconvincing excuses for the present policy of Britain,
Canada, and the United States towards national and international Communism. If the F.B.I. or
the R.C.M.P. act then the Judges of the Supreme Courts of both countries find reason in law why
those arrested should be set free. Such action would be utterly rediculous if Communism wasn’t
being contained for use in the final social cataclysm.
Is it not time Christians woke up to the realization of their danger ? Is it not time parents
refused to allow their children to be used as cannon fodder to serve the Luciferian cause ? Is it
not time we became “Doers” of the WORD of God instead of “Hearers” only ?
The Federation of Christian Laymen, of which I have the honor to be president, has made
available all the knowledge obtained to date dealing with the various aspects of the conspiracy.
We have published Pawns In The Game and Red Fog Over America in book form, and other
pamphlets. We keep those who have read our books up to date concerning the progress of the
conspiracy by publishing a monthly news letter, entitled News Behind The News. Our
predictions of forthcoming events are based on our knowledge of the continuing conspiracy.
They have come true to such an amazing extent that we have aroused the interest of thinking
people throughout the world. We invite you to join us. Make yourselves fully acquainted with
the various aspects of the conspiracy, then pass that knowledge on to others. Do this and the
power of informed public opinion will become the greatest power on earth.
I urge you to organize Christian Civic Leagues or similar groups. Use them as study groups.
Use them to elect men who are loyal citizens. But before you select a candidate for public
office make sure he is fully informed regarding all aspects of the International Conspiracy on
the municipal, state, and federal levels of government. All one worlders won’t serve the
Synagogue of Satan, knowingly. It is our duty to make them acquainted with the truth.
Christian civic leagues should be non-partisan, and non-denominational. Their purpose should
be to put God back into politics so we may establish government in accordance with His Plan
for the rule of the universe as explained to us in The Scriptures and by God’s only xxxxxxxx
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_00.html (12 of 13)5.4.2006 12:12:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game
Son Jesus Christ. Only then will his will be done here as it is in heaven. In my humble opinion,
not until this is done will God intervene on our behalf and the words of The Lord’s Prayer be
accomplished.
Signed :
William Guy C ARR
Clearwater Fla. Oct. 13th, 1958.
____________________________
1 It was printed in London for T. Madell Jr. and W. Davies, Strand; and W. Creeck, Edinburgh. Copies are in
museums and two are privately owned by friends of the author in America.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_00.html (13 of 13)5.4.2006 12:12:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 1
 
 
Guy Carr
Pawns in the Game
CHAPTER ONE
The World Revolutionary Movement
(W.R.M.)
In order to understand the Causes in the past, which have produced the Effects we experience to-
day, especially in regard to the unsatisfactory state of national and international affairs, history
must be studied because history does repeat itself. History repeats itself because there has been
perfect continuity of purpose in the struggle which has been going on since the beginning of
Time between the forces of Good and Evil to decide whether the Rule of Almighty God, shall
prevail, or whether the world shall literally go to the Devil. The issue is just as simple as that.
It is a fact that both the forces for Good, and the forces for Evil, have been divided and split into
factions. These factions often oppose each other in an effort to reach a common goal — this
makes a study of the subject complicated. These differences in opinion have been produced by
propaganda which is used more often for spreading lies and half-truths, than it is used as a
medium for telling the plain unvarnished truth regarding any given event or subject.
War-mongers have used propaganda to divide human beings into opposing camps on political,
social, economic and religious issues so they could stir them up into such a state of
emotionalism that they will fight and kill each other. In order to discover the causes which have
produced the effects we experience to-day all available evidence must be studied carefully.
Truths must be separated from falsehoods, and fiction from fact. Past events must be studied to
see how they have affected and influenced conditions existing to-day.
The human race is divided into two main camps as far as religion is concerned. Those in one
camp believe in the existence of a God. Those in the other camp deny the existence of a
Supreme Being of any kind. This fact is of major importance, because it will be proved that all
wars and revolutions have been the result of one group or another trying to force their ideologies
upon the people of the entire world.
The conception of GOD varies with different sects. Theism teaches that God is a personal being
and the author and ruler of the universe. Pantheism identifies God with the universe but not as a
personal Being. Pantheists believe in the doctrine of the universal Presence of the Divine Spirit
in nature. A kind of Pantheism has found its way into many religious and philosophical systems
— Buddhism and Hinduism both partake of this doctrine. Belief in a personal God includes
belief in a celestial world, belief in the soul and life in the celestial world after the death of our
mortal bodies. People who believe in a personal God must of necessity believe in the existence
of Satan — a personal Devil.
A study of comparative religions proves that, as far as it is possible to probe back, even the
members of isolated tribes have always had a religious instinct which caused them to discuss
and ponder the questions : “Why were we born ?”. “For what purpose do we live ?” “What
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_01.html (1 of 11)5.4.2006 12:13:04William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 1
ends do we serve ?”. “Whither do we go when we die ?” Even the most backward tribes of
Central Africa and Australia seem to have had no doubts regarding the existence of God, a
spiritual world and another existence for their own souls, after the death of their mortal bodies.
A study of comparative religions also indicates that most, if not all, religions (which teach belief
in a Supreme Being) started out on a more or less uniformly high level in which the worship and
love of Almighty God, respect for our elders and parents, love for our neighbours, i.e.
benefactors, and the offering of prayers for deceased relatives and friends formed the basic
principle. Evil men, actuated by motives of selfishness and greed and the desire for power,
caused nearly all religions to deteriorate to the levels we find at them to-day. Some religions
deteriorated as far as having priests sacrifice human beings as their offerings to God. Even
Christianity, which is one of the most recent religions, deteriorated. Christianity has been split
up into many factions (denominations) and it would require a great deal of imagination to
picture the vast majority, who profess to be Christians today, as true soldiers, or followers, of
Jesus Christ.
Generally speaking, Christianity has deteriorated in regard to the practice of good works. This
becomes a matter of major importance when we study the struggle going on between the forces
of Good and Evil to-day, because the practice of good works created neighbourliness, and
brought about unity in the Christian Fold. The real definition of the word ‘neighbour’ is a
person who has proved himself your benefactor; a person upon whom you can rely; a person
who, you are certain, wouldn’t do you any harm under any circumstances; that man or woman is
your neighbour. The Scriptures tell us we must love our neighbour as ourselves for God’s sake.
The only way to make good neighbours is to perform good works unselfishly. Lack of
individual good works means lack of unity and lack of the proper community spirit. To-day we
have adopted the cold cheque-book type of doing good works. We leave the performance to
professional Social Welfare Workers. This has justified the use of the term “As cold as
professional charity”. It is well to remember that even government Social Security legislation
does not relieve individuals of the duties of neighbourliness. Prayer without good works
availeth a man nothing. In Christian weakness and disunity lies the atheistic strength.
For one reason or another many Christian denominations are fast losing their hold upon the
youth of the so-called Free Nations. Each person lost to the Christian belief usually turns to
secularism and often ends up as a “Fellow Traveller” in one or another of the atheistic
ideologies of Communism or Naziism. [1]
The vast majority of professed Christians are not real “Soldiers of Jesus Christ” whereas every
card-bearing member of either the Communist or Nazi parties must swear to give unlimited
obedience to the leaders; to devote every waking hour to the furtherance of the Cause; and
contribute one tenth of his, or her, income, towards financing the party’s activities.
While Christians are hopelessly divided into approximately 400 denominations, Communists
and Nazis are all solidly united as anti-Christians. A continuation of this state of affairs cannot
help but enable the leaders of one or another atheistic group winning world domination. When
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_01.html (2 of 11)5.4.2006 12:13:04William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 1
they do so they will enslave body, soul and mind, all who refuse to accept their heathen
ideology. The Illuminati will then impose the despotism of Satan.
There is a great similarity in the beliefs of those who worship a Supreme Being, regarding the
origin of Man. The majority believe that “The Great Father” peopled this world for the purpose
of giving the less culpable of those who followed Lucifer during the heavenly revolution
another chance to decide, of their own free will, whether they will accept God’s authority, and
give Him unlimited obedience or, literally, go to the Devil. It is such beliefs that sustain such
despised sects as Doukhobors in their passive resistance to man-made laws which they consider
are contrary to God’s Divine Laws. It is well to remember that the name Lucifer means Holder
of the Light — a very brilliant being, the “Brightest” of the Angels. Notwithstanding these
special gifts and privileges, he revolted against the supremacy of Almighty God.
Most people, other than Atheists and Darwinists, accept the story of the Creation. There are
however, a great many different opinions regarding the story of Adam and Eve and the Garden
of Eden. Many students of Comparative Religion argue that it is likely God created many
worlds, and many Adams and Eves, and placed them in locations where they could reproduce
their kind and populate the planets upon which they lived.
The fact that human beings are placed on this earth by a method and process of birth, which
prevents them having any knowledge of a previous existence, fits in with this theory. All we
know, regarding the period before Creation, is what has been revealed to us as told in the
Scriptures. It really doesn’t matter a great deal if there was one or many Adams and Eves. The
important thing to remember is the fact that all human beings have been given a Free Will and
must decide for themselves whether they believe in a God and a Devil, or if they believe in the
atheistic-materialistic ideology. Each and every human being must make up his, or her, mind
one way or the other. If a person believes there is a God and a Devil, then that person must
decide which he is going to serve. An Atheist, if he joins either of the totalitarian ideologies
serves the Party and the State. He must give unlimited obedience to the head of the Party and
the State. The penalty for diversion is suffering, imprisonment, and possibly death.
Belief in the existence of God automatically includes belief in supernaturally Good and Evil
Spirits which can influence men’s minds for Good or Evil purposes. It is the struggle going on
for the possession of men’s souls that causes the conditions which prevail upon this earth to-
day. The power of the Devil was dramatically emphasized when he tempted Christ himself,
while he was in the desert preparing himself for his ministry.
Atheists, on the other hand, do not believe in the existence of Supernatural Beings. They argue
that God has never been proved to exist. There are many groups of Atheists. True
Communists, Grand Orient Masons, Free Thinkers, Members of the League of the Godless,
Illuminatists, Nihilists, Anarchists, True Nazi, [2] and the Mafia. Many Godless people
subscribe to various forms of Secularism, even if they fight shy of becoming active in the
Atheistic Communists and Nazi groups. [3]
Most Atheists base their beliefs on the principle that there is only one reality — MATTER —
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_01.html (3 of 11)5.4.2006 12:13:04William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 1
That the blind forces of MATTER (sometimes referred to as ENERGY ) evolve into vegetable,
animal, and man. They deny the existence of a soul, and the possibility of life, in another world,
after the death of our mortal bodies.
Evidence will be produced to prove that Modern Communism was organized in the year 1773
by a group of International Money-Barons who have used it since, as their manual of action, to
further their secret plans to bring about a Totalitarian Godless State. Lenin made this clear in
his book Left Wing Communism. On page 53, he said : “Our theory (Communism) is not a
dogma (Settled Doctrine); it is a manual of action”. Many modern leaders have said and done
the same things as Lucifer did during the heavenly revolution. There is no appreciable
difference between Red and Black Atheism. The only difference is in the plans used by the
opposing leaders to ultimately win undisputed control of the world’s resources, and bring into
being their ideas for a Totalitarian, Godless, Dictatorship.
Karl Marx (1818-1883) was a German of Jewish descent. He was expelled from Germany, and
afterwards from France, for his revolutionary activities. He was given asylum in England. In
1848 he published the Communist Manifesto. Marx admitted this long range plan, to turn the
world into an International of Soviet Socialist Republics, may take centuries to accomplish.
Karl Ritter (1779-1859) was a German Professor of History and Geopolitical science. He wrote
the anti-thesis to Karl Marx’s Communist Manifesto. He also drew up a plan by which he
maintained the Aryan Race could first dominate Europe and then the entire world. Certain
Atheistic leaders of the Aryan Group adopted Karl Ritter’s plan. They organized Naziism to
further their secret ambitions to obtain ultimate control of the World and turn it into a Godless
State, under their conception of a totalitarian dictatorship. This small group of men knew they
must either join up with, or destroy, the power and influence of the International Bankers. It is
doubtful if more than a mere handful of the top level leaders of the Communist and Fascist
movements know their organizations are being used to further the secret ambitions of the
Illuminati which are the High Priests of Satanism.
According to the leaders of both atheistic groups the State must be Supreme. This being so the
Head of the State is God on Earth. This belief brings into actual practice the deification of man.
Much more is generally known about Karl Marx and Communism than about Karl Ritter and
Naziism. Ritter was for many years Professor of History at Frankfort University, Germany.
Afterwards he taught Geography at the Berlin University. In educational circles he was
considered one of the greatest authorities on History, Geography, and Geopolitical Science.
Because the “Aims and Objects” of the Leaders of the Aryan Party have always been kept
secret, Karl Ritter’s connection with the Leaders and Naziism is very little known. Intelligence
Officers connected with the British Government unearthed his connection with the Aryan War
Lords when studying Political Economy; Geopolitical Science; and Comparative Religions, in
German universities. [4] This information was passed on to the proper authorities but, as so often
happens, political leaders and diplomats, either failed to realize the significance of what they
were told or wished to ignore it. [5]
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_01.html (4 of 11)5.4.2006 12:13:04William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 1
Karl Ritter’s study of History convinced him that a very small group of wealthy, and influential,
international Bankers, who gave allegiance to no country but meddled in the affairs of all, had,
in 1773 organized Grand Orient Freemasonry for the purpose of using The World Revolutionary
Movement to further their secret ambitions. Their Long Range Plan was for their group to gain
ultimate control of the wealth, natural resources, and man-power of the entire world. Their
ultimate objective was to form a Totalitarian Dictatorship based on their theories of Atheistic
dialectical and historical materialism. Ritter claimed that most of, if not all, the International
Bankers were of Jewish descent, regardless of whether or not they practiced the Jewish faith.
In his anti-thesis to Karl Marx’s Communist Manifesto he dealt with the dangers to be faced if
this group of men were allowed to continue to control and direct the policies of International
Communism. He offered the German Aryan War-Lords very concrete, and practical,
suggestions for defeating the conspiracy of the International Money-Barons. [6] Professor Ritter
gave the Aryan War-Lords an alternative Long Range Plan by which they could gain ultimate
control of the world’s resources for the Aryan races.
To offset the plans of the International Money-Barons, Karl Ritter advised the Leaders of the
Aryan Groups to organize Naziism and use Fascism i.e. National Socialism, as their manual of
action to further their secret ambitions, for world conquest. Professor Ritter also pointed out
that because the International Bankers intended to use all phases of Semitism to further their
plans, the Aryan Leaders should use all phases of anti-semitism to further their Cause.
Karl Ritter’s Long Range Plan for ultimate world conquest included the following suggestions :
1. The subjugation of all European countries by Germany. To achieve this end he suggested the
German military Junkers be encouraged and assisted to obtain control of the Government so they
could engage in a series of Military Adventures, interspersed with economic wars. The objective
being to weaken the economy and manpower of the European nations to be subjugated. [7] Karl
Ritter stated that it was NOT absolutely essential, to the success of his Long Range Plan, that each
Military Adventure end in a clear cut victory, provided the other nations involved, were left in such
a weakened condition that their recovery economically; and in strength of man-power, took longer
than that of Germany. Karl Ritter stressed the importance of convincing the German people that
they were physically and mentally superior to the Semitic races. From this thought Aryan
propagandists developed the idea of The German Master Race. They did this to counter the
Propaganda of the International Bankers which claimed the Semitic Race is to be God’s Chosen
People and Divinely chosen to inherit the earth. The Aryan leaders promulgated the doctrine that
“Their Race” was The Master Race on this Earth. Thus millions of people were divided into
opposing camps.
2. Karl Ritter recommended a financial policy which would prevent the International Bankers
obtaining control of the economy of Germany, and her Satellite States as they had obtained
economic control in England, France, and America.
3. He recommended the organization of a Nazi 5th Column to counteract the Communist
Underground organization. Its objective was to persuade the upper and middle classes, of the
countries they planned to subjugate, to accept Fascism as the only antidote to Communism.
German 5th Columnists were to condition people in other countries to welcome the German Armies
as their Military Protectors against threatened Communist aggression. Karl Ritter warned the
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_01.html (5 of 11)5.4.2006 12:13:04William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 1
leaders of the Aryan Group that a Military Invasion of another country should NEVER be undertaken
until the 5th Column, and propaganda machines, had thoroughly paved the way, and convinced the
majority of the people to accept their armed intervention as the act of Saviours or Crusaders, and
not as aggressors. [8]
4. Karl Ritter cold-bloodedly recommended the total destruction of Communism and the
extermination of the Jewish Race as essential to obtaining ultimate control of International Affairs
by the Aryan Leaders. He justified this drastic stipulation on the facts of history which he claimed
proved Communism was being used by the International Jewish Bankers to further their own
selfish materialistic ambitions.
There were many more items making up the over-all Long Range Plan but in this chapter it is
sufficient to produce enough evidence to unlock the door, behind which the Secret plans of two
small groups of totalitarian-minded, atheistic-materialistic men were hidden. The study of
Comparative Religions, Geo-political Science, and Political Economy, and years of intensive
research, revealed the truth that many millions of human beings have been used as Pawns in the
Game by the leaders of the two atheistic totalitarian-minded groups who will continue playing
their hideous game of International Chess until one or the other is eliminated. Evidence will be
produced to show how this game has been conducted in the past, and what moves are likely to
be made in the near future, to enable one group to win the game.
The followers of all religions, that teach the existence of God, and life in a hereafter, believe in
the love and worship of God, and charity towards all men of good will. Sincere believers will
suffer any hardship, and make any sacrifice, in order to ensure their eternal salvation. The
followers of Atheism are taught to HATE all who refuse to accept their materialistic creed. The
determination of the leaders of both Atheist groups, to achieve world domination, permits them
to conceive the most diabolical conspiracies, and perpetrate all kinds of crime, from individual
assassinations to genocide. They foment wars in order to weaken nations they still have to
subjugate.
The study of Comparative Religions shows also that Communism and Naziism are utterly
incompatible with all religions that believe in the existence of an Almighty God. Experience,
and history, proves that those who believe in God, and those who deny His existence, are in
such contradiction that neither can survive the triumph of the other. Atheistic leaders in
subjugated countries may, for a time, tolerate religions which teach belief in God but they only
allow the priests to function on the social periphery. They take good care that the priests do not
have the opportunity to influence the social and political behaviour of their congregations.
Evidence proves that the ULTIMATE objective of both major Atheistic Ideologies is to obliterate
from the minds of mankind, by persecution, and a systematically applied program of continuous
brain-washing, all knowledge of a Supreme Being; the existence of a soul; and hope of life in
a hereafter. These being facts, any talk of co-existence is either utter non-sense or propaganda.
The trouble today is the continuation of the Heavenly Revolution. If God has placed human
beings on this earth so they may know Him; love Him; and serve Him in this life in order to be
happy with Him forever in the next world, then it is logical to reason that the only way in which
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_01.html (6 of 11)5.4.2006 12:13:04William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 1
Lucifer could hope to win back the souls in dispute would be to inoculate them with the doctrine
of Atheistic-Materialism.
Undoubtedly many people will ask “But how could the Devil inoculate the minds of men with
Atheistic and other evil ideas ?” That question can be answered in this way, If HUMAN Beings
call establish radio, and television stations, from which one individual can influence millions of
others by broadcasting his opinions on any given subject over the invisible air-waves then why
shouldn’t it be possible for CELESTIAL Beings to broadcast their messages to us ? No brain
specialist has dared to deny that in the brain of each individual there is some kind of mysterious
receiving set. Every hour of every day Human Beings are saying “I was inspired to do this”, or
“I was tempted to do that”. Thoughts, be they good or evil, must originate somewhere, from
some “cause”, and be transmitted to the human brain. The body is only the instrument which
puts the dominating thought for “Good” or for “Evil” into effect.
One fundamental fact which all people, who believe in the existence of God, must never forget
is this :— If we are on this earth for a period of trial; If we have been given our Free Will, it is
to enable us to decide whether we want to go to God or want to go to the Devil. Therefore, if
the Devil did not have the opportunity to influence the minds of men there would be no test.
If Almighty God sent his prophets and His son Jesus Christ, to show us clearly what is Good
and what is Evil, then why wouldn’t the Devil send his false Christs and his false prophets to try
and prove to us that Evil is Good and that Good is Evil ?
The simplest way to understand what is going on in the world to-day is to study the events of
History as the moves being made in a continuing game of International Chess ... The leaders of
the Illuminati have divided the people of the world into two main camps. They used Kings and
Queens; Bishops and Knights; and the masses of the world’s population, as pieces in their
games. The ruthless policy of the leaders is to consider all other human beings as EXPENDABLE ,
providing the sacrifice of a Major piece, or a million Pawns, places them a move nearer their
ultimate totalitarian goal. The despotism of Satan.
Professor Ritter is reported to have said the present phase of this game started in the Counting
House of Amschel Mayer Bauer alias Rothschild, located at Frankfort-on-the-Main in Germany,
when thirteen Gold and Silversmiths [9] decided they must remove all the Crowned Heads of
Europe; destroy all existing governments; and eliminate all organized religions, before they
could secure absolute control of the wealth, natural resources, and man-power of the entire
world, and establish a Satanic Despotism. Dialectical and historical materialism was to be used
to further these plans.
Strange though it may seem, history will prove that leaders of both the Semitic and Anti-Semitic
groups have on occasion joined forces to fight against a common enemy such as the British
Empire or the Christian religion. And while the masses fought, the Illuminati, who constitute
the Secret Power behind the World Revolutionary Movements, jockeyed for the best position
from which they would derive the greatest future benefit.
*// Are you trying to equate the British Empire with the Christian religion ? Are you trying to tell me that evil empire
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_01.html (7 of 11)5.4.2006 12:13:04William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 1
UK -- the empire of the international money barons -- is good, as good as the Christian religion ?
The leaders of both Communism and Naziism have crossed, and doublecrossed each other, but
it is doubtful if many of the leaders realized, before it was too late, that even they were only
tools controlled by the Agentur of the Illuminati who use all that is evil to further their ends.
When the Secret Powers heading either group, even suspect one of their “tools” know too much,
they ordered him Liquidated. Evidence will be produced to prove that the leaders of these two
groups of totalitarian-minded men have instigated many individual assassinations, and caused
many revolutions and wars, in which tens of millions of Human Beings have been killed, while
millions have been wounded and rendered homeless. It is difficult to discover a military leader
who can justify the decision to drop atomic bombs on Hiroshima or Nagasaki where, in the
twinkling of an eye, approximately 100,000 people were killed, and twice the number seriously
injured. The Japanese Military forces had already been defeated. Surrender was only a matter
of hours or days away when this diabolical act was perpetrated. The only logical conclusion is
that The Secret Powers, who, it will be proved, influence and control the policies of most
national Governments, decided that this most modern of all lethal weapons had to be
demonstrated to remind Stalin what would happen if he became to obnoxious. This is the only
excuse which provides even the resemblance of justification for such an outrage against
humanity.
But the atomic bomb, and the hydrogen bomb, are no longer the world’s most lethal weapons.
Nerve Gas, now being stockpiled by both Communist and Non-Communist nations, is capable
of wiping out all living creatures in a country, a city, or a town. The extent of destruction of all
human life in a nation can be adjusted to the military and economic requirements of those who
decide to use Nerve Gas to reach their goal. Nerve Gas is said to be highly concentrated
fluorine in its gaseous form. It is the most penetrating and deadly gas ever discovered by man.
It is colourless, odourless, tasteless and economical to produce. One single drop, even when
heavily diluted with water or oil will, if it comes m contact with a living body, cause paralysis
of the breathing apparatus, and death. In a few minutes it will penetrate even through rubber
clothing such as is worn by firemen when on duty. Nerve Gas will not seriously damage
inanimate objects.
Within a few days after the Nerve Gas had been applied it would be safe for the invading force
to enter the contaminated areas again. They would be areas of the Dead, but all buildings and
machinery would be intact. The only known antidote to Nerve Gas is the drug Atropine. To be
effective it must be injected into the veins of the victims immediately, and repeatedly, after they
have been contaminated. This means of defence is not practical for densely populated areas.
Both Communist and Anti-Communist governments have Nerve Gas. The knowledge that both
sides have this Gas in quantity may cause both sides to hesitate to use it. But it is a well known
fact that desperate, and ruthless, men will resort to any extremes to gain their objectives. And,
as will be proved, they have never hesitated to sacrifice millions upon millions of human beings
— men, women and children, if by doing so they advance themselves only one step nearer to
their ultimate goal.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_01.html (8 of 11)5.4.2006 12:13:04William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 1
We may well ask the question “How is the struggle now going on upon this earth going to
end ?” It is doubtful if there is a single living being who hasn’t asked this question. It is a
question young married couples anxiously ask each other when they debate if they should allow
their connubial bliss to bring more children into this hate-dominated world. The most complete
answer is to be found in the Gospel of Saint Matthew, Chapter XXIV, verses 15 to 34 — At that
time Jesus said to His disciples : “When you shall see the abomination of desolation, which was
spoken of by Daniel the Prophet, standing in the Holy Place (he that readeth let him
understand), then they that are in Judea, let them flee to the mountains; and he that is on the
house top let him not come down to take anything out of his house; and he that is in the field let
him not go back to get his coat. And woe to them that are with child, and give suck in those
days. But pray that your flight be not in winter or on the sabbath; for there shall be great
tribulation such as hath not been from the beginning of the world until now, neither shall be;
and unless those days shall be shortened NO FLESH SHOULD BE SAVED ; but for the sake of the
elect, those days shall be shortened.”
Christ then proceeded to deal with the problem of the false leaders and the anti-Christs who he
foretold would use propaganda to befuddle men’s thinking. He said : “Then if any man shall
say to you Lo, here is Christ or There do not believe him; for there shall arise false Christs and
false prophets who shall show great signs and wonders in so much as to deceive (if possible)
even the elect. Behold I have told it to you beforehand. If therefore they shall say to you
Behold, he is in the desert go ye not out. Behold he is in the closet believe it not. For as
lightning cometh out of the East and appeareth even unto the West, so shall also the coming of
the Son of Man be. Wheresoever the body shall be, there shall the eagles be gathered together.
And immediately after the tribulations of those days, the sun shall be darkened, and the moon
shall not give her light, and the stars shall be moved; and the powers of heavens shall be shaken.
[10] And then shall appear the sign of the Son of Man in heaven, and then shall the tribes of the
earth mourn; and they shall see the Son of Man coming in the clouds of heaven, with much
power and majesty; and He shall send His angels with a trumpet, and a great sound and they
shall gather together His elect from the four winds, from the farthest part of the heavens to the
utmost bounds of them. And from the fig tree learn this parable; when the branch thereof is
now tender, and the leaves come forth, you know that summer is nigh. So you also, when you
shall see all these things, know ye that it is nigh even at the doors. Amen I say to you that this
generation shall not pass till all these things shall be done.”
The branch is indeed now tender, many leaves have budded out, we need only one more war in
which both sides use atomic and hydrogen bombs, and nerve gas, and we shall have inflicted
upon ourselves the abominations of desolation which shall reduce the human race to such
chaotic conditions that Divine intervention will be our only salvation. To-day it is common
practice for people, especially those who act willfully or unwillfully, as the agents of the Evil
Powers, to blame God for the sorry mess in which we find ourselves. The intelligent person
will admit that God cannot be blamed. He gave us our Free Will, He gave us the
Commandments as our guide. He gave us Christ as a teacher and living example. If we
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_01.html (9 of 11)5.4.2006 12:13:04William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 1
obstinately refuse to accept the teachings and example of Christ; if we also refuse to obey the
Commandments of God, how can we reasonably blame any agency other than ourselves for
allowing the Forces of Evil to gain supremacy in this World of Ours ? Edmund Burke once
wrote : “All that is necessary for the triumph of Evil, is that good men do nothing.” He wrote a
great truth.
The study of comparative religions, in relation to the conditions we are experiencing in the
world to-day, brings the unbiased student to the conclusion that those human beings who
worship God, and believe in another life after the death of our mortal bodies, enjoy a religion of
Love and Hope. Atheism is a religion of Hate and blackest Despair. And yet, never before in
the history of the world, has such a determined effort been put forth to introduce secularism into
our lives as since 1846, when C.J. Holyoake, C. Bradlaugh, and others asserted their opinion
“ THAT HUMAN INTEREST SHOULD BE LIMITED TO CONCERNS OF THE PRESENT LIFE .” These
advocates of secularism were the predecessors of the most recent flock of false Christs and false
Prophets — Karl Marx, Karl Ritter, Lenin, Stalin, Hitler and Mussolini. These men did deceive
millions upon millions of people by working great signs and wonders. They deceived many
professing Christians who should have known better.
______________________
1 The terms Nazi & Naziism are used to indicate and identify the extremist members of the “Right Wing” parties
who gave allegiance and loyalty to the totalitarian minded Aryan War Lords who plotted to use Fascism to further
their secret plans and ambitions in exactly the same way as the “International Group” consisting of bankers,
monopolists and certain politicians have used Communism and all other groups “Left” of centre to further their
secret plane and Totalitarian ambitions.
2 The terms “True Communist” and “True Nazi” are used to identify the leaders and agents of the two totalitarian
ideologies who have been initiated into the Satanic ritual of Illuminism in Grand Orient Freemasonry or the Pagan
Aryan Rites used by German Nazi Military Grand Orient Lodges.
3 The reader must realize the difference between Naziism and Fascism because, contrary to what anti-Fascist
propaganda has led so many people to believe, the Fascist Movement, as started in Italy in 1919, was intended to be
a Christian Crusade to combat the Atheistic ideology of Karl Marx and to support “Nationalism” as against
“Internationalism” as planned by the leaders of both German Nazi War Lords and the International Bankers,
Industrialists and politicians.
4 The Aryan Nazi War Lords must not be confused with the more moderate Junkers who were young Germans
who took military training to protect what they considered “Germany’s National” Political and economic rights as
threatened by International minded groups.
5 One of Britain’s greatest Intelligence Officers is Godfather to my daughter Eileen. I have known him
intimately since October 1914. I served with him, on occasions, in both World Wars. He and I both investigated
this angle of Naziism independently but when we checked our evidence we found we were very close to complete
agreement.
6 The term ‘International Money-Barons’ is used to define the International Group of men who control
International Banking, Industries, and Trade and Commerce. They are the men who have used Communism to
destroy constituted authority, and existing political and religious institutions, in order that they may ultimately
usurp undisputed control of the World’s resources for themselves.
7 This is an illustration of how the Anti-Communist extremists also use the “Joint Stock Company Principle” and
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_01.html (10 of 11)5.4.2006 12:13:04William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 1
use others to serve their purpose while the actual directors and Instigators remain hidden and unknown to the
general public.
8 When Hitler acted contrary to the fundamental principles laid down by Karl Ritter the German Generals who
belonged to the Hard Core of the Nazi Leaders tried to have him assassinated, regardless of the fact that they had
originally set him up as the Instrument of their Will.
9 A LL Goldsmiths were not Jewish. Only SOME turned to the practice of usury. One of the richest Goldsmiths is
that of the London City Company dating from 1130.
10 The Greek word for Heavens is “Ouranor” from which the Planet Uranus and metal Uranium are named. This
predicts the “A” and “H” bombs.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_01.html (11 of 11)5.4.2006 12:13:04William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 2
Guy Carr
Pawns in the Game
C HAPTER T WO
The English Revolution 1640-1660
The Forces of Evil realize that in order to win undisputed control of the material assets of the
world, and establish an Atheistic Materialistic Totalitarian Dictatorship, it is necessary to
destroy all forms of constitutional government and organized religion. In order to do this the
Forces of Evil decided they must divide the peoples of the world against each other on various
issues. Dating back into antiquity the Aryan and Semitic races were driven into enmity against
each other to serve the secret ambitions of their atheistic-materialistic leaders. Had the people
of the Aryan and Semitic races remained steadfast to their belief in God, and faithful to His
commandments, the Forces of Evil could never have accomplished their evil purpose.
The term Aryan actually denotes the lingual groups otherwise known as Indo-European or Indo-
Germanic. It comprises two groups. The Western or European, and the Eastern or Armenian.
The Aryan languages show a common origin by their vocabulary, system, and inflections.
Actually the word Aryan means “An honourable Lord of the Soil”. Thus it is that most leaders
of the Aryan group in Europe were Landed Barons who maintained strong armed forces to
protect their properties. From amongst these Barons came the Aryan War Lords. They in turn
organized Naziism, and used Fascism, and all anti-semitic groups right of centre to serve their
purpose, and further their secret plans for world domination.
The Chief Divisions of the Aryan groups are the Teutonic, the Romanic, and the Slavic races,
who settled in Western Europe. The Turks, the Magyars, the Basques, and the Finns are non-
Aryan races. The common ancestors of the Aryan groups dwelt among the Pamirs at a period of
remote antiquity.
On the other hand the Semitic groups are actually divided into two sections. One includes the
Assyrian, the Aramaean, the Hebrew and Phoenician groups. The other section includes the
Arabic and Ethiopian groups. The Arabic is the most copious group, and the Aramaean the
poorest. The Hebrews occupy an intermediary position. [1]
To-day the term Jew is used very loosely to define people who have at one time or another
embraced the Jewish Faith. Many of these are not actually Semitic in racial origin. A great
number of people who accepted the Jewish Faith are descendants of the Herodians who were
Idumeans of Turkish-Mongol blood. They are actually Edomites. [2] The important fact to
remember is that among the Jewish leaders, in exactly the same way as among the Aryan
leaders, there always has been a small, hard core of men who have been, and still are,
Illuminists or Atheists. They may have given lip-service to the Jewish or Christian religions to
suit their own purpose, but they never believed in the existence of God. They are
Internationalists now. They give allegiance to no particular nation although they have used, on
occasion, nationalism to further their causes. Their only concern is to gain greater economic
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_02.html (1 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:11William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 2
and political power. The ultimate objective of the leaders of both groups is identical. They are
determined to win, for themselves, undisputed control of the wealth, natural resources, and man-
power of the entire world. They intend to turn the world into THEIR conception of a Totalitarian-
Godless Dictatorship.
The Non-Semitic and Turk-Finnish races infiltrated into Europe from Asia about the first
century after the advent of Christ. They took the land route North of the Caspian Sea. These
peoples are referred to in history as Khazars. They were a pagan people. They settled in
Eastern Europe and established the powerful Khazar Kingdom. They expanded their domains
by military conquests until, by the end of the 8th Century, they occupied the greater portion of
Eastern Europe west of the Ural Mountains, and North of the Black Sea. The Khazars
ultimately accepted Judaism as their religion in preference to Christianity or Mohammedanism.
Synagogues, and schools for teaching Judaism, were built throughout their Kingdom. At the
peak of their power the Khazars were collecting tribute from twenty-five conquered peoples.
The Great Khazar Kingdom flourished for almost five hundred years. Then, towards the end of
the 10th century, the Khazars were defeated in battle by the Varangians (Russians) who swept
down upon them from the North. The conquest of the Khazars was completed by the end of the
13th Century. The revolutionary movement inspired by the Khazar-Jews went on within the
Russian Empire from the 13th Century until the Red October Revolution of 1917. The conquest
of the Khazars in the 13th century explains how so many people, now commonly referred to as
Jews, remained within the Russian Empire.
There is one other important fact which sheds light on the subject of Aryanism and Semitism.
The Finns, and other groups generally classified as Varangians (Russians), were of non-Aryan
origin and the German people generally speaking have treated them as enemies.
One act of Christ has a great deal of importance in the study of the World Revolutionary
Movement. Christ was considered by many, a radical who based his reform movement on the
worship of Almighty God, obedience to constituted authority, and love of one’s neighbours.
The story of the Life of Christ shows that he loved ALL people except one particular group. He
hated the money-lenders with an intensity that seems strange in a man of so mild a character.
Jesus repeatedly admonished the money-lenders for their practice of usury. He publicly
denounced them as worshippers of Mammon. He said they were of the Synagogue of Satan.
(Rev. 2 : - 9). He emphatically expressed His extreme hatred of the money-lenders when he
took a whip and drove them out of the Temple. He admonished them in these words : “This
Temple was built as the house of God ... But you have turned it into a den of thieves.” By
performing this act of vengeance on the money-lenders Christ signed his own death warrant.
It was the Illuminati, and the false priests and elders in their pay, who hatched the plot by which
Christ would be executed by the Roman soldiers. It was they who supplied the thirty pieces of
silver used to bribe Judas. It was they who used their propagandists to misinform, and mislead
the Mob. It was the agents of the Illuminati who led the Mob when they accepted Barabbas and
screamed that Christ be crucified. I T WAS THE ILLUMINATI WHO ARRANGED MATTERS SO THAT
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_02.html (2 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:11William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 2
THE ROMAN SOLDIERS ACTED AS THEIR EXECUTIONERS .
Then, after the foul deed had been done,
and they had had their revenge, the conspirators stepped into the background and let their guilt
rest on the masses of the Jews and their children. History proves they had a fiendish reason for
putting the guilt for the death of Christ on the Jewish people. History proves that they intended
to use the hate engendered amongst the Jewish people as the result of persecution, to serve their
vile purposes, and further their secret totalitarian ambitions. Christ knew all these things. He
made his knowledge known in the most dramatic manner possible. As he hung dying on the
Cross he prayed to His Heavenly Father and He said : “Father forgive them for they know not
what they do”. Surely he was praying for the Mob ? He was asking forgiveness for the men
who had been USED by the Illuminati to be the INSTRUMENT of their revenge. History proves the
International Money-Lenders have been using the Mob to further their secret ambitions ever
since. In the Lenin Institute in Moscow the professors who lecture to aspiring revolutionary
leaders from all over the world invariably refer to the Masses as ‘The Mob’. The Illuminati
direct all evil forces.
Study of the World Revolutionary Movement (W.R.M.), from the time of Christ to the present
day, proves that it is unjust to blame the whole Jewish Race for the crimes committed against
humanity by a small group of false priests and money-lenders. These men always have been,
and still are, The Secret Power behind Internationalism. They use Communism to-day as their
manual of action to further their secret pans for ultimate world domination.
Study of history will prove that it is equally unjust to blame the whole German and Italian
people for the crimes against humanity committed by the small group of Aryan War Lords who
organized Naziism, in the hope that they could defeat International Communism and Political
Zionism and give them world domination by military conquest. History proves clearly that the
leaders of the two opposing groups have divided the masses of the people regardless of race,
colour, or creed, into two opposing camps and then used them all as pawns in the game of
International Chess. They play to decide which group will ultimately defeat the other and
establish, once and for all, undisputed control over the world, its wealth, its natural resources, its
man-power, and its religion. It must be remembered that as the purpose of the Devil is to win
men’s souls away from God, Satan uses both “Red” Communism and “Black” Naziism to
influence the minds of men so that they will embrace EITHER Atheistic ideology. Those who
accept EITHER Atheistic ideology sell their souls to the Devil.
Historical events prove the continuity of the evil purpose of the Illuminati. Many theologians
agree that this perfect continuity of their Long Range Plans is positive evidence that they are, as
Christ named them, “Of the Synagogue of Satan”. Theologians base their opinion on the theory
that nothing human could have such a continuing record of evil down through the ages of time.
The continuity of evil is the exact opposite of the Apostolic succession of the Roman Catholic
Church. In this, as in many other things, we are forcibly reminded of the actual power of the
super-natural forces to influence our individual lives, national policy, and international affairs.
Arguments of this kind regarding evil minded Jews are equally applicable to evil minded
Aryans, and evil minded men of all races, colour and creeds.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_02.html (3 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:11William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 2
History proves that Seneca (4 B.C. to 65 A.D.) died because he, like Christ, tried to expose the
corrupt practices and evil influence of the money-lenders who had infiltrated into the Roman
Empire. Seneca was a famous Roman philosopher. He was chosen tutor to Nero who became
Emperor of Rome. For a long time Seneca was Nero’s best friend, and most trusted advisor.
Nero married Popaea who brought him under the evil influence of the money-lenders. Nero
became one of the most infamous rulers the world has ever known. His licentious conduct, and
depraved habits, developed in him a character so base that he lived only to persecute and
destroy everything that was good. His acts of revenge took the form of atrocities usually
committed in public upon the victims of his wrath. Seneca lost his influence over Nero but he
never stopped publicly denouncing the money-lenders for their evil influence and corrupt
practices. Finally the money-lenders demanded that Nero take action against Seneca who was
very popular with the people. So as not to arouse the wrath of the people against himself, and
the money-lenders. Nero ordered Seneca to end his own life.
*// Too bad evil Empire Rome was an empire of the money power, the same international money power which later
resurrected it as the British Empire.
This is the first recorded case in which the money-lenders made a person commit suicide
because he had become troublesome to them, but it was by no means the last. History records
dozens of similar suicides, and murders which were made to appear as accidents or suicides.
One of the most notorious in recent years was that of James V. Forrestal. In 1945 Forrestal had
been convinced that the American Bankers were closely affiliated with the International
Bankers who controlled the Banks of England, France and other countries. He was also
convinced, according to his diaries, that the International Money-Barons were the Illuminati and
directly responsible for the outbreak of World Wars One and Two. He tried to convince
President Roosevelt, and other Top Level Government officials, of the truth. Either he failed,
and committed suicide in a fit of depression, or he was murdered to shut his mouth for ever.
Murder, made to appear like suicide, has been accepted policy in the top levels of international
intrigue for many centuries. [3]
*// Where in his diaries did Mr. Forrestal mention the Illuminati ? And why would he want to convince Roosevelt of the
truth when Roosevelt & co. worked out and implemented the plan to instigate ww2 ?
Justinian I, (Flavius Anicius Justianiamus 483-565 A.D.) wrote his famous book of law “Corpus
Juris Civilis”. He tried to put an end to the illegal methods of traffic and trade indulged in by
certain Jewish merchants. By engaging in illegal trade, and wholesale smuggling, the Jewish
merchants, who were only agents of the Illuminati, obtained unfair advantage over their Gentile
competitors. They put them out of business. The book of law, written by Justinian, was
accepted as the text book of law right down to the 10th Century. Even to-day it is considered
the most important of all documents of jurisprudence. But the money-lenders were able to
offset the good Justinian tried to do. [4] Funk & Wagnall’s Jewish Encyclopedia has this to say
about the Jews in those days — “They enjoyed full religious liberty ... Minor offices were open
to them. The trade in slaves constituted the main source of livelihood for the Roman Jews, and
decrees against this traffic were issued in 335, 336, 339, 384 A.D., etc.”
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_02.html (4 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:11William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 2
There is the story in black and white. But history reveals that the Jewish merchants, and money-
lenders, did not confine their illegal activities to the slave trade. It is recorded that they engaged
in every form of illegal traffic including the drug trade, prostitution, wholesale smuggling of
liquors, perfumes, jewels, and other dutiable goods. In order to protect their illegal trade and
traffic they bribed and corrupted officials; by use of drugs and liquors, and women, they
destroyed the morals of the people. History records that Justinian, although Emperor of the
Roman Empire, wasn’t strong enough to put a stop to their activities. [5]
Edward Gibbon (1737-1794) deals with the corrupting influence of the Jewish merchants and
money-lenders. He credits them with contributing greatly to “The Decline and Fall of the
Roman Empire”. He wrote the book with that title. Gibbon gives considerable space to the part
Popaea, Nero’s wife, played in bringing about the conditions which started the people of Rome
reeling drunkenly towards their own destruction. With the fall of the Roman Empire, Jewish
predominance was established. The nations of Europe entered into what historians name “The
Dark Ages”.
The Encyclopedia Britannica has this to say on the subject. “There was an inevitable tendency
for them (The Jewish merchants and money-lenders) to specialize in commerce for which their
acumen, and ubiquity, gave them special qualifications. In the Dark Ages the commerce of
Western Europe was largely in their hands, in particular, the Slave Trade.”
Jewish control of trade and commerce, both legal and illegal, grew tighter and tighter. It spread
far and wide, until every European country’s economy was more or less in their hands.
Evidence in the form of Polish and Hungarian coins bearing Jewish inscriptions gives some
indication of the power they exerted in financial matters during those days. The fact that the
Jews made a special effort, to issue and control currency, supports the opinion that the money-
lenders had adopted the slogan “Let us issue and control the money of a nation and we care not
who make its laws”, long before Amschel Mayer Bauer [6] (1743-1812) used the slogan to
explain to his co-conspirators the reason the Jewish money-lenders had obtained control of the
Bank of England in 1694.
The barons, who were the leaders of Aryanism, determined they would break the Jewish control
of trade, commerce and money in Europe. It was with this purpose in mind that in 1095 they
obtained the support of certain Christian rulers to start The Crusades or Holy Wars. [7] Between
1095 and 1271 eight Crusades were organized. Officially, the Crusades were military
expeditions undertaken to ensure the safety of Pilgrims who wished to visit the Holy Sepulchre
and set up Christian Rule in Palestine. In actual fact they were wars fomented for the purpose
of dividing the population of Europe into two camps. One camp pro-Jewish and the other Anti-
Jewish. In more recent years, the Secret Powers divided the white race into Semitic and Anti-
Semitic groups. Some of the Crusades were successful, some were not. The net result was that,
in 1271, Palestine still remained in the hands of the Infidels, although the countries of
Christendom had spent MILLIONS IN MONEY and treasure to finance the Crusades and sacrificed
MILLIONS OF HUMAN LIVES fighting those Holy Wars. Strange to relate, the Jewish money-
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_02.html (5 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:11William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 2
lenders grew richer and stronger than ever.
There is one phase of the Crusades which must not be overlooked when the “Causes” are being
studied in relation to the “Effects” they produced in later years. In 1215 the Roman Catholic
Hierarchy held the Fourth Lateran Council. The main topic under consideration was Jewish
aggression in all the countries of Europe. During this period of history the Rulers of the
Church, and the Rulers of the State, worked in unity. The rulers of the Church, after due
deliberation, expressed themselves in favor of continuing the Crusades. They also drew up, and
passed Decrees, designed to put an end to usury and the Jewish money-lenders practice of using
unethical methods in traffic and trade to obtain unfair advantage over Gentile competitors, and
to curb corrupt and immoral practices. To achieve this purpose the dignitaries attending the
Fourth Lateran Council decreed that in the future the Jews be restricted to living in their own
quarters. Jews were absolutely prohibited from hiring Christians as their employees. This
decree was passed because Jewish money-lenders and merchants, operated on the Joint Stock
Company principle. They employed Christians to act as their front men while they hid in the
background directing operations. This was convenient because, when anything went wrong, the
Christian front men got the blame, and the punishment, while they got off scot-free. In addition,
by the Decrees, Jews were absolutely prohibited from employing Christian females in their
homes and establishments. This decree was passed because evidence was produced to prove
that young females were systematically seduced, and then turned into prostitutes; their masters
used them to obtain control over influential officials. Other decrees made it unlawful for Jews
to engage in many commercial activities. But even the power of the Church, supported by most
Christian officials of the State, could not make the Money-Barons amenable to the law. All the
decrees accomplished was to intensify the hatred the Illuminati had for the Church of Christ,
and they started a continuing campaign to separate the Church from the State. To achieve this
purpose they introduced the idea of secularism amongst the laity.
In 1253 the French government ordered the Jews expelled because they refused to obey the
law. Most of the Jews who were expelled went over to England. By 1255 the Jewish money-
lenders had obtained absolute control of many Church dignitaries and most of the Nobility. [8]
That the money-lenders, the Rabbis, and Elders belonged to the Illuminati was proved by
evidence given during the investigation ordered by King Henry III into the ritual slaying of St.
Hugh of Lincoln in 1255. Eighteen Jews were proved to have been the culprits. They were
tried, found guilty, and executed. In 1272 King Henry died. Edward I became King of
England. He determined the Jewish leaders must give up the practice of usury. In 1275 he had
Parliament pass the Statutes of Jewry. They were designed to curb the power Jewish usurers
were exerting over their debtors, both Christians, and fellow Jews. The Statutes of Jewry were
probably the first legislation in which The Commons in Parliament had an active part. They
cannot be classified as Anti-Semitic because they actually protected the interests of honest and
law-abiding Jews. [9]
But, as had happened so often before, the Jewish money-lenders thought that the power they
could exert over both the Church and the State, would permit them to defy the king’s decree in
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_02.html (6 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:11William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 2
the same way as they had set at nought those passed by the Lateran Council. They made a grave
mistake. In 1290 King Edward issued another decree. A LL Jews were expelled from England.
This was the start of what historians call The Great Eviction.
After Edward I started the ball rolling, all the Crowned Heads of Europe followed his example.
In 1306 France expelled the Jews. In 1348 Saxony followed suit. In 1360 Hungary; in 1370
Belgium; in 1380 Slovakia; in 1420 Austria; in 1444 The Netherlands; in 1492 Spain.
The expulsion of the Jews from Spain has special signification. It throws light on the Spanish
Inquisition. Most people have the idea the Inquisition was instituted by Roman Catholics to
persecute Protestants who had broken away from the Church. As a matter of fact the
Inquisition, as introduced by Pope Innocent III, was a means of unmasking heretics, and
infidels, who were masquerading as Christians for the purpose of destroying the Christian
Religion from within. [10] It didn’t make the slightest difference to the Inquisitors whether the
accused was Jew or Gentile, black or white. The terrible ceremony of the “Auto-da-Fé” or “Act
of Faith”, was specially designed to be used in connection with the execution of all convicted
heretics, and infidels, when Torquemada (1420-1498) was Grand Inquisitor. [11]
It is these hidden incidents which reveal so much truth. It was in Spain, during the 14th
Century, that the Jewish money-lenders first succeeded in having the loans they made the State
secure by the right to collect the taxes levied upon the people. They used such cruelty, when
demanding their Pound of Flesh, that it only required the inflammatory oratory of the priest
Fernando Martenez to produce mass action which ended in one of the bloodiest massacres
recorded in history. Here again is a perfect example of how thousands of innocent Jews were
victimized, for the sins and crimes committed against humanity by just a few. [12]
In 1495 Lithuania expelled the Jews. In 1498 Portugal; in 1540 Italy; in 1551 Bavaria. It is
important to remember that during the general evictions certain wealthy and influential Jews
managed to obtain sanctuary in Bordeaux, Avignon, certain Papal States, Marseille, Northern
Alsace, and part of northern Italy. But, as stated in the Encyclopedia Britannica, “The masses of
the Jewish people were thus to be found once more, in the East and in the Polish and Turkish
Empires. The few communities suffered to remain in Western Europe were meantime subjected
at last to all the restrictions which earlier Ages had usually allowed to remain as an ideal; so
that, in a sense, the Jewish Dark Ages may be said to begin with the Renaissance. This
admission would indicate there is some justification for the claim made by certain historians
that not until the Western European nations wrested economic control from the Jewish money-
lenders did the rebirth of western civilization occur.
Following the Great Eviction the Jews again resumed living in Ghettos or Kahals. Thus,
isolated from the masses of the population, the Jews were under the direction and control of the
Rabbis and Elders, many of whom were influenced by the Illuminati and the wealthy Jewish
money-lenders who remained in their various sanctuaries. In the Ghettos, agents of the
Illuminati inspired a spirit of hatred and revenge in the hearts of the Jewish people against those
who had evicted them. The Rabbis reminded them that, as the chosen people of God, the day
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_02.html (7 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:11William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 2
would come when they would have their revenge and inherit the earth.
It should be mentioned that most Jews who settled in Eastern Europe, were restricted to living
within the “Pale of Settlement” located on the western borders of Russia and extending from the
shores of the Baltic Sea in the north, to the shores of the Black Sea in the South. Most of them
were Khazar Jews. [13] The Khazar Jews were noted for their Yiddish culture; their rapacious
practices in financial matters, and their lack of ethics in commercial transactions. They should
not be confused with the Biblical Hebrews who are mild mannered and, generally speaking,
pastoral people.
Within the Ghettos, in an atmosphere of hatred, the desire for revenge was developed by the
agents of the Illuminati. They organized these negative conditions, into the World
Revolutionary Movement, based on Terrorism. From its very inception the international-
minded Money-Barons, and THEIR High Priests, designed, financed, and controlled the World
Revolutionary Movement. They used it as the instrument by which they would obtain their
revenge on the Christian churches, and the Crowned Heads, of Europe.
History proves, HOW the Money-Barons developed the revolutionary movement into
International Communism as we know it to-day. They organized individual acts of terrorism
into a disciplined revolutionary movement. They then planned systematic infiltration of the
Jews back into the countries from which they had been expelled. Because their re-entry was
illegal the only method by which infiltration could be accomplished was to establish Jewish
Undergrounds. Because the Jews who infiltrated into the Undergrounds of the European cities
could not obtain lawful employment they were supplied with funds with which to develop the
Black Market system. They indulged in every kind of illegal traffic and trade. Working on the
principle of the Joint Stock Co., the identity of the Money-Barons, who owned and controlled
this vast underground system always remained secret. [14]
Count de Poncins; Mrs. Nesta Webster; Sir Walter Scott; and many other authors and
historians have suspected that the Illuminati and a group of Internationalists were The Secret
Power behind the World Revolutionary Movement, but it was not until recently that sufficient
evidence was pieced together to prove that what they suspected was an actual fact. As the
events of history are unrolled in their chronological sequence it will be seen how the Illuminati
used the Semitic groups and the Aryan groups, to serve their purpose, and involved millions
upon millions of people in revolutions and wars to further their own secret and selfish
ambitions. William Foss and Cecil Gerahty who wrote The Spanish Arena said : “The question
of who are the leading figures behind the attempt of the JOINT STOCK COMPANY domination of
the world, and how they obtain their ends, is beyond the scope of this book. But it is one of the
important Libres a faire yet to be written. I T WILL HAVE TO BE WRITTEN BY A MAN OF THE
HIGHEST COURAGE WHO WILL COUNT HIS LIFE AS NOTHING COMPARED WITH ENLIGHTENING THE
WORLD AS TO WHAT THE SATANIC SELF-APPOINTED PRIESTHOOD WOULD ORDAIN .”
How successful the plan, to infiltrate back into the countries from which they had been expelled,
turned out to be can best be judged by the following records. The Jews were back in England in
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_02.html (8 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:11William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 2
1600; back in Hungary in 1500. They were expelled again in 1582; they were back in Slovakia
in 1562 but were expelled again in 1744; they were back in Lithuania in 1700. But, regardless
of how many times they were expelled, there always remained the Jewish underground from
which the revolutionary activities of the Secret Powers were conducted.
Because King Edward I of England had been the first to expel the Jews, the Jewish Money-
Barons in France, Holland, and Germany decided it would be poetic justice if they tried out
their planned revolutionary technique in England first. They used their underground agents, or
Cells, to cause trouble between the king and his government; employers and labour; ruling
class and workers; [Oh, so there needs to be a ruling class?!] Church and State. The plotters injected
controversial issues into politics and religion, to divide the people into two opposing camps. [15]
First they divided the people in England into Catholics and Protestants, then they divided the
Protestants into Conformists and Non-Conformists.
When King Charles I was brought into disagreement with his Parliament a Jewish Money-Baron
in Holland, named Manasseh Ben Israel, had his agents contact Oliver Cromwell. They offered
him large sums of money if he would carry out their plan to overthrow the British Throne.
Manasseh Ben Israel, and other German and French moneylenders financed Cromwell.
Fernandez Carvajal of Portugal, often referred to in history as The Great Jew, became
Cromwell’s Chief Military Contractor. He re-organized the Round Heads into a model army.
He provided them with the best arms and equipment money could buy. Once the conspiracy
was under way, hundreds of trained revolutionaries were smuggled into England and were
absorbed into the Jewish Underground. The same thing goes on in America to-day.
The head of the Jewish underground in England at that time was a Jew named De Souze. The
Great Jew, Fernandez Carvajal, had used his influence to have De Souze appointed Portuguese
Ambassador. It was in his house, protected by diplomatic immunity, that the leaders of the
Jewish revolutionary underground remained hidden and worked out their plots and intrigue. [16]
Once the revolution had been decided upon, the Jewish plotters introduced Calvinism into
England to split Church and State, and divide the people. Contrary to general belief, Calvinism
is of Jewish origin. It was deliberately conceived to split the adherents of the Christian
religions, and divide the people. Calvin’s real name was Cohen ! When he went from Geneva
to France to start preaching his doctrine he became known as Cauin. Then in England it became
Calvin. History proves that there is hardly a revolutionary plot that wasn’t hatched in
Switzerland; there is hardly a Jewish revolutionary leader who hasn’t changed his name.
At the B’nai B’rith celebrations held in Paris, France, in 1936 Cohen, Cauvin, or Calvin,
whatever his name may have been, was enthusiastically acclaimed to have been of Jewish
descent. [17]
In addition to the religious controversy, the revolutionary leaders organized armed mobs to
aggravate every situation injected into politics and labour by their masters. Isaac Disraeli, 1766-
1848, a Jew, and father of Benjamin Disraeli who afterwards became Lord Beaconsfield, deals
with this angle of the British Revolution in detail in his two-volume story The Life of Charles
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_02.html (9 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:11William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 2
II. He remarks that he obtained considerable information from the records of Melchior de
Salem, a Jew, who was French Envoy to the British Government at that time. Disraeli draws
attention to the great similarity, or pattern, of the revolutionary activities which preceded both
the British and the French revolutions. In other words the handiwork of the secret and real
directors of the World Revolutionary Movement (W.R.M.) could clearly be seen in both, — a
fact which we will proceed to prove.
The evidence which ABSOLUTELY convicts Oliver Cromwell of participating in the Jewish
Revolutionary Plot was obtained by Lord Alfred Douglas, who edited a weekly review Plain
English published by the North British Publishing Co. In an article which appeared in the issue
of Sept. 3rd 1921 he explained how his friend, Mr. L.D. Van Valckert of Amsterdam, Holland,
had come into possession of a missing volume of records of the Synagogue of Muljeim. This
volume had been lost during the Napoleonic wars. The volume contains records of letters
written to, and answered by the Directors of the Synagogue.
They are written in German. One entry, dated June 16th, 1647 reads : From O.C. (i.e. Olivier
Cromwell) to Ebenezer Pratt.
“In return for financial support will advocate admission of Jews to England. This however
impossible while Charles living. Charles cannot be executed without trial, adequate grounds for
which do not at present exist. Therefore advise that Charles be assassinated, but will have nothing
to do with arrangements for procuring an assassin, though willing to help in his escape.”
In reply to this dispatch the records show E. Pratt wrote a letter dated July 12th, 1647 addressed
to Oliver Cromwell.
“Will grant financial aid as soon as Charles removed, and Jews admitted. Assassination too
dangerous. Charles should be given an opportunity to escape. [18] His recapture will then make
trial and execution possible. The support will be liberal, but useless to discuss terms until trial
commences.”
On November 12th that same year Charles was given the opportunity to escape. He was of
course recaptured. Hollis and Ludlow, authorities on this chapter of history, are both on record
as considering the flight as the stratagem of Cromwell. After Charles had been recaptured
events moved apace. Cromwell had the British Parliament purged of most members he knew
were loyal to the king. Notwithstanding this drastic action, when the House sat all night on
December 5th, 1648, the majority agreed “That the concessions offered by the king were
satisfactory to a settlement.”
Any such settlement would have disqualified Cromwell from receiving the Blood-Money
promised him by the International Money-Barons through their agent E. Pratt, so Cromwell
struck again. He ordered Colonel Pryde to purge Parliament of those members who had voted
in favour of a settlement with the King. What then happened is referred to, in school history
books, as Pryde’s Purge. [19] When the purge was finished fifty members remained. They are
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_02.html (10 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:11William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 2
recorded as The Rump Parliament. They usurped absolute power. On January 9th, 1649, “ A
HIGH COURT OF JUSTICE ” was proclaimed for the purpose of putting the king of England on
trial. Two thirds of the members of the Court were “Levellers” from Cromwell’s Army. The
conspirators couldn’t find an English lawyer who would draw up a criminal charge against King
Charles. Carvajal, instructed an alien Jew, Isaac Dorislaus, Manasseh Ben Israel’s Agent in
England, to draw up the indictment upon which King Charles was tried. Charles was found
guilty of the charges levelled against him by the International Jewish money-lenders, not by the
people of England. On January 30th, 1649, he was publicly beheaded in front of the Banqueting
House at Whitehall London. The Jewish money-lenders, directed by the High Priests of the
Synagogue of Satan, had had their revenge because Edward I had expelled the Jews from
England. Oliver Cromwell received his Blood-Money just as Judas had done.
History proves that the International Jewish money-lenders had a purpose other than revenge for
getting rid of Charles. They removed him to obtain control of England’s economy and
government. They planned to involve many European countries in war with England. Great
sums of money are needed to fight wars. By loaning the Crowned Heads of Europe the money
required to fight wars they fomented, the Internationalists were enabled to rapidly increase the
National Debts of all European Nations.
The chronological sequence of events from the execution of King Charles in 1649 to the
institution of the Bank of England in 1694, shows how the National Debt was increased. The
International Bankers used intrigue and cunning to throw Christians at each others throats.
1649 Cromwell financed by Jews, waged war in Ireland. Captures Drogheda and Wexford.
British Protestants blamed for persecution of Irish Catholics.
1650 Montrose in rebellion against Cromwell. Captured and executed.
1651 Charles II invades England. Defeated and flees back to France.
1652 England involved in war with Dutch.
1653 Cromwell proclaims himself Lord Protector of England.
1654 England involved in more wars.
1656 Trouble started in American Colonies.
1657 Death of Cromwell — Son Richard named Protector.
1659 Richard, disgusted with intrigue, resigns.
1660 General Monk occupies London Charles II proclaimed King.
1661 Truth revealed regarding intrigue entered into by Cromwell and his cohorts Ireton, and
Bradshaw, causes serious public reaction. Bodies are exhumed and hung from gallows on Tyburn
Hill, London.
1662 Religious strife is engendered to divide members of the Protestant denominations. Non-
Conformists to the established Church of England are persecuted.
1664 England is again involved in war with Holland.
1665 A great depression settles over England. Unemployment and shortages of food undermine the
health of the people and the Great Plague breaks out. [20]
1666 England involved in war with France and Holland.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_02.html (11 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:11William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 2
1667 Cabal agents start new religious and political strife. [21]
1674 England and Holland make Peace. The men directing international intrigue change their
characters. They become matchmakers. They elevate plain Mr. William Stradholder to the rank of
Captain-General of the Dutch Forces. He became William Prince of Orange. It was arranged that
he meet Mary, the eldest daughter of the Duke of York. The Duke was only one place removed
from becoming King of England.
1677 Princess Mary of England married William Prince of Orange. To place William Prince of
Orange upon the Throne of England it was necessary to get rid of both Charles II, and the Duke of
York, who was slated to become James II.
1683 The Rye House Plot was hatched. The intention was to assassinate both King Charles II and
the Duke of York. It failed.
1685 King Charles II died. The Duke of York became King James II of England. Immediately a
campaign of L’Infamie was started against James II. The Duke of Monmouth was persuaded, or
bribed, into leading an insurrection to overthrow the king. On June 30th, the Battle of Sedgemoor
was fought. Monmouth was defeated and captured. He was executed July 15th. In August Judge
Jeffreys opened, what historians have named, “The Bloody Assizes”. Over three hundred persons
concerned in the Monmouth Rebellion were sentenced to death under circumstances of atrocious
cruelty. Nearly one thousand others were condemned to be sold as slaves. This was a typical
example of how the Secret Powers, working behind the scenes, create conditions for which other
people are blamed. Others are aroused to take active opposition against those they blame. They in
turn are liquidated. King James still had to be disposed of before William of Orange could be
placed on the throne to carry out their mandate. Every person in England was bewitched and
bewildered. They were not allowed to know the truth. They blamed everyone, and everything
except the “Secret Powers” who were pulling the strings. Then the conspirators made their next
move.
1688 They ordered William Prince of Orange to land in England at Torbay. This he did on
November 5th. King James abdicated. He fled to France. He had become unpopular by reason of
the campaign of L’Infamie, intrigue and his own foolishness and culpability.
1689 William of Orange and Mary, were proclaimed King and Queen of England. King James did
not intend to give up the Throne without a fight. He was a Catholic, so the Secret Powers set up
William of Orange as the Champion of the Protestant Faith. On February 15th, 1689, King James
landed in Ireland. The Battle of The Boyne was fought by men of definite, and opposing, religious
convictions. The Battle has been celebrated by Orangemen on the 12th of July ever since. There is
probably not one Orangeman in ten thousand who knows that all the wars and rebellions fought
from 1640 to 1689 were fomented by the International money-lenders for the purpose of putting
themselves in position to control British politics and economy. Their first objective was to obtain
permission to institute a Bank of England and consolidate and secure the debts Britain awed them
for loans made to her to fight the wars they instigated. History shows how they completed their
plans.
In the final analysis, none of the countries and people involved in the wars and revolutions
obtained any lasting benefits. No permanent or satisfactory solution was reached regarding the
political, economic, and religious issues involved. T HE ONLY PEOPLE TO BENEFIT WERE THE
SMALL GROUP OF MONEY-LENDERS WHO FINANCED THE WARS AND REVOLUTIONS, AND THEIR
FRIENDS AND AGENTS, WHO SUPPLIED THE ARMIES, THE SHIPS, AND THE MUNITIONS .
It is important to remember that no sooner was the Dutch General sitting upon the throne of
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_02.html (12 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:11William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 2
England than he persuaded the British Treasury to borrow £1,250,000 from the Jewish bankers
who had put him there. The school book history informs our children that the negotiations were
conducted by Sir John Houblen and Mr. William Patterson on behalf of the British Government
with money-lenders WHOSE IDENTITY REMAINED SECRET .
Search of historical documents reveals that in order to maintain complete secrecy the
negotiations regarding the terms of the loan were carried on in a church. In the days of Christ
the money-lenders used the Temple. In the days of William of Orange they desecrated a church.
The international money-lenders agreed to accommodate the British Treasury to the extent of
£1,250,000 providing they could dictate their own terms and conditions. This was agreed to.
The terms were in part :
1. That the names of those who made the loan remain secret; and that they be granted a Charter to
establish a Bank of England. [22]
2. That the directors of the Bank of England be granted the legal right to establish the Gold
Standard for currency by which —
3. They could make loans to the value of £10 for every £1 value of gold they had on deposit in
their vaults.
4. That they be permitted to consolidate the national debt; and secure payment of amounts due as
principal and interest by direct taxation of the people.
Thus, for the sum of £1,250,000, King William of Orange sold the people of England into
economic bondage. The Jewish money-lenders gained their ambitions. They had usurped the
power to issue and control the currency of the nation. And, having secured that power, they
cared not who made the laws.
Just what the acceptance of the Gold Standard meant is best illustrated by citing a simple
transaction. — The directors of the Bank of England could loan £1,000 for every £100 worth of
gold they had on deposit as security. They collected interest on the full £1,000 loan. At 5 per
cent this amounted to £50 a year. Therefore at the end of the first year the bankers collected
back 50 per cent of the amount they had originally put up to secure the loan. If a private
individual wished to obtain a loan, the bankers made him put up security, in the form of
property, stocks, or bonds, much in excess of the value of the loan he required. If he failed to
meet payments of principal and interest, foreclosure proceedings were taken against his
property, and the moneylenders obtained many times the value of the loan.
The international bankers never intended that England be allowed to pay off the national
indebtedness. The plan was to create international conditions which would plunge ALL nations
concerned deeper and deeper into their debt. [23]
As far as England is concerned, in only four years, 1694 to 1698, the national debt was
increased from one to sixteen million pounds sterling. This debt accumulated because of wars.
It is interesting to note that John Churchill, 1650-1722, became the leading military figure
during this period of English history. Because of his military genius, and his services to Britain,
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_02.html (13 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:11William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 2
he was created the first Duke of Marlborough. [24]
The Secret Power behind the World Revolutionary Movement pulled the necessary strings and
brought about The Wars of the Spanish Succession. In 1701 the Duke of Marlborough was
made Commander-in-chief of the armed forces of Holland. No less an authority than the Jewish
Encyclopedia records the fact that FOR HIS MANY SERVICES THE DUKE OF MARLBOROUGH
RECEIVED NOT LESS THAN £6,000 A YEAR FROM THE DUTCH JEWISH BANKER, SOLOMON MEDINA .
The events leading up to the French Revolution show how between 1698 and 1815 the National
Debt of Britain was increased to £885,000,000. By 1945 the British National Debt had reached
the astronomical figure of £22,503,532,372, and for the years 1945-46 the carrying charges
alone amounted to £445,446,241. As an Irish economist remarked “Only a Jewish controlled
organization would insist on the odd pound.”
________________________
1 See Pears Cyclopedia Pages 514 and 647.
2 See Jewish Encyclopedia Vol. 5, p. 41 : 1925. It states “Edom is in Modern Jewry”. Also Professor Lothrop
Stoddard the eminent Ethnologist states : “The Jews’ own records admit that 82 per cent of those who subscribe to
the Political Zionist movement are Ashkenazim, so-called Jews, but not Semitic. There are many different opinions
on these racial matters.
3 The Forrestal Diaries Viking press, New York, 1951.
4 Some readers claim Justianiamus had no such purpose. I claim knowledge of wrong spurs men to create
corrective legislation and laws.
5 The same evil influences are responsible for the same evil conditions which exist In all big cities to-day.
6 Bauer is the Jewish Goldsmith who established “The House of Rothschild”, in Frankfort-on-the-Main. He and
his (confreres) plotted the French Revolution of 1789.
7 Because hate and revenge are the Stock-in-Trade of the forces of evil they will use any pretext to foment wars
and revolutions even to using the name of God, whom they hate.
8 The book “Aaron of Lincoln”. Shapiro-Valentine & Co. gives interesting information regarding this period of
history. Valentine’s Jewish Encyclopedia has this to say. “Their numbers and prosperity increased. Aaron of
Lincoln (whose house still stands to this day) became the richest man in England. His financial transactions
covering the whole country and concerning many of the leading Nobles and Churchmen... On his death his
properties passed to the Grown, and a special branch of the Exchequer had to be created to deal with the estates.
9 The Statutes of Jewry were printed in detail as appendix 1 in The Nameless War by Captain A.H.M. Ramsay.
10 Because the Jews were being evicted from all European countries Chemor, Rabbi of Arles in Provence, sought
advice from the Sanhedrin then located in Constantinople. His appeal was dated Jan. 13th 1489. The reply arrived
back November 1459. It was signed V.S.S. - V.F.F. Prince of the Jews. It advised the Rabbis to use the tactics of
“The Trojan Horse” Christian and make their sons Priests, Laymen, lawyers, and doctors, etc. so they could destroy
the Christian structure from within.
11 The Encyclopedia Britannica on page 67, Vol. 13, 1947 has this to say : “The 14th Century was the Golden Age
of the Jews in Spain. In 1391, the preaching of a Priest of Seville, Fernando Martenez, led to the first general
massacre of the Jews who were envied for their prosperity and hated because they were the king’s tax collectors.
12 This is dealt with more fully in the chapters on Spain.
13 H.G. Wells defines the differences very clearly in his Outline of History, pages 493-494.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_02.html (14 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:11William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 2
14 It does even today. Illegal entry into the United States and into Palestine has reached unprecedented numbers
since the end of World War Two. Evidence will be produced to prove the Underground is invariably associated
with the Anti-Social characters who constitute the Underworld.
15 Sombirt’s work — “The Jews and Modern Capitalism”, and the “Jewish Encyclopedia”, bear out the above
statement.
16 This policy has been common practice ever since. The Soviet Embassies in every country have been turned into
the Headquarters of intrigue and espionage as further evidence will prove.
17 This fact was commented upon in the Catholic Gazette in February of that year.
18 Charles was in custody at this time.
19 It is important to note that school history books make no mention of the two opposing groups of men who have
been the “Secret Power” behind International Affairs who made history. This policy seems to have been by tacit
agreement. —Author.
20 The outbreak of the Great Fire of London, known as “The Great Cleaner” ended the plague.
21 The word Cabal is closely related to Cabala a mysterious Hebrew theosophy dating back into antiquity but
which became very active during the 10th and succeeding centuries. Cabala was announced as “a special
revelation” which enabled Rabbis to explain to the Jewish people the hidden meanings of the Sacred writings.
Pear’s Cyclopedia 57th edition, page 529 says “Cabalism was later carried to great excess”. Cabal list leaders
pretending to read signs, and evidence, in letters and forms, and numbers, contained in the Scriptures. The French
named this mysterious rite Cabale. The French used the term Cabale to designate any group of political or private
intriguers. The English coined the name Cabal because the chief personages concerned with Cabalistic intrigue in
England were Clifford Ashley, Buckingham, Arlington, and Lauderdale, in that order. The first letter of their
names spells Cabal ! Cabalists were the instigators of various forms of political and religious unrest during the
unhappy reign of Charles II.
22 The identity of the men who control the Bank of England still remains a secret. The Macmillan Committee
appointed in 1929 to throw light on the subject failed completely. Mr. Montague Norman, the official Head of he
Bank of England was most evasive and non-committal in any answer he made to the committee. For further
particulars read — Facts about the Bank of England by A.N. Field, p. 4.
23 If such a policy is carried to its logical conclusion it is only a matter of time before the international money-
lenders control the wealth, natural resources, and man-power of the entire world. History shows how rapidly they
have progressed toward their goal since 1694.
24 The duke is the direct ancestor of Sir Winston Churchill, the Prime Minister of England today... i.e. 1954 —
Churchill is self-acknowledged as having been the foremost Zionist of this era. He is the man most responsible for
influencing the United Nations to create the State of Israel.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_02.html (15 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:11William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 3
Guy Carr
Pawns in the Game
C HAPTER T HREE
The men who caused the French Revolution 1789
In the previous chapter evidence was given to prove how a small group of foreign money-
lenders, operating through their English agents, remained anonymous while they secured control
of that nation’s economy for the modest sum of £1,250,000. Evidence will now be produced to
identify some of these International Jewish money-lenders and prove they, or their successors,
plotted and planned, and helped finance, the Great French Revolution of 1789, exactly the same
way as they had plotted and planned and financed the English Revolution of 1640-1649. In
succeeding chapters evidence will be produced to prove that the descendants of these same
International Jewish Financiers have been The Secret Power behind every war and revolution
from 1789 onwards.
The Jewish Encyclopedia says Edom is in modern Jewry. This is a very important admission,
because the word Edom means Red. History reveals that a Jewish Goldsmith, Amschel Moses
Bauer, tired of his wandering in Eastern Europe, decided in 1750 to settle down in Frankfort-on-
the-Main in Germany. He opened a shop, or Counting House, in the Jundenstrasse district.
Over the door of his shop he placed as his sign of business A RED SHIELD . It is of the greatest
importance to remember that the Jews in Eastern Europe, who belonged to the revolutionary
movement based on terrorism, had also adopted The Red Flag as their emblem because it
represented Blood.
Amschel Moses Bauer had a son born in 1743 and he named him Amschel Mayer Bauer. The
father died in 1754 when his son was only eleven years of age. The boy had shown great
ability, and extraordinary intelligence, and his father had taught him everything possible about
the rudimentary principles of the money-lending business. It had been the father’s intention to
have his son trained as a Rabbi but death intervened.
A few years after his father’s death Amschel Mayer Bauer was employed by the Oppenheimer
Bank as a clerk. He soon proved his natural ability for the banking business and was rewarded
with a junior partnership. Later he returned to Frankfort where he secured control and
ownership of the business which had been established by his father in 1750. The Red Shield
was still proudly displayed over the door. Knowing the secret significance of the Red Shield
Amschel Mayer Bauer decided to adopt it as the new family name. Red Shield in German is
Roth Schild and thus The House of Rothschild came into being.
Amschel Mayer Bauer lived until 1812. He had five sons. All of them were specially-trained to
become Captains of High Finance. Nathan, one of the sons, showed exceptional ability and, at
the age of twenty-one, went to England with the definite purpose of securing control of the
Bank of England. The purpose was to use this control to work in conjunction with his father
and other brothers to set up, and consolidate, an International Banking Monopoly in Europe.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_03.html (1 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:25William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 3
The combined wealth of the International Banking Pool could then be used to further the secret
ambitions his father had made known to all his sons. To prove his ability, Nathan Rothschild
turned £20,000, with which he had been entrusted, into £60,000 in three years.
In studying the World Revolutionary Movement it is important to remember that The Red Flag
was the symbol of the French Revolution and every revolution since. More significant still is
the fact that when Lenin, financed by International Bankers, overthrew the Russian Government
and established the first Totalitarian Dictatorship in 1917, the design of the flag was a Red Flag,
with a Hammer and Sickle, and THE STAR OF JUDEA imposed.
In 1773, when Mayer Rothschild was only thirty years of age, he invited twelve other wealthy
and influential men to meet him in Frankfort. His purpose was to convince them that if they
agreed to pool their resources they could then finance and control the World Revolutionary
Movement and use it as their Manual of Action to win ultimate control of the wealth, natural
resources, and man-power of the entire world.
Rothschild revealed how the English Revolution had been organized. He pointed out the
mistakes and errors that had been made. The revolutionary period had been too long. The
elimination of reactionaries had not been accomplished with sufficient speed and ruthlessness.
The planned reign of terror, by which the subjugation of the masses was to be accomplished
speedily, had not been put into effective operation. Even after all these mistakes had been made
the initial purpose of the revolution had been achieved. The bankers who instigated the
revolution had established control of the national economy and consolidated the national debt.
By means of intrigue carried out on an international scale they had increased the national debt
steadily by loaning the money to fight the wars and rebellions they had fomented since 1694.
Basing his arguments on logic and sound reasoning, Mayer Rothschild pointed out that the
financial results obtained as the result of the English Revolution would be as nothing when
compared to the financial rewards to be obtained by a French Revolution provided those present
agreed to unity of purpose and put into effect his carefully thought out and revised revolutionary
plan. The project would be backed by all the power that could be purchased with their pooled
resources. This agreement reached, Mayer Rothschild unfolded his revolutionary plan. By
clever manipulation of their combined wealth it would be possible to create such adverse
economic conditions that the masses would be reduced to a state bordering on starvation by
unemployment. By use of cleverly conceived propaganda it would be easy to place the blame
for the adverse economic conditions on the King, His Court, the Nobles, the Church,
Industrialists, and the employers of labour. Their paid propagandists would arouse feelings of
hatred and revenge against the ruling classes by exposing all real and alleged cases of
extravagance, licentious conduct, injustice, oppression, and persecution. They, would also
invent infamies to bring into disrepute others who might, if left alone, interfere with their over-
all plans. [1]
After the general introduction to build up an enthusiastic reception for the plot he was about to
unfold, Rothschild turned to a manuscript and proceeded to read a carefully prepared plan of
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_03.html (2 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:25William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 3
action. The following is what I have been assured *// By whom, and based on what ? is a condensed
version of the plot by which the conspirators hoped to obtain ultimate undisputed control of the
wealth, natural resources, and man-power of the entire world.
1. The speaker started to unfold the plot by saying that because the majority of men were
inclined to evil rather than to good the best results in governing them could be obtained by using
violence and terrorism and not by academic discussions. The speaker reasoned that in the
beginning human society had been subject to brutal and blind force which was afterwards
changed to LAW . He argued that LAW was FORCE only in disguise. He reasoned it was logical
to conclude that “By the laws of nature right lies in force”.
2. He next asserted that political freedom is an idea and not a fact. He stated that in order to
usurp political power all that was necessary was to preach ‘Liberalism’ so that the electorate, for
the sake of an idea, would yield some of their power and prerogatives which the plotters could
then gather together into their own hands.
3. The speaker asserted that the Power of Gold had usurped the power of liberal rulers even
then, i.e. 1773. He reminded his audience that there had been a time when FAITH had ruled but
stated that once FREEDOM had been substituted for FAITH the people did not know how to use it
in moderation. He argued that because of this fact it was logical to assume that they could use
the idea of FREEDOM to bring about “ CLASS WARS ”. He pointed out that it was immaterial to the
success of HIS plan whether the established governments were destroyed by internal or external
foes because the victor had of necessity to seek the aid of ‘Capital’ which “Is entirely in our
hands.” [2]
4. He argued that the use of any and all means to reach their final goal was justified on the
grounds that the ruler who governed by the moral code was not a skilled politician because he
left himself vulnerable and in an unstable position on his throne. He said “Those who wish to
rule must have recourse to cunning and to make-believe because great national qualities like
frankness and honesty, are vices in politics” [3]
5. He asserted “Our right lies in force. The word RIGHT is an abstract thought and proves
nothing. I find a new RIGHT ... to attack by the RIGHT of the strong, and to scatter to the winds
all existing forces of order and regulation, to reconstruct all existing institutions, and to become
the sovereign Lord of all those who left to us the RIGHTS to their powers by laying them down
voluntarily in their ‘Liberalism’.”
6. He then admonished his listeners with these words “The power of our resources must remain
invisible until the very moment when it has gained such strength that no cunning or force can
undermine it.” He warned them that any deviation from the Line of the strategical plan he was
making known to them would risk bringing to naught “ THE LABOURS OF CENTURIES ”.
7. He next advocated the use of ‘Mob Psychology’ to obtain control of the masses. He
reasoned that the might of the Mob is blind, senseless, and unreasoning and ever at the mercy of
suggestion from any side. He stated “Only a despotic ruler can rule the Mob efficiently because
without absolute despotism there can be no existence for civilization which was carried out NOT
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_03.html (3 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:25William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 3
by the masses, but by their guide, whosoever that person might be.” He warned “The moment
the Mob seizes FREEDOM in its hands it quickly turns to anarchy.”
8. He next advocated that the use of alcoholic liquors, drugs, moral corruption, and all forms of
vice, be used systematically by their “Agenturs” [4] to corrupt the morals of the youth of the
nations. He recommended that the special ‘agenturs’ should be trained as tutors, lackeys,
governesses, clerks and by our women in the places of dissipation frequented by the Goyim. [5]
He added “In the number of these last I count also the so-called society ladies who become
voluntary followers of the others in corruption and luxury. We must not stop at bribery, deceit,
and treachery when they should serve towards the attainment of our end.”
9. Turning to politics he claimed they had the RIGHT to seize property by any means, and
without hesitation, if by doing so they secured submission, and sovereignty. He pronounced
“Our STATE marching along the path of peaceful conquest has the RIGHT to replace the horrors
of wars by less noticeable and more satisfactory sentences of death necessary to maintain the
‘terror’ which tends to produce blind submission.”
10. Dealing with the use of slogans he said “In ancient times we were the first to put the words
‘Liberty’, ‘Equality’ and ‘Fraternity’ into the mouths of the masses ... words repeated to this
day by stupid pollparrots; words which the would-be wise men of the Goyim could make
nothing of in their abstractness, and did not note the contradiction of their meaning and inter-
relation.” He claimed the words brought under their directions and control ‘legions’ “Who bore
our banners with enthusiasm.” He reasoned that there is no place in nature for ‘Equality’,
‘Liberty’ or ‘Fraternity’. He said “On the ruins of the natural and genealogical aristocracy of
the Goyim we have set up the aristocracy of MONEY. The qualification for this aristocracy is
WEALTH which is dependent upon us.”
*// This would suppose that the speaker felt that hereditary aristocracy is a natural development (societal evolution) and
is a blessing; and that the gift of statecraft is perpetually passed on from father to son. Was it really his opinion, or was
it just visited upon him (after the fact) by the writer of these ‘original documents’ who seems to be in favour of
feudalism ?
11. He next expounded his theories regarding war. In 1773 he set down a principle which the
governments of Britain and the United States publicly announced as their joint policy in 1939.
He said it should be the policy of those present to foment wars but to direct the peace
conferences so that neither of the combatants obtained territorial gains. He said the wars should
be directed so that the nations engaged on both sides would be placed further in their debt, and
in the power of ‘Our’ Agenturs.
12. He next dealt with administration. He told those present that they must use their wealth to
have candidates chosen for public office who would be “servile and obedient to our commands,
so they may readily be used as Pawns in our game by the learned and genious men we will
appoint to operate behind the scenes of government as official advisers.” He added “The men
we appoint as ‘Advisers’ will have been bred, reared, and trained from childhood in
accordance with our ideas to rule the affairs of the whole world.”
13. He dealt with propaganda, and explained how their combined wealth could control all
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_03.html (4 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:25William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 3
outlets of public information while they remained in the shade and clear of blame regardless of
what the repercussions might be due to the publication of libels, slanders, or untruths. The
speaker said “Thanks to the Press we have got gold in our hands notwithstanding the fact that
we had to gather it out of the oceans of blood and tears... But it has paid us even though we
have sacrificed many of our own people. Each victim on our side is worth a thousand Goyim.”
14. He next explained the necessity of having their ‘Agentur’ always come out into the open,
and appear on the scene, when conditions had reached their lowest ebb, and the masses had been
subjugated by means of want and terror. He pointed out that when it was time to restore order
they should do it in such a way that the victims would believe they had been the prey of
criminals and irresponsibles. He said “By executing the criminals and lunatics after they have
carried out our preconceived ‘reign of terror’, we can make ourselves appear as the saviours of
the oppressed, and the champions of the workers.” The speaker then added “We are interested
in just the opposite ... in the diminution, the killing out of the Goyim.”
15. He next explained how industrial depressions and financial panics could be brought about
and used to serve their purpose saying “Enforced unemployment and hunger, imposed on the
masses because of the power we have to create shortages of food, will create the right of
Capital to rule more surely than it was given to the real aristocracy, and by the legal authority
of Kings.” He claimed that by having their agentur control the ‘Mob’, the ‘Mob’ could then be
used to wipe out all who dared to stand in their way.
16. The infiltration into continental Freemasonry was next discussed extensively. The speaker
stated that their purpose would be to take advantage of the facilities and secrecy Freemasonry
had to offer. He pointed out that they could organize their own Grand Orient Lodges within
Blue Freemasonry in order to carry on their subversive activities and hide the true nature of their
work under the cloak of philanthropy. He stated that all members initiated into their Grand
Orient Lodges should be used for proselytizing purposes and for spreading their atheistic-
materialistic ideology amongst the Goyim. He ended this phase of the discussion with the
words. “When the hour strikes for our sovereign Lord of all the World to be crowned these
same hands will sweep away everything that might stand in his way.”
*// Are you saying that (anti-catholic, anti-monarchial, anti-feudalist, anti-christian) freemasonry (continental or
otherwise) was good until the international money power ruined it ?
17. He next expounded the value of systematic deceptions, pointing out that their agentur
should be trained in the use of high sounding phrases, and the use of popular slogans. They
should make the masses the most lavish of promises. He observed “The opposite of what has
been promised can always be done afterwards ... that is of no consequence.” He reasoned that
by using such words as Freedom and Liberty, the Goyim could be stirred up to such a pitch of
patriotic fervour that they could be made to fight even against the laws of God, and Nature. He
added “And for this reason after we obtain control the very NAME OF GOD will be erased from
the ‘Lexicon of life’.” [6]
18. He then detailed the plans for revolutionary war; the art of street fighting; and outlined the
pattern for the ‘Reign of Terror’ which he insisted must accompany every revolutionary effort
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_03.html (5 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:25William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 3
“Because it is the most economical way to bring the population to speedy subjection.”
19. Diplomacy was next discussed. After all wars secret diplomacy must be insisted upon “in
order that our agentur, masquerading as ‘poltitical’, ‘Financial’, and ‘Economic’ advisers, can
carry out our mandates without fear of exposing who are ‘The Secret Power’ behind national
and international affairs.” The speaker then told those present that by secret diplomacy they
must obtain such control “that the nations cannot come to even an inconsiderable private
agreement without our secret agents having a hand in it.”
20. Ultimate World Government the goal. To reach this goal the speaker told them “It will be
necessary to establish huge monopolies, reservoirs of such colossal riches, that even the largest
fortunes of the Goyim will depend on us to such an extent that they will go to the bottom
together with the credit of their governments ON THE DAY AFTER THE GREAT POLITICAL SMASH .”
The speaker then added “You gentlemen here present who are economists just strike an estimate
of the significance of this combination.”
21. Economic war. Plans to rob the Goyim of their landed properties and industries were then
discussed. A combination of high taxes, and unfair competition was advocated to bring about
the economic ruin of the Goyim as far as their national financial interests and investments were
concerned. In the international field he felt they could be encouraged to price themselves out of
the markets. This could be achieved by the careful control of raw materials, organized agitation
amongst the workers for shorter hours and higher pay, and by subsidizing competitors. The
speaker warned his co-conspirators that they must arrange matters, and control conditions, so
that “the increased wages obtained by the workers will not benefit them in any way.”
22. Armaments. It was suggested that the building up of armaments for the purpose of making
the Goyim destroy each other should be launched on such a colossal scale that in the final
analysis “there will only be the masses of the proletariat left in the world, with a few
millionaires devoted to our cause ... and police, and soldiers sufficient to protect our interests.”
23. The New Order. The members of the One World Government would be appointed by the
Dictator. He would pick men from amongst the scientists, the economists, the financiers, the
industrialists, and from the millionaires because “in substance everything will be settled by the
question of figures.”
24. Importance of youth. The importance of capturing the interest of youth was emphasized
with the admonition that “Our agenturs should infiltrate into all classes, and levels of society
and government, for the purpose of fooling, bemusing, and corrupting the younger members of
society by teaching them theories and principles we know to be false.”
25. National and International Laws should not be changed but should be used as they are, to
destroy the civilization of the Goyim “merely by twisting them into a contradiction of the
interpretation which first masks the law and afterwards hides it altogether. Our ultimate aim is
to substitute ARBITRATION for LAW .”
The speaker then told his listeners “You may think the Goyim will rise upon us with arms, but in
the WEST we have against this possibility an organization of such appalling terror that the very
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_03.html (6 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:25William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 3
stoutest hearts quail ... the ‘Underground’... The Metropolitans ... The subterranean
corridors ... these will be established in the capitals and cities of all countries before that
danger threatens.”
The use of the word ‘ WEST ’ has great significance. It makes it plain that Rothschild was
addressing men who had joined the World Revolutionary Movement which was started in the
Pale of Settlement in the ‘ EAST ’. It must be remembered that before Amschel Moses Bauer
settled down in Frankfort, Germany, he had followed his trade as a gold and silversmith,
travelling extensively in the ‘East’ of Europe, where he had undoubtedly met the men his son
Amschel Mayer addressed after he developed from a money-lender into a banker and
established THE HOUSE OF ROTHSCHILD in the Jundenstrasse where the above meeting is said to
have taken place in 1773.
As far as can be ascertained the original plan of the conspiracy ended at the point where it
terminated above. I am satisfied that the documents which fell into the hands of Professor S.
Nilus in 1901, and which he published under the title ‘The Jewish Peril’ in 1905 in Russia, were
an enlargement of the original plot. There appears to be no change in the first section but
various additions disclose how the conspirators had used Darwinism, Marxism, and even
Nietzche-ism. More important still, the documents discovered in 1901 disclose how Zionism
was to be used. It must be remembered that Zionism was only organized in 1897.
This matter is referred to later, when the intrigue leading up to the abdication of King Edward
VIII is explained. The translation Mr. Victor Marsden made of The Jewish Peril, was published
by The Britons Publishing Society, London, England, under the title The Protocols of The
Learned Elders of Zion in 1921. This book is also discussed. It appears logical to say that the
discovery of the later document confirms the existence of the earlier one. Little, if anything is
changed, but considerable material is added probably due to the rapid development of the
international conspiracy. The only point upon which there seems to be grounds for
disagreement is in regard to the titles chosen by Prof. Nilus and Mr. Marsden for their books.
Mr. Marsden definitely states the contents of his book are the Protocols of the meetings of the
Learned Elders of Zion whereas it would appear it was a plot presented to moneylenders,
Goldsmiths, Industrialists, Economists, and others, by Amschel Mayer Rothschild who had
graduated from money-lender to banker.
Once the spirit of revolt against constituted authority had been aroused within the hearts and
minds of the masses, the actual revolutionary effort would be carried out under the impetus of a
preconceived Reign of Terror. The Reign of Terror would be conceived by the leaders of the
Jewish Illuminati. They in turn would have their agents infiltrate into the newly organized
French Freemasonry and establish therein Lodges of Grand Orient Masonry to be used as the
revolutionary underground and as their instrument for proselytizing the doctrine of atheistic
dialectical and historical materialism. Rothschild ended his discourse by pointing out that if
proper precautions were taken their connection with the revolutionary movement need never be
known.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_03.html (7 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:25William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 3
The question may well be asked “How can it be proved these secret meetings were held ?” —
and “If they were held how is it possible to prove what matters were discussed at such
meetings ?” The answer is simple. The devilish plot was made known by “An Act of God”.
In 1785 a courier was galloping madly on horseback from Frankfort to Paris carrying detailed
information regarding the World Revolutionary Movement in general, and instructions for the
planned French Revolution in particular. The instructions originated with the Jewish Illuminati
in Germany and were addressed to Grand Master of the Grand Orient Masons in France. The
Grand Orient Lodges had been established as the revolutionary underground by the Duc
D’Orleans after he, as Grand Master of French Masonry, had been initiated into the Jewish
Illuminati in Frankfort by Mirabeau. The courier was struck by lightning while passing through
Ratisbon, and killed. The documents he carried fell into the hands of the police who turned
them over to the Bavarian Government. A record of historical events told in chronological
order connects the House of Rothschild with the Jewish Illuminati in Frankfort and the
Illuminati within French Free Masonry known as the Grand Orient Lodges as will be shown.
It has been recorded how the Jewish Rabbis claimed the power to interpret the secret and hidden
meanings of the writings of Holy Scripture by special revelation obtained through Cabala.
Claiming to have such powers was of little avail unless they had an organization, or instrument,
in their hands to put the inspiration they claimed to have received into effect. The money-
lenders, certain High Priests, Directors, and Elders decided to organize a very secret society to
serve their evil purpose — they named it “The Illuminati”. The word Illuminati is derived from
the word Lucifer, which means Bearer of the Light, or Being of extraordinary brilliance.
Therefore the Illuminati was Organized to carry out the inspirations given to the High Priests by
Lucifer during the performance of their Cabalistic Rites. Thus Christ is proved justified when
he named them of the Synagogue of Satan. The Supreme Council of the Jewish Illuminati
numbered thirteen. They were, and still remain, the executive body of The Council of Thirty
Three. The heads of the Jewish Illuminati claim to possess superlative knowledge in everything
pertaining to religious doctrine, religious rites, and religious ceremonies. They were the men
who conceived the Atheistic-materialistic ideology which in 1848 was published as “The
Communist Manifesto” by Karl Marx. Marx was the nephew of a Jewish Rabbi but he
disassociated himself officially from the Jewish High Priesthood when designated to perform
his important duties, putting into practice once again the Joint Stock Co. principle of operation.
The reason the Supreme Council numbered thirteen was to remind the members that their one
and only duty was to destroy the religion founded by Christ and his twelve Apostles. [7] To
ensure secrecy and avoid the possibility of Judas-like betrayal, every man initiated into the
Illuminati was required to take an oath of Unlimited Obedience to the head of the Council of
Thirty Three and to recognize no mortal as above him. In an organization, such as the
Illuminati, this meant that every member acknowledged the head of the Council of Thirty Three
as his God upon this earth. This fact explains how high level Communists, even to-day, swear
on oath that they do not give allegiance to Russia. They don’t. They give allegiance only to the
head of the directors of the World Revolutionary Movement.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_03.html (8 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:25William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 3
The Supreme Council decided they would use the Ingoldstadt Lodge to organize a campaign by
which the agents or Cells of the Illuminati would infiltrate into Continental Freemasonry and,
under the cloak of social enjoyment and public philanthropy, organize their revolutionary
underground. Those who infiltrated into Continental Freemasonry were ordered to establish
Lodges of the Grand Orient and use them for proselytism so they could quickly contact non-
Jews of wealth, position, and influence connected with both Church and State. Then, by using
the age-old methods of bribery, corruption and graft, they could make them become willing, or
unwilling, disciples of Illuminism. They could make them preach the inversion of the Ten
Commandments of God. They could make them advocate atheistic-materialism.
Once this policy had been decided upon, agents of the Supreme Council contacted the Marquis
of Mirabeau as the most likely person in France to serve their ends. He belonged to the
nobility. He had great influence in court circles, he was an intimate friend of the Duc D’Orleans
whom they had decided they would use as Front Man to lead the French Revolution. But more
important still, the Marquis of Mirabeau was devoid of morals and his licentious excesses had
led him heavily into debt.
It was a simple matter for the money-lenders to have their agents contact Mirabeau, the famous
French orator. Under the guise of friends and admirers they offered to help him out of his
financial difficulties. What they actually did was lead him down the “Primrose Path” into the
very depths of vice and debauchery until he was so deeply in their debt that he was forced to do
their bidding. At a meeting to consolidate his debts, Mirabeau was introduced to Moses
Mendelssohn, one of the big Jewish financiers who took him in hand. Mendelssohn in due time
introduced Mirabeau to a woman, famous for her personal beauty and charm but without moral
scruples.
This stunning Jewess was married to a man named Herz, but, to a man like Mirabeau, the fact
that she was married only made her more desirable. It wasn’t long before she was spending
more time with Mirabeau than she was spending with her husband. Heavily in debt to
Mendelssohn, tightly ensnared by Mrs. Herz, Mirabeau was completely helpless ... He had
swallowed their bait hook, line, and sinker. But, like good fishermen, they played him gently
for a time. If they exerted too great a pressure the leader might break and their fish might get
away. Their next move was to have him initiated into Illuminism. He was sworn to secrecy and
unlimited obedience under pain of death. The next move was to lead him into compromising
situations which mysteriously became public. This method of destroying a man’s character
became known as the practice of L’Infamie. Because of scandals and organized detraction,
Mirabeau was ostracized by many of his social equals. His resentment produced a desire for
revenge and thus he embraced the revolutionary Cause.
Mirabeau’s task was to induce the Duc D’Orleans to lead the Revolutionary Movement in
France. It was implied that once the King had been forced to abdicate he would become the
Democratic Ruler of France. The real plotters of the French Revolution were careful not to let
either Mirabeau or the Duc D’Orleans know they intended to murder the King and Queen, and
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_03.html (9 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:25William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 3
thousands of the nobility. They made Mirabeau and the Duc D’Orleans believe that the purpose
of the revolution was to free politics and religion from superstition and despotism. Another
factor which made the men who were The Secret Power behind the revolutionary movement
decide that the Duc D’Orleans should be their Front man was the fact that he was Grand Master
of French Freemasonry.
Adam Weishaupt was given the task of adapting the ritual and rites of Illuminism for use of
initiation into the Grand Orient Masonry. He also lived in Frankfort, Germany. Mirabeau
introduced the Duc D’Orleans and his friend Talleyrand to Weishaupt who initiated them into
the secrets of Grand Orient Masonry. By the end of 1773 Phillipe, Duc D’Orleans had
introduced the Grand Orient Ritual into French Freemasonry. By 1788 there were more than
two thousand lodges in France affiliated with Grand Orient Masonry and the number of
individual adepts exceeded one hundred thousand. Thus the Jewish Illuminati under Moses
Mendelssohn was introduced into Continental Freemasonry by Weishaupt under the guise of
Lodges of the Grand Orient. The Jewish Illuminati next organized secret revolutionary
committees within the lodges. Thus the revolutionary underground directors were established
throughout France.
Once Mirabeau had succeeded in having the Duc D’Orleans amalgamate the Blue or National
freemasonry in France with the Grand Orient rites, he led his friend down the same “Primrose
Path” which had led to his own social ostracism. In exactly four years, the Duc D’Orleans was
so heavily in debt that he was PERSUADED to engage in every form of illegal traffic and trade to
recuperate his losses. But in some mysterious manner his ventures always seemed to go wrong
and he lost more and more money.
By 1780 he owed 800,000 livres. Once again the money-lenders came forward and offered him
advice in regard to his business transactions and financial aid. They very nicely manoeuvred
him into the position of signing over to them as security for their loans, his palace, his estates,
his house, and the Palais Royal. The Duc D’Orleans signed an agreement under which his
Jewish financiers were authorized to manage his properties and estates so as to ensure him
sufficient income to meet his financial obligations and leave him a steady and adequate income.
The Duc D’Orleans had never been too bright in regard to financial matters. To him the
agreement he signed with his Jewish Bankers appeared to be a sound financial deal. They had
offered to manage his business affairs and turn them from a dismal failure into a great financial
success. What more could he want ? It is doubtful if the Duc D’Orleans even suspected that
there was a nigger hidden deep in the wood-pile. It is doubtful if he even suspected he had sold
himself body and soul to the Agents of the Devil... But he had done so. He was completely in
their hands. [8]
The Secret Powers directing the French Revolution appointed Choderlos de Laclos to manage
the Palais Royal and the Duc D’Orleans’ estates. De Laclos is thought to have been a Jew of
Spanish origin. When he was appointed manager of the Palais Royal he was acclaimed as the
author of Les Liaisons Dangereuses and other pornographic works. He publicly defended his
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_03.html (10 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:25William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 3
extreme immorality on the grounds that he studied the politics of love in all its varied aspects
because of his love of politics.
It matters little who Choderlos de Laclos was, it is what he did that is of importance. He turned
the Palais Royal into the greatest and most notorious house of ill-fame the world has ever
known. In the Palais Royal he established every kind of lewd entertainment, licentious conduct,
shameless shows, obscene picture galleries, pornographic libraries, and staged public
exhibitions of the most bestial forms of sexual depravity. Special opportunities were provided
for men and women who wished to indulge in every form of debauchery. The Palais Royal
became the centre in which details of the campaign for the systematic destruction of the French
religious faith and public morals were conceived and carried out. This was done on the
Cabalistic theory that the best revolutionary is a youth devoid of morals.
Associated with de Laclos was a Jew from Palermo named Cagliostro, alias Joseph Balsamo.
He turned one of the Duc’s properties into a printing house from which he issued revolutionary
pamphlets. Balsamo organized a staff of revolutionary propagandists. In addition to literature
they organized concerts, and plays, and debates calculated to appeal to the very lowest instincts
of human nature and further the revolutionary cause. Balsamo also organized the Spy-rings
which enabled the men who were The Secret Power behind the revolutionary movement to put
into operation their plan of L’Infamie to be used for systematic character assassination.
Men and women, who were enticed into the Web spun by de Laclos and Balsamo, could be
blackmailed into doing their bidding. Thus it was the Duc D’Orleans’ estates were turned into
the Centre of Revolutionary Politics while, under the guise of Lecture Halls, Theatres, Art
Galleries, and Athletic Clubs, the gambling rooms, brothels, and wine and drug shops did a
roaring trade. In this revolutionary underworld potential leaders were first ensnared. Their
consciences were at first deadened by evil associations and then killed by indulgence in evil
practices. The estates of the Duc D’Orleans were turned into factories in which the Secret
Power behind the World Revolutionary Movement manufactured the Pieces they intended to
use in their game of International Chess. Scudder, who wrote “Prince of the Blood” says of the
Palais Royal : “It gave the police more to do than all other parts of the city”. But as far as the
public was concerned, this infamous place was owned by the Duc D’Orleans, the cousin of the
king. Only a mere handful of men and women knew that the moneylenders controlled it and
used it to create a revolutionary organization which was to be the instrument of their revenge
and their manual of action to further their secret aims and ambitions.
After the secret documents found on the body of the Courier had been read by the police, the
documents were passed on to the Bavarian Government. The Bavarian Government ordered the
police to raid the headquarters of the Illuminati. Further evidence was obtained which exposed
the wide-spread ramifications of the World Revolutionary Movement. The Governments of
France, England, Poland, Germany, Austria and Russia were informed of the International
Nature of the revolutionary plot, but as has happened repeatedly since, the governments
concerned took no serious action to stop the diabolical conspiracy. Why ? The only answer to
this question is this : The power of the men behind the world revolutionary movement is greater
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_03.html (11 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:25William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 3
than the power of any elected government. This fact will be proved time and time again as the
story unfolds.
The malevolent men who plot and plan the W.R.M. have an another advantage over decent
people. The average person, who believes in God and finds pleasure and enjoyment in the
beautiful things with which God has blessed us, just cannot bring himself, or herself, to believe
a diabolical plan of hatred and revenge could be conceived by human beings. Although all
Christians believe most sincerely that the Grace of God enters their own souls as the result of
attending their religious services, receiving the Sacraments, and saying their prayers, they
cannot make themselves believe that through the ceremonies and Rites of the Illuminati, be it
the Semitic Cabala or the Aryan Pagan Grand Orient type, the Devil does inoculate his evil
influence and powers into the hearts and souls of the men and women who accept, as their
religion, Satanism or atheism, and put the theories of their High Priests into practice.
A few illustrations will be given to show how individuals and governments have remained just
as stupid and naive in regard to warnings given them concerning the evil mechanism of the real
leaders of the World Revolutionary Movement.
After various governments failed to act on the information made known by the Bavarian police
in 1785, the sister of Marie Antoinette wrote her personal letters warning her of the
revolutionary plot; the connection of the International Bankers; the part Freemasonry was
destined to play, and her own danger. Marie Antoinette (1755 - 1793) was the daughter of the
Emperor Francis I of Austria. She married Louis XVI of France. She just couldn’t bring herself
to believe the terrible things her own sister told her were being plotted by the Illuminati. To the
repeated warnings sent by her sister, Marie Antoinette wrote long letters in reply. In regard to
her sister’s claim that evidence had been obtained that the Illuminati operating under the guise
of Philanthropic Freemasonry planned to destroy both the Church and State in France, Marie
Antoinette replied : “I believe that as far as France is concerned, you worry too much about
Freemasonry. Here it is far from having the significance it may have elsewhere in Europe.”
How wrong she proved to be is a matter of history. Because she refused consistently to heed
her sister’s repeated warnings she and her husband died under the guillotine.
Between 1917 and 1919 the British Government was given full particulars regarding the
international bankers who were at that time The Secret Power behind the W.R.M. The
information was submitted officially by British Intelligence Officers, American Intelligence
Officers and confirmed by Mr. Oudendyke and Sir M. Findlay. Mr. Oudendyke was the
representative of the Netherlands Government in St. Petersburg (now Leningrad) at the time.
He looked after Britain’s interests after The Mob had wrecked the British Embassy, and killed
Commander E.N. Cromie. This aspect of the W.R.M. is dealt with in detail in subsequent
chapters on Russia.
The majority of students of history believe Marie Antoinette was a woman who entered fully
into the spirit and gaiety of the French Court. It is generally accepted as a fact that she engaged
in many affairs d’amour with her husband’s close friends, and indulged in reckless
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_03.html (12 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:25William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 3
extravagances. That is the picture Balsamo and his propagandists painted of her. The fact that
they made their L’Infamie stick enabled them to have the mob demand her life. But their
version of the conduct of Marie Antoinette is a pack of lies, as historians have proved. The
fortitude with which she bore the sufferings inflicted upon her by her enemies, the dignity with
which she met her fate, and the resignation and courage with which she offered up her life on
the scaffold, cannot be reconciled with the characteristics of a wanton woman.
In order to defame Marie Antoinette, Weishaupt and Mendelssohn thought up the idea of the
Diamond Necklace. At the time, the financial resources of France were at their lowest ebb and
the government of France was begging the International Money-Barons to grant them further
credit. A secret agent of the arch-conspirators ordered a fabulous diamond necklace to be made
by the Court Jewellers. The order for this necklace, the estimated value of which was a quarter
of a million livres, was placed in the name of the Queen. When the Court Jewellers brought the
Diamond Necklace to the Queen for her acceptance she refused to have anything to do with it.
She disclaimed all knowledge of the transaction. But the news of the fabulous necklace leaked
out as the plotters intended it should. Balsamo put his propaganda machine into operation.
Marie Antoinette was deluged with criticism; her character was smeared; her reputation
dragged in the mire by a whispering campaign of character assassination. And, as usual,
nobody could ever put a finger on the person or persons who started the slanders. After this
build-up, Balsamo uncorked his own special master-piece. His printing presses turned out
thousands upon thousands of pamphlets which claimed a secret lover of the Queen’s had sent
the necklace as a mark of appreciation for her favours.
But those who operated L’Infamie thought up even more diabolical slanders to circulate
regarding the Queen. They wrote a letter to Cardinal Prince de Rohan to which they forged the
signature of the Queen. In the letter he was asked to meet her at the Palais Royal about
midnight to discuss the matter of the diamond necklace. A prostitute from the Palais Royal was
engaged to disguise herself as the Queen, and involve the Cardinal. The incident was played up
in newspapers and pamphlets and the foulest innuendoes were circulated involving two of the
highest personages of both Church and State.
History records that after the diamond necklace had served its foul purpose it was taken over to
England and taken apart. A Jew named Eliason is said to have retained the majority of the
valuable diamonds used in its original composition.
Another piece of evidence which connects the English Jewish moneylenders with the plot to
bring about the French Revolution was unearthed by Lady Queensborough, author of “Occult
Theocrasy”. While doing some research work she read a copy of “L’Anti-Semitisme” written
by a Jew named Bernard Lazare and published in 1849. With the leads obtained from this book
Lady Queensborough claims Benjamin Goldsmid, his brother Abraham, and their partner Moses
Mecatta, and his nephew Sir Moses Montifiore, were Jewish financiers in England who were
definitely affiliated with their continental Jewish brethren in the plot to bring about the
revolution in France. Further evidence was found to tie Daniel Itsig of Berlin, and his son-in-
law David Friedlander, and Herz Gergbeer of Alsace in with the Rothschilds and the plot. Thus
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_03.html (13 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:25William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 3
are revealed the men who at that time constituted the Secret Power behind the World
Revolutionary Movement.
Knowledge of the methods these men used to manoeuvre the French Government into financial
difficulty is of importance, because it set the pattern they followed in America, Russia, Spain
and other countries afterwards.
Sir Walter Scott in Vol. two of The Life of Napoleon, gives a clear story of the initial moves.
He then sums up the situation with these words — “These financiers used the Government
(French) as bankrupt prodigals are treated by usurious money-lenders who, feeding the
extravagance with one hand, with the other wring out of their ruined fortunes the most
unreasonable recompenses for their advances. By a long succession of these ruinous loans, and
various rights granted to guarantee them, the whole finances of France were brought to a total
confusion”. [9]
After the Government of France was forced into the position of seeking huge loans because of
debts incurred in fighting wars to further the secret ambitions of the International Conspirators,
they very kindly offered to supply the money providing they could write the terms of the
agreement. On the surface their terms were most lenient. But again they had placed a nigger in
the wood-pile in the person of one M. Necker. He was to be appointed to the French King’s
Council as his Chief Minister of Financial Affairs. The Jewish financiers pointed out that this
financial wizard would pull France out of her monetary troubles in less than no time at all.
What he actually did during the next four years was to involve the French Government so badly
with the Jewish financiers that the National Debt increased to £170,000,000.
Captain A.H.M. Ramsay sums up the situation aptly in The Nameless War. He says :
“Revolution is a blow struck at a paralytic. ... When the debt-grip has been firmly established,
control of every form of publicity and political activity soon follows, together with a full grip on
industrialists, [both management and labour]. The stage is then set for the revolutionary blow.
The grip of the right hand of finance establishes the paralysis; while the revolutionary left hand
that holds the dagger and deals the fatal blow. Moral corruption facilitates the whole process.”
While Balsamo’s propaganda sheets damned the higher officials of both Church and State,
special agents of the Illuminati organized the men who were to be used as leaders in the Reign
of Terror planned to accompany the revolutionary effort. Among these leaders were
Robespierre, Danton, and Marat. To conceal their real purpose, the men who were to release the
prisoners and lunatics to create the necessary atmosphere for instituting the preconceived Reign
of Terror, met in the Jacobean Convent. Within the walls of the sacred edifice the details of the
bloody plan were worked out. The lists of reactionaries marked down for liquidation were
compiled. It was explained that while the criminals and lunatics ran wild terrorizing the
population by committing mass murders and publicly performing rapes, the organized
underground workers, under direction of Manuel, Procurer of the Commune, would round up all
the important political figures, heads of the clergy, and military officers known to be loyal to the
King. [10] The men who were to emerge from the Jewish organized underground were formed
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_03.html (14 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:25William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 3
into Jacobin Clubs. Under leaders, who were well versed in the duties required of them to direct
the “Reign of Terror”, they conducted the mass atrocities so they would serve the purpose of
their hidden masters, and move them further towards their ultimate goal.
________________________
1 These were the original theories on which Class War was ultimately organized.
2 This statement in the original documents [What original documents ?] should convince all but the biased that the
speaker was not a Rabbi or Elder of the Jews nor was he addressing Elders and Rabbis because it was the
Goldsmiths, the money-lenders and their affiliates in commerce and industry who in 1773 had the wealth of the
world in their hands as they have it still in their hands in the 20th Century.
3 The Red Fog explains how this theory has been put into effect in America since 1900.
4 The word “agentur” means the complete organized body of agents ... spies, counter-spies, blackmailers,
saboteurs, underworld characters, and everything and every body outside the LAW which enables the international
conspirators to further their secret plans and ambitions.
5 The word “Goyim” means all others than their own group. The unimportant people.
6 The “Lexicon of Life” he referred to, was Almighty God’s plan of creation.
7 There were also thirteen tribes of Israel which could have some bearing on the matter of numbers.
8 The same Evil Geniuses used their agents to involve William Pitt in debt and forced him to resign as Prime
Minister of England because during the early part of his ministry he obstinately refused to allow England to become
involved in wars they planned to further their own secret plans and ambitions. Pitt had learned a great deal
regarding the part the International Money-Barons played in International Affairs when Chancellor of the
Exchequer — 1785.
9 Because of his alleged anti-semitic utterances Sir Walter Scott’s important works consisting of a total of nine
volumes dealing with many phases of the French Revolution have been given the silent treatment by those who
control the publishing houses as well as the biggest portion of the press. They are almost unattainable except in
Museum Libraries and are never listed with his other works.
*// It was attainable in 1958, and today it is on-line. Several editions of it were published, and in the first half of the
19th. century a generation of Americans learned the history of the revolution and Napoleon from it.
John S.C. Abbott on Scott’s History :—
“ Bowed down with adversity and overwhelmed with debt, to extricate himself he performed the herculean task of
writing the life of Napoleon in one year. He had no time for investigation. Writing with the utmost rapidity, he
could only record, in those glowing words which his genius ever dictated, the current rumors respecting Napoleon
which were at his hand in the English journals. The success of his enterprise depended upon his writing a book
adapted to the prejudices of the higher classes of English society. And he doubtless thought that the views
cherished by the English aristocracy were correct. Himself a high Tory in political principles, and breathing the
very atmosphere of hostility to all democratic tendencies, it would be demanding too much of frail human nature us
expect, from his pen, an impartial delineation of the career of the great foe of aristocratic privilege.”
10 Sir Walter Scott — “Life of Napoleon”, Vol. 2, P. 30 says “The demand of the Communauté de Paris, now the
Sanhedrin of the Jacobin, was of course, for blood.”
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_03.html (15 of 15)5.4.2006 12:13:25William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 4
Guy Carr
Pawns in the Game
C HAPTER F OUR
The Downfall of Napoleon
The international bankers planned the French Revolution so they could become The Secret
Power behind the governments of Europe and further their Long Range Plans.
With the outbreak of the revolution the Jacobins took over control. They were men who had
been hand picked by the Illuminati and Grand Orient Masonry. They used the Duc D’Orleans
to serve their purpose right up to the time he was required to vote for the death of his cousin the
King. The Duc believed he would be made the constitutional monarch, but the Jacobins had
other instructions. Once he had voted for the death of the King, and assumed the blame, he left
the real plotters free from suspicion. Then those who comprised The Secret Power behind the
revolution ordered him liquidated also. They switched the full force of their propaganda, and
L’Infamie, against him. In an unbelievably short time, he was on his way to the guillotine.
While riding over the cobble stones on the death-cart he heard himself reviled, and execrated,
by all classes of the people.
Once Mirabeau realized what a terrible instrument of vengeance he had helped to bring into
being, he repented. Wild and dissolute as he had been, he just couldn’t stomach witnessing the
terrible and shocking atrocities which the Jacobins were systematically perpetrating on all those
who were Fingered for outrage and death by their secret masters. Mirabeau was actually
opposed to any violence being done to the King. His personal plan had been to reduce Louis
XVI to a Limited Monarch, and then have himself appointed his chief advisor. When he
realized that his Masters were determined to kill the King he tried to arrange for Louis to escape
from Paris so he could place himself under the protection of his loyal Generals who still
commanded his army. When his plans were betrayed to the Jacobins, Mirabeau was ordered
liquidated also. In his case a public execution could not be arranged because his enemies did
not consider they had time to frame charges against him and make them stick, so he was
poisoned. His death was made to look like suicide. A book was written about The Diamond
Necklace already referred to. In it is the significant remark “Louis was not ignorant of the fact
that Mirabeau had been poisoned”.
Danton and Robespierre were the two devil’s incarnates who stepped up the Reign of Terror
designed by the Illuminati to give them revenge upon their enemies, and to remove personages
they considered obstacles in their path. Yet, when they had served their purpose, their two chief
executioners were arrested and charged with their many infamies and then executed. [1]
Lafayette was a Mason. He was a good man. He joined the revolutionary forces because he
honestly believed revolutionary action was necessary to bring about much needed reforms
speedily. But Lafayette never thought for a moment he was leading the people of France from
their old oppression into a new subjection. When he tried to save the King he was packed off to
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_04.html (1 of 10)5.4.2006 12:13:32William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 4
fight a war in Austria. Since the French Revolution of 1789, up to the revolutions going on to-
day, the Secret Power behind them have used many Duc D’Orleans, Mirabeaus and Lafayettes.
Although the men have borne different names they have all been used as tools and played
similar parts. They have been used to foment the revolutions and, after having served their
purpose, they have been liquidated by the very men they served. Their deaths are always so
arranged that they die under a blanket of guilt which should rightfully have covered the
shoulders of the men who still remain The Secret Power behind the scenes in International
Intrigue.
Sir Walter Scott understood a great deal about how The Secret Power behind the French
Revolution worked. Any person who reads his Life of Napoleon will sense that the author
thought he detected the Jewish origin of the plots. [2]
Sir Walter points out that the real key figures in the revolution were mostly foreigners. He
observed that they used typically Jewish terms such as Directors and Elders, in their work. He
points out that a man named Manuel was in some mysterious manner appointed Procurer of the
Commune. Sir Walter states that this one man was responsible for the arrest and detention, in
prisons all over France, of the victims of the pre-arranged massacres which took place in
September 1792. During the massacres 8,000 victims were murdered in the prisons of Paris
alone. Sir Walter also noted that the Communauté de Paris (the Paris County Council) became
the SANHEDRIN of the Jacobins who cried for blood and more blood. Scott relates that until they
had served their purpose Robespierre, Danton, and Marat shared the high places in the
SYNAGOGUE of the Jacobins. (My emphasis) It was Manuel who sparked the attack against
King Louis and Marie Antoinette which finally led them to the guillotine. Manuel was well
supported by a man named David who, as a leading member of the Committee of Public
security, tried Manuel’s many victims. David’s voice always called for blood and death.
Sir Walter records that David used to preface his “bloody work of the day with the professional
phrase Let us grind enough of the Red.” It was David who introduced The Cult of the Supreme
Being. The heathen ritual was Cabalistic mummery which was substituted for every external
sign of rational devotion. Scott also mentions that Choderlos de Laclos, thought to have been of
Spanish origin, was manager of the Palais Royal which played such a devilish part in the
preparations for the outbreak of the Revolution. Another matter of importance is this : After
Robespierre had been ordered liquidated two men named Reubel and Gohir were appointed
Directors of The Council of Elders. With three others they became the actual government of
France for a time. The five men referred to were known as The Directoires. It is a very
remarkable fact that Sir Walter Scott’s Life of Napoleon (in nine volumes) which reveals so
much of the real truth is practically unknown.
Mention must be made of G. Renier’s Life of Robespierre. He writes as if some of the secrets
were known to him. He says : “From April 27th to July 28th, 1794 (when Robespierre was
defeated), the reign of terror was at its height. It was never a dictatorship of a single man, least
of all Robespierre. Some 20 men shared in the power”. Then again — “On July 28th
Robespierre made a long speech before the Convention ... a Philippic against ultra-terrorists ...
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_04.html (2 of 10)5.4.2006 12:13:32William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 4
during which he uttered vague and general accusations”. Robespierre is quoted to have said “I
dare not name them at this moment and in this place. I cannot bring myself entirely to tear
asunder the veil that covers this profound mystery of iniquity. But I can affirm most positively
that among the authors of this plot are the agents of that system of corruption and extravagance,
the most powerful of all the means invented by the Foreigners for the undoing of the Republic :
I mean the impure apostles of Atheism; and the immorality that is its base”. Mr. Renier
added : “Had he (Robespierre) not spoken these words he might still have triumphed”.
Robespierre had said too much. He was deliberately shot in the jaw to silence him effectively
until he could be dragged to the guillotine the following day. Thus another Mason, who knew
too much, was disposed of. As the events which led up to the Russian and Spanish revolutions
are reviewed, it will be shown that the Hidden Revolutionary Section of the Illuminati within
the Grand Orient Lodges of Continental Freemasonry was the instrument of the men who
constituted The Secret Power behind the World Revolutionary Movement. Thousands of
individuals are publicly blamed, and many organizations brought into disrepute, simply because
it was within the power of the secret leaders of the W.R.M. to saddle them with the blame for
their crimes and thus conceal their own identity. There are not many people living to-day who
know that Robespierre, Marat and Danton, were only the instruments used by the thirteen
directors of the Illuminati who plotted and directed the Great French Revolution. It was the
men behind the scene who preconceived the pattern of The Reign of Terror as the means of
gratifying their desire for revenge. Only during a Reign of Terror could they remove human
obstacles from their path.
Having run out of victims, the men who directed the French Revolution decided to engage in
international intrigue again. For the purpose of increasing their economic and political power
Anselm Mayer Rothschild trained his son Nathan Mayer for the special purpose of opening up a
House of Rothschild in London, England. His intention was to consolidate, more strongly than
ever, the connections between the men who controlled the Bank of England and those who
controlled the Banks of France, Germany and Holland. Nathan undertook this important task at
the age of 21. He tripled his fortune. The Bankers then decided to use Napoleon as the
Instrument of their will. They organized the Napoleonic Wars to topple several more of the
Crowned Heads of Europe.
After Napoleon swept over Europe he pronounced himself Emperor in 1804. He appointed his
brother Joseph, King of Naples. Louis, King of Holland; Jerome, King of Westphalia. At the
same time Nathan Rothschild arranged matters so that his four brothers became the kings of
finance in Europe. They were the Secret Power behind the newly established thrones. The
international money-lenders set up headquarters in Switzerland. It was agreed between them
that, in their interests, and for their security, Switzerland should be kept neutral in all disputes.
In their Swiss headquarters at Geneva they organized the different combines and cartels on an
international scale. They arranged things so that no matter who fought who, or who won and
who lost, the members of the International Money-Lenders Pool made more and more money.
This group of men soon obtained control of the munition plants, the ship-building industry, the
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_04.html (3 of 10)5.4.2006 12:13:32William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 4
mining industry, chemical plants, drug supply depots, steel mills, etc. The only fly in the
ointment was the fact that Napoleon grew more and more egotistical until he finally had the
temerity to denounce them publicly. Thus he also decided his own fate. It was not the weather,
nor the cold, that turned his victorious invasion of Russia into one of the most tragic military
defeats the world has ever known. The failure of munitions and supplies to reach his armies
was due to the sabotaging of his lines of communications.
The secret strategy used to defeat Napoleon, and force his abdication, has been accepted as
essential for all revolutionary efforts since that date. It is very simple. The leaders of the
revolutionary movement arrange to place their agents secretly in key positions in the
departments of supply, communication, transport and intelligence, of the armed forces they plan
to overthrow. By sabotaging supplies, intercepting orders, issuing contradictory messages,
tying up or misrouting transports, and by counter intelligence work, revolutionary leaders have
discovered they can create utter chaos in the most efficient military organization on land, at sea,
or in the air. Ten Cells secretly placed in key positions are worth ten thousand men in the field.
The methods used to bring Napoleon to ruin in the early part of the nineteenth century were
used to bring about the defeat of the Russian Armies in the war against Japan in 1904, and again
to cause mutiny in the Russian Armies, in 1917, and mutiny in the German Army and Navy in
1918.
Communist infiltration into key positions was the real reason the German Generals asked for,
and were granted, an Armistice in November 1918. The same methods were used to destroy the
effectiveness of the Spanish Army, Navy and Air Force in 1936. Exactly the same tactics were
used to bring about the defeat of Hitler after his victorious advances into Russia in World War
Two. Thus history repeats itself, because the same powers use the same methods over and over
again. But most important of all, it was the descendants of the men who brought about
Napoleon’s downfall who brought about the defeat of China’s National Forces in 1945 and
onwards. Mysterious orders were given which caused millions upon millions of dollars worth
of arms and ammunition to be dumped into the Indian Ocean when they should have gone to
Chiang-Kai-Shek. The true story of the manner in which British and American politicians
betrayed our anti-Communist Chinese and Korean allies will prove that it was the agents of the
International Bankers, manoeuvring to let Communism obtain control of Asia, who deceived
and ill-advised our top-level statesmen. Communism is to-day what it always has been since
1773, — the instrument of destruction and the manual of action used by the international arch-
conspirators to further their own secret plans by which, in the final analysis, they intend to
obtain control of the wealth, natural resources, and manpower of the entire world.
History records how Napoleon was forced to abdicate in Paris in 1814, then he was sent into
exile on St. Elba, he escaped and tried to make a come-back, but he was playing against men
who use loaded dice. Nathan Rothschild, and his international clique, had backed Germany to
defeat Napoleon. They had planned to make money regardless of the outcome of the struggle.
When the Battle of Waterloo was about to be fought Nathan Rothschild was in Paris. He had
obtained, as his place of residence, a palace which overlooked that occupied by Louis XVIII.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_04.html (4 of 10)5.4.2006 12:13:32William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 4
He could, when he wished, look right into the window of the palace occupied by the aspirant to
the throne of France. He had arranged also to have agents on the field of battle despatch to him
by carrier pigeon information regarding the fighting. Nathan Rothschild also arranged to have
false information sent to England by carrier pigeons regarding the results of the battle. Once he
was sure Wellington had been victorious he had his agents inform the British public that
Wellington had been defeated and that Napoleon was on the rampage again. The fact that
carrier-pigeons played such an important role in this conspiracy gave birth to the expression A
little bird told me. (If a person in England asks another “Where did you get that information ?”
the person questioned will most likely say “Oh ! A little bird told me”, and let it go at that).
Nathan Rothschild’s little birds told lies of such magnitude, regarding the battle of Waterloo,
that the people of Britain went into a panic. The bottom dropped out of the stock market.
English pounds could be bought, for a Song or a shilling. Values of everything fell to an all
time low. Nathan chartered a small vessel for the sum of £2,000 to take him from France to
England. Upon arrival he, and his financial associates, bought up all the stocks, bonds, shares,
other properties, and securities they could get their hands on. When the truth regarding
Wellington’s victory became known, values returned to normal. The International money-
lenders made astronomical fortunes.
Why they were not assassinated by some of the people they ruined is beyond comprehension.
As a token of their joy and gratitude for the marvellous feat of arms performed by Wellington
and Blücher, the Rothschilds LOANED England £18,000,000 and Prussia £5,000,000 of this ill-
gotten gain, TO REPAIR THE DAMAGES OF WAR . When Nathan Rothschild died in 1836, he had
secured control of the Bank of England and the National Debt which, after his big financial
killing in 1815, reached £885,000,000.
It is most unlikely that one Freemason in a thousand knows the TRUE story of how the heads of
the Grand Orient Illuminati infiltrated their agents into Continental Freemasonry. Because the
facts related are the truth, the Grand Masters of English Freemasons have warned their Brother
Masons that they must have no truck with Grand Orient Masons or affiliate with them in any
way. The fact that The Revolutionary Illuminati established itself within Continental
Freemasonry, caused Pope Pius IX to publicly denounce Communism, and prohibit Catholics
from becoming Masons. To convince any reader, who may still have doubts, regarding the part
Freemasonry played in the French Revolution, part of a debate, which took place on the subject
in the French Chamber of Deputies in 1904, will be quoted. The Marquis of Rosanbe, after
some searching questions related to proving French Freemasonry was the author of the French
Revolution said : “We are then in complete agreement on the point that Freemasonry was the
only author of the revolution, and the applause which I receive from the Left, and to which I am
little accustomed, proves gentlemen, that you acknowledge with me that it was Masonry which
made the French Revolution ?”
To this statement M. Jumel, a well known Grand Orient Mason, replied : “We do more than
acknowledge it ... we proclaim it”. [4]
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_04.html (5 of 10)5.4.2006 12:13:32William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 4
In 1923 at a big banquet attended by many men prominent in International Affairs, some of
whom were connected with the League of Nations organization, the President of the Grand
Orient gave this toast. — “To the French Republic, daughter of French Freemasonry. To the
universal republic of to-morrow, daughter of universal Masonry.” [5]
To prove that The Grand Orient Freemasons have controlled French politics from 1923 onwards
a brief review of historical events will be given. The most important victory the International
Bankers gained, after their agents had acted as advisors to the political leaders who devised and
finally ratified the infamous Treaty of Versailles, was to have M. Herriot elected to power in
France in 1924. Every political policy dictated by the heads of Grand Orient Freemasonry in
1923 was put into effect by the Herriot Government within a year.
1. In January 1923 the G.O.L. (Grand Orient Lodges) decreed the suppression of the embassy to
the Vatican. The French Parliament carried out this order October 24th, 1924.
2. In 1923 the G.O.L. demanded the triumph of the idea of Laicity (this is the primary principle
essential to the establishment of the Grand Orient’s ideology of an Atheistic State) Herriot made his
public ministerial declaration in favour of this policy June 17th, 1924.
3. On January 31st, 1923 the G.O.L. demanded a full and complete amnesty for condemned
persons and traitors. Several prominent Communist leaders were to benefit, amongst them Marty
who afterwards became notorious as the organizer of the International Brigades which fought on
the Communist side in Spain 1936-39. The Chamber of Deputies voted for a general Amnesty July
15th, 1924 and thus turned loose on an unsuspecting society a number of International Gangsters
whose master was the Supreme Council of Grand Orient Masonry, the Illuminati.
4. In October 1922 the G.O.L. had started a campaign to popularize the idea that diplomatic
relations be opened with the SOVIET Government as established in Moscow. This movement didn’t
get very far until after the election of M. Herriot to power. This Friendship with Russia campaign
was started in France when the Bulletine Official de la Grand Loge de France published an article
on the subject in the October issue of 1922 on page 286. Political relations were established with
the Communist Revolutionary Leaders by Herriot on October 28th, 1924. [6] The same forces of
evil are advocating the recognition of Red China to-day.
One of the leaders of the Grand Orient at this time was Leon Blum. He was being primed to
become a political instrument ready to do the bidding of his leaders. High-ranking members of
the Military Lodges in Spain who defected (after they found out they were being used as tools
by leaders of the W.R.M.), disclosed that every Grand Orient Mason was required to take an
oath of UNLIMITED OBEDIENCE to the head of the Council of Thirty Three and to recognize no
human as above him. An oath of this kind taken by an avowed atheist literally means that he
recognized the State as above everything else, and the head of the State as his God. A great deal
of detail about Grand Orient intrigue in France and Spain, from 1923 to 1939 is told in The
Spanish Arena written by William Foss and Cecil Gerahty and published by The Right Book
Club, London, England, in 1939. To establish continuity of the International Banker’s plot, it is
sufficient to touch on just a few highlights.
Leon Blum was born in Paris in 1872 of Jewish parents. He was noted for the part he played in
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_04.html (6 of 10)5.4.2006 12:13:32William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 4
the Dreyfus affair. He was elected French Premier June 1936. He retained office until June
1937. He was re-elected in March, and remained until April 1937. His supporters managed to
get him back into politics as Vice-Premier June 1937 to January 1938. Mendes-France is being
used the same way to-day.
During the whole of this time Leon Blum’s task was to mould French governmental policy so
that it would aid the plans of the leaders of the W.R.M. in regard to Spain. In order to throw
suspicion away from themselves the arch-conspirators made it appear that it was Franco, and his
military associates, who were the planners and plotters of the events which led up to the Civil
War in Spain. It is now proved that Stalin, and his revolutionary experts the Comintern, were
the conspirators who carried out the plans of The Secret Power behind the W.R.M. They
planned to duplicate what they had achieved in both the French Revolution in 1789, and the
Russian Revolution in 1917. As early as 1929 M. Gustave pointed out in his paper “La
Victoire” the truth regarding Leon Blum and his associates. He had the courage to declare :
“The Collectivist Party of Leon Blum, the second branch of Freemasonry ... is not only anti-
religious, but a party of class-war, and of social revolution”.
Leon Blum put into effect the plans of the leaders of the W.R.M. to supply Spanish Loyalists
with arms, munitions, and finances. He was instrumental in keeping the Pyrenees open but he
followed a onesided policy of non-intervention ... It only applied to the Nationalists of Franco’s
forces.
Evidence is produced, in the chapters dealing with the revolution in Spain, to prove that the
French and Spanish Grand Orient Lodges were the line of communications between the
directors of the W.R.M. and their agents in Moscow, Madrid and Vienna. [7]
Should the reader think too much importance is being placed on the influence Grand Orient
Masonry has on International Affairs A.G. Michel, author of La Dictature de la Franc-
Maçonnerie sur la France, gives evidence to prove that the Grand Orient of France decreed in
1924, to make The League of Nations “An international tool for Freemasonry”. Trotsky wrote
in his book Stalin : “To-day there is a Tower of Babel at the service of Stalin, and one of its
principal centres is Geneva, that hot-bed of intrigue.”
The importance of what Trotsky says lies in the fact that the accusations he made regarding the
evil influence of Grand Orient Masons within the League of Nations applies equally to the bad
influence they have in the United Nations to-day. The student who studies to-day’s happenings
in the United Nations will see their handiwork especially in regard to strange policies which just
don’t make sense to the average man-in-the-street. But these strange policies become extremely
clear if we study them to see how they will further the long range plan of the W.R.M. To do
this we only have to remember one or two important facts : First, that the Illuminati consider it
necessary to destroy all existing forms of constitutional government, regardless of whether they
be monarchy or republic; Second, that they intend to introduce a World Dictatorship just as
soon as they consider they are securely in position to usurp absolute control. M.J. Marques-
Rivière [8] had this to say “The centre of the International Freemasons is at Geneva. The offices
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_04.html (7 of 10)5.4.2006 12:13:32William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 4
of the International Masonic Association are at Geneva. This is the meeting place of delegates
of nearly all the forms of Masonry throughout the world. The interpretation of the League and
the I.M.A. is easy, apparent and confessed.”
One can well understand the exclamation in 1924 by Brother Barcia, Past Grand Master of the
Spanish Grand Orient, at the Convent of the Grand Orient when he returned from Geneva : “I
have assisted at the work of the commissions. I have heard Paul-Boncour, Jeuhaux, Loucheur,
de Jouvenal. All the French had the same spirit. Beside me were representatives of American
Freemasons, and they asked each other : ‘Are we in a secular assembly or a Masonic Order ? ...
Brother Joseph Avenal is the Secretary-General of the League’.”
It is well to remember that the International Illuminati chose Geneva as their headquarters
nearly a century before the above event was recorded. They had, in accordance with their
policy, kept Switzerland a neutral nation in all international disputes because they had to have
one place where they could meet and instruct their agents who were doing their bidding and
carrying out their secret policies. The United States Government refused to join the League of
Nations. Certain interests promoted the Isolationist Policy. The Secret Powers were
determined to exploit those who honestly support the idea of a One World form of Super-
government to assure peace and prosperity. They determined to wreck the League of Nations
and substitute The United Nations. World War Two gave them this opportunity. In 1946 the
remnants of the League of Nations were picked up and used in the quilted pattern of the United
Nations which included the U.S.S.Rs. and the U.S.A. as the two most powerful members. The
fact that the United Nations gave Israel to the Political Zionists, which they had been after for
half a century, and on the advice of these same men, turned over China, Northern Korea,
Manchuria, Mongolia, the Dutch East Indies, and parts of Indo-China, to Communist leaders,
proves how successfully the Secret Powers laid, and carried out, their plans. It must be
remembered that Lenin predicted that the forces of Communism would, in all probability, sweep
over the western world from the East. People, who study the MERCATOR’S PROJECTION of the
world, fail to understand how the nations of the Far East could sweep over the nations of the
Western world like a tidal wave. To those who study Global War, Lenin’s statements are as
clear as crystal. What is even more important — When Lenin had outlived his useful ness he
died, or was removed. Few people can understand how it was that Stalin, by a few ruthless,
murderous moves, removed all those who, by reason of their activities in the Russian
Revolution, were considered better qualified for leadership in the U.S.S.Rs, and usurped power
for himself.
Those who study the W.R.M. from the evidence presented in this book will understand why
Stalin was chosen to follow Lenin. The old Joint Stock Company principle was being put into
effect again. American and British Intelligence Officers had exposed the part the International
Bankers had played in the Russian Revolution, to their Governments. In April 1919 the British
Government had issued a White Paper on this subject. It was quickly suppressed, but a certain
amount of damage had been done. The International Bankers had been accused of financing
International Jewry to put their plans for an International Dictatorship into effect. The
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_04.html (8 of 10)5.4.2006 12:13:32William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 4
International Bankers had to find some means of countering these impressions and ideas. The
true picture of their utter ruthlessness is seen when it is pointed out that Stalin, a Gentile, was
chosen by the International money-lenders, and that, acting on their instructions, he put Trotsky
out of the way and proceeded to liquidate hundreds of thousands of Russian Jews in the purges
which put him in power, following Lenin’s death. This should prove to sincere, but misguided
people, everywhere, that the International Bankers, and their carefully selected agents and
friends, don’t consider the MASSES of the people of any race, colour, or creed, as other than
expendable pawns in the game. It is true that many Jews became Communists and followers of
Karl Marx. They worked and fought to bring into being Karl Marx’s published theories for an
International of Soviet Socialist Republics. But they, like many Gentiles, were deceived. By
the time Stalin was firmly seated in Moscow as the head agent of the International Bankers, it
was difficult to find any members of the First and Second Internationals alive. The manner in
which the Arch-conspirators used Grand Orient Masons, and then had them liquidated as soon
as they had served their purpose, is just another illustration of the ruthlessness of those whose
only god is Satan.
Further evidence will be produced to prove that the International Bankers are not interested in
anything else other than obtaining for their own small and very select group, ultimate
undisputed control of the wealth, natural resources, and man-power of the entire world. [9] The
only honest thought in any of their minds is that they obviously believe that they are so superior
in mental ability to the rest of mankind that they are better able, than any other group of
individuals, to manage the World’s affairs. They are convinced that they can work out a plan of
world government that is better than God’s plan. For this reason they are determined to
ultimately obliterate from the minds of all human beings all knowledge of God and of His
Commandments and substitute their own New Order based on the theory that the State is
Supreme in all things and the Head of the State is, therefore, God Almighty upon this earth.
The attempted deification of Stalin is proof of this statement. Once people become convinced
of this great truth they will realize that men of all races, colours, and creeds have been used, and
are still being used, as “Pawns in the Game”.
________________________
1 It is of interest to note. Protocols of Zion Number 15 reads “We execute Masons in such wise that none save the
brotherhood can ever have a suspicion of it” — and again “In this way we shall proceed with those GOY masons
who get to know too much”. E. Scudder, in his “Life of Mirabeau” says — “He (Mirabeau) died at a moment when
the revolution might still have been checked”.
2 My investigations prove that the men who have constituted The Secret Powers behind the scenes of International
Intrigue and directed the W.R.M. and the Nazi plan for World Conquest, have not all been of Semitic origin or
members of the Jewish religion. I feel certain they were all of the llluminati, regardless of racial origin. Money-
Barons, Industrial Monopolists, Grasping Politicians, never hesitated to blame Jews and Gentiles alike, for the
crimes they committed against humanity.
3 The volumes are never mentioned or reprinted with his other works. They are almost unobtainable. As the story
of The Secret Power unfolds the reader will realize the importance of this significant fact which illustrates how the
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_04.html (9 of 10)5.4.2006 12:13:32William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 4
channels of publicity are controlled.
4 This was quoted in the Convent du Grand Orient 1923, p. 402, The Illuminati control masonry.
5 Henry Delassus’ passage quoted in La Conjuration Anti-Chrétienne Vol. I, p. 146; re-quoted in “The Spanish
Arena,” p. 143.
6 A.G. Michel in La Dictature de la Franc-Maçonnerie la France requoted in the Spanish Arena, p. 143.
7 All political events which have occured in France from the outbreak of world War Two to the recent refusal by
Mendes-France to agree to the E.D.C. must be studied, with due regard to the Long Range [Plan] of the Illuminati
whose agents, the grand Orient Freemasons, are members of all levels of the French government, and all political
parties. At the last check more than one hundred members of the French Parliament were Grand Orient Masons.
8 J. Marques-Rivière is the author of Comment la Franc-Maçonnerie fait une Révolution.
9 The reason the International Bankers backed Political Zionism from 1914 to date is explained in another chapter
dealing with events which led to World War Two. It is sufficient to say here that the International Bankers were
interested in securing control of the Five Trillion Dollars worth of minerals and oil which had been discovered in
Palestine by Cunningham-Craig, consulting Geologist to the British Government and others, prior to 1918. These
geological reports were kept secret. In 1939 Cunningham-Craig was recalled from Canada to make another survey
in the Middle East. He died under mysterious circumstances immediately after he had completed his task. To-day,
i.e. 1954, arrangements are being made quietly by the big money people to exploit these resources.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_04.html (10 of 10)5.4.2006 12:13:32CHAPTER FIVE
The American Revolution
http://www.bibliotecapleyades.net/sociopolitica/pawns_inthegame/pawns_05.htm
In  order  to  understand  how  men  who  obtained  control  of  the  Bank  of  England,  and  the  British
National  Debt,  also  obtained  control  of  the  trade  and  commerce,  and  the  monetary  system  of
Britain’s  American  colonies,  it  will  be  sufficient  if  we  pick  up  the  threads  of  the  story  at  the  time
Benjamin Franklin (1706‐1790) went over to England to represent the interests of the men who had
been associated with him in building up the prosperity of the American Colonies.
Robert  L.  Owen,  former  chairman,  Committee  on  Banking  and  Currency,  United  States  Senate,
explains the matter on page 98 of Senate Document No. 23. He states that when associates of the
Rothschild’s  asked  Franklin  how  he  accounted  for  the  prosperous  conditions  prevailing  in  the
colonies, he replied :  “That is simple — In the Colonies we issue our own money.  It is called Colonial
Script — We issue it in proper proportion to the demands of trade and industry.”
Robert  L.  Owen  remarked  that  not  very  long  after  the  Rothschilds  heard  of  this  they  realized  the
opportunity to exploit the situation with considerable profit to themselves.  The obvious thing to do
was to have a law passed prohibiting the Colonial officials from issuing their own money and make it
compulsory for them to obtain the money they required through the medium of the Banks. Amschel
Mayer Rothschild was still in Germany but he was supplying the British Government with Mercenary
Troops at £8 per man.  Such was his influence that in 1764 he succeeded, through the Directors of
the Bank of England, in having laws passed in accordance with his dictates.
The authorities in the Colonies had to discard their Script money.  They had to mortgage the Colonial
assets and securities to the Bank of England in order to borrow the money they needed to carry on
business.  Referring to those facts Benjamin Franklin stated.  
“In  one  year  the  conditions  were  so  reversed  that  the  era  of  prosperity  ended,  and  a
depression  set  in,  to  such  an  extent  that  the  streets  of  the  Colonies  were  filled  with
unemployed.”  
Franklin stated :  
“The  Bank  of  England  refused  to  give  more  than  50  per  cent  of  the  face  value  of  the
Script  when  turned  over  as  required  by  law.   The  circulating  medium  of  exchange  was
thus reduced by half”.1
Mr. Franklin disclosed the primary cause of the Revolution when he said:  “The Colonies would gladly
have borne the little tax on tea and other matters had it not been that England took away from the
Colonies their money, which created unemployment and dissatisfaction.”
Dissatisfaction became general, but very few Colonials realized that the taxation, and other economic
sanctions being imposed on them, were the results of the activities of a small group of International
Gangsters, who had succeeded in obtaining control of the British Treasury, after they had obtained
control of the Bank of England.  It has already been shown how they jumped Britain’s National Debt
from £1,250,000 in 1694 to £16,000,000 in 1698, and increased it progressively to £885,000,000 by
1815, and £22,503,532,372 by 1945.
On April 19th 1775, the first armed clashes between British and Colonials took place at Lexington and
Concord.   On  May  10th  the  Second  Continental  Congress  met  at  Philadelphia  and  George
Washington  was  placed  at  the  head  of  the  Naval  and  Military  Force.   He  took  command  at
Cambridge.  On July 4th, 1776 Congress adopted the Declaration of Independence.
 
 
 
Seite I For the next seven years the International money‐lenders urged and financed the Colonial War.  The
Rothschilds made plenty of money supplying the British with German Hessian soldiers with which to
fight  the  Colonists.   The  average  Britisher  had  no  quarrel  with  his  American  cousins.
2 He secretly sympathized with them.
On October 19th, 1781 the British Commander, General Cornwallis, surrendered his whole army, including
what  was  left  of  the  Hessians.   On  September  3rd,  1783  the  Independence  of  the  United  States  was
recognized by the Peace Treaty of Paris.  The only real losers were the British people.  Their National Debt
had  been  increased  tremendously  and  the  International  money‐lenders  (who  were  in  reality  the  Secret
Power behind the World Revolutionary Movement) had succeeded in the first stage of the long range plans
towards the dissolution of the British Empire.3
*//  Had  it  been  true,  it  would  have  been  a  blessing;   but  wasn’t  it  greed,  ambition  and  the  international
money power that created the evil British Empire in the first place ? 
The  agents  of  the  international  bankers  worked  industriously  to  prevent  unity.   By  keeping  the  various
states  in  America  separated  it  was  much  easier  to  exploit  them.   To  prove  the  continuity  of  the  Foreign
money‐lenders meddling in the affairs of every nation it is sufficient to record that the Foundling Fathers of
the United States meeting at Philadelphia in 1787 talked over the importance of bringing in some form of
legislation which would protect them against the exploitation of the International Bankers.
The agents of the international bankers organized active lobbying.  They used intimidation.  But despite all
their  efforts  paragraph  5,  of  Section  8,  of  the  First  article  of  the  new  American  Constitution  read  : 
“CONGRESS SHALL HAVE THE POWER TO COIN MONEY AND REGULATE THE VALUE THEREOF”.
The vast majority of the United States’ citizens consider the Constitution an honored, and almost sacred,
document.  All laws passed since then are SUPPOSED to conform with the provisions of the Constitution. 
The  fact  that  subsequent  legislation  dealing  with  finance  and  currency,  have  been  in  violation  of  the
provisions laid down in Article 1, Section 8, paragraph 5, proves how powerful the bankers have been in the
political field.
The  history  of  how  the  international  money‐lenders  obtained  economic  control  of  the  United  States  in
order to further their long range plans is decidedly interesting.
Using the good old reliable Joint Stock Company principle, the Directors of the Bank of England appointed
one of their hirelings named Alexander Hamilton, to represent their interests in the United States.  In 1780
this  man,  a  supposed  patriot,  proposed  the  establishment  of  a  Federal  Bank.   It  was  to  be  owned  by
PRIVATE INTERESTS as an alternative to those who insisted the issue and control of money should remain in
the  hands  of  the  government  elected  by  the  people.   Alexander  Hamilton  suggested  that  his  proposed
Federal  Bank  be  capitalized  for  $12,000,000.   The  Bank  of  England  would  provide  $10,000,000,  the
remaining $2,000,000 would be allocated to wealthy people in America.  
In  1783  Alexander  Hamilton,  and  his  business  partner  Robert  Morris,  organized  the  Bank  of  America.   As
Financial Superintendent of the Continental Congress, Morris was able to reduce the United States Treasury
to  a  state  of  indigence  by  the  end  of  seven  years  of  war.   This  is  another  illustration  of  how  the  Secret
Power use wars to further their plan for the W.R.M.  To make absolutely sure the United States’ Financial
cupboard was bare, Hamilton transferred the last $250,000 from the Treasury Department, and invested it
in the Bank’s Capital Stock.  The directors of the Bank of America were agents of the Bank of England.  The
Illuminati controlled both.  The fact that they sold their souls to Satan in order to gain the world is the truth
they wish to conceal.
The  Fathers  of  American  Independence  realized  that  if  the  Directors  of  the  Bank  of  England  obtained
monopolistic  control  of  America’s  money  system  they  would  recover  any  money  they  had  lost  by  the
simple  process  of  mortgage  and  foreclosure.   The  net  result  of  this  struggle  for  economic  control  of  the
nation was that Congress refused to grant the Bank of America a charter.
 
 
 
Seite II Benjamin  Franklin  died  in  1790  and  the  agents  of  the  International  Jewish  money‐lenders  immediately
made another bid to obtain control of America’s finances.  They succeeded in having Alexander Hamilton
appointed  Secretary  of  the  Treasury.   Hamilton  had  the  Government  charter  the  bank  his  principals  had
been clamoring for.  It was then a simple matter to usurp the rights to issue currency based on public and
private debts.  The most forceful arguments the bankers’ agents had used to defeat their opposition was
that money issued by Congress, on the credit of the Nation, would be valueless in dealing abroad;  while
money obtained on loan from the bankers, at interest, would be welcomed as legal security in all kinds of
transactions.  Thus  the public fell prey  to the exploitation of the men who professed to be their friends. 
Alexander Hamilton, and Morris, were never more than hirelings of the international money‐lenders.
The new Bank was capitalized for $35,000,000.  Of this amount $28,000,000 was subscribed by European
bankers,  which  the  Rothschilds  controlled.   It  is  suspected  that  the  international  bankers  decided  that
Hamilton knew too much and couldn’t be trusted any longer.  He was inveigled into a duel with an expert
named Aaron Burr, who acted as his executioner.
While  American  citizens  were  used  as  Front  men  by  the  international  bankers,  policy  was  determined  in
Europe.  The Rothschild interests gave orders that the American bankers were to extend almost unlimited
credit for good security and put plenty of money into circulation.  The propaganda media played up on the
highest notes of optimism.  Prosperity was assured.  The Americans were destined to become the greatest
people on Earth.  Everybody was urged to invest in the future of his great nation.
When everyone of any worth had mortgaged himself to the hilt, orders were given to tighten up credits,
recall  outstanding  loans,  and  reduce  the  amount  of  money  in  circulation.   An  artificial  depression  was
created.   Citizens  could  not  meet  their  financial  obligations  and  the  Money  Barons  obtained  millions  of
dollars  worth  of  property,  and  securities,  at  a  fraction  of  their  normal  value.   Admittedly  everything  was
done  by  due  process  of  law,  but  Al  Capone  and  his  gangsters,  were  gentlemen  in  comparison  with  the
international bankers.
Many  great  Americans  have  commented  on  this  phase  of  the  history  of  the  United  States,  but  their
expressed opinions don’t seem to have prevented their successors from falling into the same traps and pit‐
falls.   John  Adams  (1735‐1826)  wrote  to  Thomas  Jefferson  in  1787.   He  said  :   “All  the  perplexities,
confusion and distress arise not from the defects of the Constitution, not from want of honor and virtue so
much as, from downright ignorance of the nature of coin, credit and circulation.”
*//  Consistency  Mr.  Carr,  consistency.   First  he  calls  them  the  followers  of  that  nasty  Illuminati,  then  he
calls them great Americans. 
Thomas  Jefferson  said  :   “I  believe  that  banking  institutions  are  more  dangerous  to  our  liberties  than
standing armies.  Already they have raised up a money aristocracy that has set governments at defiance. 
The  issuing  power  should  be  taken  from  the  banks  and  restored  to  the  people  to  whom  it  properly
belongs”.
*//  If  Mr.  Carr  had  troubled  himself  with  reading  Thomas  Jefferson’s  letters,  he  would  have  known  that
these three sentences are inaccurate quotes from three different letters.  He is just regurgitating someone
else’s  fabricated  paragraph.   If  he  is  this  sloppy  quoting  something  so  easily  verifiable  (and  correctable),
how sloppy is he quoting something for which he cites no source ? 
Andrew Jackson said : “If Congress has a right, under the Constitution to issue paper money, it was given
them to use by themselves, not to be delegated to individuals or corporations.”
These  outspoken  comments  warned  the  International  Bankers  to  expect  serious  opposition  when  their
Charter for the Bank of the United States ran out in 1811.  To prepare for this eventuality Amschel Mayer
Rothschild, had obtained absolute control of the Bank of England in order to strengthen his control of the
World’s  economy.   His  son  Nathan  had  been  specially  trained  to  undertake  this  tremendous  task  as
previously mentioned.  Nathan proved to have exceptional talent and ability for financial affairs.  He trained
himself only to think in terms of profits, just as the professional politician thinks only in terms of votes.  In
1798,  at  the  early  age  of  twenty‐one,  he  went  over  from  Germany  to  secure  control  of  the  Bank  of
England.  He was entrusted with the modest sum of £20,000.  
 
 
 
Seite III To  demonstrate  his  financial  wizardry  he  speculated,  and  in  a  comparatively  short  time  [3  years],  he
increased his capital to £60,000.  By 1811, when the matter of the renewal of the Charter for the Bank of
America was due for a hearing, Nathan Rothschild was in control of the International Bankers.  He issued
his ultimatum.  “Either the application for renewal of the charter is granted or the United States will find
itself  involved  in  a  most  disastrous  war.”  *//  What  basis  does  he  have  to  make  such  statement  ?   Did
someone hear N.R. say that ?  did someone record it ? 
President Andrew Jackson didn’t believe the International Bankers would foment a war.  He decided to call
their bluff.  He told them bluntly :  “You are a den of thieves — vipers.  I intend to rout you out, and by the
Eternal God I will rout you out.”  But President Jackson had underestimated the power of the Rothschilds. 
Nathan Rothschild issued orders.  “Teach these impudent Americans a lesson.  Bring them back to Colonial
status.”
The  British  Government  [of  that  British  Empire  which  the  money  power  wanted  to  dissolve],  always
subservient to the Bank of England, launched the war of 1812.  This war was calculated to impoverish the
United  States  to  such  an  extent  the  legislators  would  have  to  plead  for  peace,  and  seek  financial  aid. 
Nathan Rothschild stipulated that no financial aid would be forthcoming except in return for the renewal of
the charter for the Bank of America.
Nathan  Rothschild’s  plan  worked  to  perfection.   It  mattered  not  to  him,  how  many  men  were  killed  and
wounded;  how many women were widowed;  how many children were made orphans;  how many people
were  rendered  destitute.   He  and  his  co‐conspirators  rejoiced  in  the  fact  that  they  had  achieved  their
objective  and  in  so  doing  they  had  created  more  and  more  dissatisfaction  amongst  the  masses  of  the
people who blamed the blundering policies of their own governments, while the Secret Power behind the
scenes remained unsuspected by all except a very few people.
In 1816 The United States Congress granted the renewal of the Charter for the Bank of the United States as
requested.  There are many authorities who state quite frankly that the Members of Congress were bribed,
or threatened, into voting for the legislation which put the American people back into financial bondage.4
The  men  who  plot  and  plan  to  secure  economic  and  political  control  of  the  world  don’t  hesitate  to
prostitute Love to achieve their ends, any more than they hesitate to order murder committed to rid them
of  men  who  stand  in  their  way.   In  1857  the  marriage  of  Lenora,  daughter  of  Lionel  Rothschild,  to  her
cousin  Alfonso  of  Paris  (they  believe  in  keeping  things  within  the  family)  brought  many  international
personages to London, England, where the ceremony was performed.  Benjamin Disraeli, the noted English
Statesman, who was made Prime Minister in 1868 and again in 1874, was invited to be present.
Disraeli is reported [By whom ?] to have said during his speech on that memorable occasion — “Under this
roof are the heads of the family of Rothschild, a name famous in every capital of Europe, and every division
of the globe.  If you like we shall divide the United States into two parts, one for you James, and one for you
Lionel.  Napoleon will do exactly — and all that I advise him to do;  and to Bismarck will be suggested such
an intoxicating programme as to make him our abject slave.”
History records that Judah P. Benjamin, a Rothschild relative, was appointed as their professional strategist
in America.  The American Civil War, which split the Union in two, became an accomplished fact.
Napoleon  III  was  persuaded  by  the  Bankers  to  extend  his  French  Empire  into  Mexico.   The  British
Government was persuaded that the Northern States could be made into a colony again.  The Civil War in
the United States was an economic war brought about by the International Bankers.  By applying economic
pressure  it  was  a  simple  matter  to  aggravate  the  economic  difficulties  the  Northern  States  encountered
after the slaves had been given their freedom.  Abraham Lincoln admitted “No nation can long endure half
free and half slaves.”5
The international bankers loaned unlimited credit to all forces engaged by the South fighting the forces of
the North.  They loaned Napoleon III, 201,500,000 francs for his Mexican campaign.  When the Confederacy
needed  assistance  in  1863  the  Powers‐that‐be  offered  Napoleon  Texas  and  Louisiana  in  exchange  for
French intervention against the Northern States.
The Tzar of Russia heard of these preposterous offers and he informed the  Governments  of England and
France that should they actively intervene, and give military aid to the South, Russia would consider such
 
 
 
Seite IV action  as  a  declaration  of  war  against  the  Imperial  Russian  Empire.   To  strengthen  his  ultimatum  Russian
warships were sent to New York and San Francisco and placed at Lincoln’s disposal.6
When  the  Northern  authorities  found  themselves  in  financial  difficulties  the  International  Bankers  didn’t
refuse to loan the money.  They simply stipulated that the rate of interest to the Northern States would be
28 per cent.  After all, they were in business as money‐lenders.  An important aspect of the American Civil
War is that it would in all probability have reached a conclusion in a few months had not the international
money‐lenders made fresh loans.  These loans were usury.  They were based on terms and rates of interest
which were calculated to give international bankers control of the economy of the whole country.  When
they considered it time they ended the war.
*// And the war would never have started if Lincoln had not started it;  but, then, how could he (and the
people  behind  him)  have  put  through  those  ambitious  public  works  projects.   So,  please,  place  blame
everywhere where it belongs. 
Lincoln  tried  to  break  the  financial  bonds  with  which  his  Northern  States  were  bound.   To  him  Article  1,
Section 8, paragraph 5 of the Constitution was sufficient authority.  He disregarded the bankers’ overtures. 
He  caused  $450,000,000  of  Honest  money  to  be  printed.   He  placed  the  Credit  of  the  Nation  as  security
behind this  money.  The  International Bankers retaliated  by causing a Bill to  be passed  through Congress
ruling that Lincoln’s Greenbacks would not be accepted as payment of interest on government bonds nor
import duties.  The Bankers caused Lincoln’s money to become almost valueless by refusing to accept the
Greenbacks  except  at  a  heavy  discount.   Having  beaten  down  the  value  of  Greenback  dollars  to  30  cents
they bought them all in.  They then turned around and bought government bonds with them demanding
dollar for dollar value.  In this way they overcame a serious threat and made 70 cents on the dollar.
An  article,  inspired  by  the  International  Bankers,  appeared  in  the  London  Times.   It  concerned  Abraham
Lincoln’s issue of Greenbacks.  It said :  
“If  this  mischievous  financial  policy,  which  has  its  origin  in  North  America,  shall  become
endurated down to a fixture, then that Government will furnish its own money without cost.  It
will  pay  off  debts  and  be  without  debt.   It  will  have  all  the  money  necessary  to  carry  on  its
commerce.   It  will  become  prosperous  without  precedent  in  the  history  of  the  world.   The
brains,  and  wealth  of  all  countries  will  go  to  North  America.   THAT  COUNTRY  MUST  BE
DESTROYED OR IT WILL DESTROY EVERY MONARCHY ON THE GLOBE.”7
*//   It  is  really  too  bad  that  during  his  life  in  England  Mr.  Carr  (or  anybody  else  for  that  matter)  has  not
bothered to go into the library and look up in which issue of the Times did this article appear (if at all). 
The  Hazard  Circular  was  supplied  to  all  banking  interests  from  overseas.   It  read  “Slavery  is  likely  to  be
abolished by war power.  This, I and my European friends are in favor of, because slavery is but the owning
of labour, and carries with it the care of the labourers, while the European plan, led on by England, is that
capital shall control labour by controlling wages.
“The great debt, that Capitalists will see is made out of the war, must be used to control the
value of money.  To accomplish this government bonds must be used as a banking basis.  We
are  now  waiting  for  the  Secretary  of  the  Treasury  of  the  United  States  to  make  that
recommendation.  It will not do to allow Greenbacks, as they are called, to circulate as money
for any length of time as we cannot control that.  But we can control the bonds, and through
them, the banking issues.”
The Bankers financed the election campaigns of enough Senators, and Congressmen, to assure them that
the National Banking Act would become law.  The National Banking Act did become law in 1863 despite the
vigorous protests of President Lincoln.  Thus the International Bankers won another round.  The people of
the world had been brought one step nearer to economic, political and religious bondage.
On the letter head of Rothschilds’ Brothers, Bankers, London, England, under date of June 25th, 1863, the
following was written to Messrs. Ikelheimer, Morton and Vandergould, No. 3 Wall Street, New York, U.S.A.
*//  This alleged letter — until otherwise proven, should be considered a fabrication — did not surface in
conspiracy literature until the 1930s.  So far no writer produced or cited a (credible) source for it;  not one
 
 
 
Seite V of them ever explained how this letter got out into the open;  how was it that Rothschild and Co. were this
careless  with  their  correspondence;   why  did  they  need  to  write  to  these  people  when  they  had  proper
representation in the persons of Belmont(Schönberg), Seligman, Morgan.  As far as we know there was no
such outfit as Ikelheimer, Morton and Vandergould — the closest we can find is Heidelbach, Ickelheimer &
Co., Jewish bankers of New York City. 
Dear Sirs : 
A Mr. John Sherman has written us from a town in Ohio, U.S.A., as to profits that may be made in the
National  Banking  business,  under  a  recent  act  of  your  Congress;   a  copy  of  this  Act  accompanies  this
letter.   Apparently  this  Act  has  been  drawn  up  on  the  plan  formulated  by  the  British  Bankers
Association, and by that Association recommended to our American friends, as one that, if enacted into
law, would prove highly profitable to the banking fraternity throughout the world.
Mr.  Sherman  declares  that  there  has  never  been  such  an  opportunity  for  capitalists  to  accumulate
money as that presented by this act.  It gives the National Bank almost complete control of the National
finance.   The  few  who  understand  the  system  he  says  will  either  be  so  interested  in  its  profits,  or  so
dependent on its favors, that there will be no opposition from that class, while on the other hand, the
great body of the people, mentally incapable of comprehending the tremendous advantages that capital
derives  from  the  system,  will  bear  its  burden  without  complaint,  and  perhaps  without  even  suspecting
that the system is inimical to their interests ...
Your respectful servants,
ROTHSCHILD BROTHERS
In reply to the above letter Messrs. Ikelheimer, Morton and Vandergould replied :
Dear Sirs : 
We  beg  to  acknowledge  receipt  of  your  letter  of  June  25th,  in  which  you  refer  to  a  communication
received from Honourable John Sherman, of Ohio, with reference to the advantages, and profits, of an
American investment under the provisions of the National Banking Act.
Mr. Sherman possesses, in a marked degree, the distinguishing characteristics of a successful financier. 
His  temperament  is  such  that  whatever  his  feelings  may  be  they  never  cause  him  to  lose  sight  of  the
main  chance.   He  is  young,  shrewd  and  ambitious.   He  has  fixed  his  eyes  upon  the  Presidency  of  the
United States and already is a member of Congress (he has financial ambitions too).  He rightfully thinks
he has everything to gain by being friendly with men, and institutions, having large financial resources,
and  which  at  times  are  not  too  particular  in  their  methods,  either  of  obtaining  government  aid,  or
protecting themselves against unfriendly legislation.
As to the organization of the National Bank here, and the nature and profits of such investments, we beg
leave to refer to our printed circulars enclosed herein, viz :
Any number of persons not less than five may organize a National Banking Corporation.
Except in cities having 6,000 inhabitants or less, a National Bank  cannot have  less than $1,000,000
capital.
They  are  private  corporations  organized  for  private  gain,  and  select  their  own  officers  and
employees.
They are not subject to control of State Laws, except as Congress may from time to time provide.
They may receive deposits and loan the same for their own benefit.  They can buy and sell bonds and
discount paper and do general banking business.
To start a National Bank on the scale of $1,000,000 will require purchase of that amount (par value) of
U.S. Government Bonds.  U.S. Bonds can now be purchased at 50 per cent discount, so that a bank of
$1,000,000 capital can be started at this time for only $500,000.  These bonds must be deposited with
the  United  States  Treasury  at  Washington  as  security  for  the  National  Bank  currency,  that  will  be
furnished by the government to the bank.
 
 
 
Seite VI The United States Government will pay 6 per cent interest on all bonds in gold, the interest being paid
semi‐annually.   It  will  be  seen  that  at  the  present  price  of  bonds  the  interest  paid  by  the  government
itself is 12 per cent in gold on all money invested.
The  United  States  Government  on  having  the  bonds  aforesaid  deposited  with  the  Treasurer,  on  the
strength of such security will furnish National currency to the bank depositing the bonds, at an annual
interest of only one per cent per annum.
The  currency  is  printed  by  the  U.S.  Government  in  a  form  so  like  Greenbacks  that  the  people  do  not
detect the difference.  Although the currency is but a promise of the bank to pay.
The  demand  for  money  is  so  great  that  this  money  can  be  readily  loaned  to  the  people  across  the
counter of the Bank at a discount at the rate of 10 per cent at thirty or sixty days time, making it about
12 per cent interest on the currency.
The interest on the bonds, plus the interest on the currency which the bond secures, plus the incidentals
of the business, ought to make the gross earnings of the bank amount to from 28 per cent to 33 and
one‐third per cent.
National Banks are privileged to increase and contract their currency at will, and of course, can grant or
withhold  loans,  as  they  may  see  fit.   As  the  banks  have  a  National  organization  and  can  easily  act
together in withholding loans or extending them, it follows that they can by united action in refusing to
make loans cause a stringency in the money market, and in a single week or even a single day cause a
decline in all products of the country.
National Banks pay no taxes on their bonds, nor on their capital, nor on their deposits.
 
Requesting that you will regard this as strictly confidential.  
Most respectfully yours,
 
IKELHEIMIER, MORTON and VANDERGOULD
Following  the  exchange  of  the  above  letters  the  American  Bankers  put  into  practice  once  again  the
manipulations mentioned.  They reaped another rich harvest by foreclosures on property and securities left
with  them  as  security  for  loans,  which  their  clients  could  not  repay  because  the  Bankers,  acting  in  unity,
withdrew  currency,  and  restricted  credits,  to  a  degree  that  made  it  impossible  for  the  vast  majority  of
borrowers to meet their financial obligations.
Abraham  Lincoln  felt  that  after  this  sad,  and  costly,  experience  the  American  people  might  be  ready  to
listen to sense so, once again, he launched a public attack upon the bankers.
In an address he said :  “I see in the near future a crisis approaching that unnerves me, and causes me to
tremble  for  the  safety  of  my  Country;   corporations  have  been  enthroned,  an  era  of  corruption  in  high
places will follow, and the money power of the country will endeavor to prolong its reign by working upon
the prejudices of the people, until the wealth is aggregated in a few hands and the Republic is destroyed.”
*//  This is an other piece questionable quotation for which so far no one could produce a source.  Mr. Carr
claims here that it was an address, but, of course, fails to state when and where;  others allege that it was
in a letter written by Lincoln to Thomas Elkins on November 21, 1864. 
Shortly after making this momentous speech Abraham Lincoln was re‐elected President but before he could
have  legislation  enacted  which  would  have  curbed  the  avaricious  practices  of  the  bankers  he  was
assassinated  by  John  Wilkes  Booth  while  attending  a  theatrical  performance,  on  the  night  of  April  14th,
1865.  Very few Americans know why President Lincoln was assassinated.  
The true answer was found when investigators located a coded message amongst Booth’s effects.  The key
to  that  coded  message  was  in  possession  of  Judah  P.  Benjamin  who  was  Rothschild’s  agent  in  America. 
While the coded message had no direct bearing on the murder, it definitely established the contact Booth
had  with  the  International  Bankers.   Once  again  they  remained  hidden  behind  the  scenes  while  the  Jew,
Booth, was blamed for the death of a great man.  Had Abraham Lincoln lived he would most certainly have
clipped the wings, and trimmed the sails, of the international moneylenders.
 
 
 
Seite VII *//  Unfortunately for Mr. Carr (and all other Lincoln‐myth fabricators), the actions of Mr. Lincoln make this
last sentence a wishful lie.) 
Before Lincoln was murdered, Salmon P. Chase, who was Secretary of the U.S. Treasury 1861‐1864, stated
publicly :  
“My agency in promoting the passage of the National Banking Act was the greatest financial
mistake  of  my  life.   It  has  built  up  a  monopoly  which  affects  every  interest  in  the  country.   It
should  be  repealed,  but  before  that  can  be  accomplished  the  people  will  be  arrayed  on  one
side,  and  the  banks  on  the  other,  in  a  contest  such  as  we  have  never  seen  before  in  this
country.”8
*//  An other one of those alleged, ‘I regret my sin’ quotes which no one can tell when and where was said,
but many uncritically regurgitates from one another’s books. 
In 1866 there were $1,906,687,770 in currency in circulation in the United States.  This represented $50.46
per capita.  At the end of 1876 there was only about $605,250,000 in circulation representing a per capita
amount of $14.60.  The currency of the nation had been reduced by bank withdrawals to the extent of over
$1,300,000,000.  The importance of these figures will be better understood by the average man when he
learns that the net result of the bankers policy was a total of 56,446 business failures representing a loss of
$2,245,105,000 in cash investments.  
The larger proportion of the losses was incurred by mortgage foreclosures.  In other words, by withdrawing
currency and restricting credits the bankers had enriched themselves by well over $2,000,000,000 in a little
over ten years.  There is plenty of evidence to prove that the American Bankers and the European Bankers,
have  been  affiliated  ever  since,  and  that  the  subsequent  depressions  were  created  by  similar  financial
manipulations, as will be explained in other chapters.
 
 
 
                                                           
1  
Direct quotations from Senate Document No. 23 supports the above statements.
2  
The Earl of Chatham and his son William Pitt (1769‐1806) both denounced the policy of the international
Money‐Barons in regard to the Colonies prior to 1783.  Young William Pitt was chosen by King George III to be
Prime Minister because he convinced the King the money‐lenders were involving European countries in wars to
serve their own selfish purposes.
*//  So that is why Pitt made war against France his life purpose, and involved Europe in a world war against
Napoleon ?
3    Just stop and think for a moment how far they have advanced that part of their plans since then.  Jefferson and
John Adams (Roosevelt’s kinsman) both became ardent Illuminists.  This explains Roosevelt’s policy.
4    The fact that Franklin, Adams, and Jefferson all became members of the Illuminati and the fact that the Great
Seal of America is actually the insignia of the Illuminati proves the power of the Synagogue of Satan.
*// What fact ?  You offered no proof whatever to this!  Thomas Jefferson went to his grave opposing big
government, international involvement, central bank (and even private banks), bank currency;  he was for state
rights and individual rights.  On the other hand, Mr. Lincoln was a railway lawyer, he was for big, centralized
government; for private bankers; for state bank; for large tax‐payer funded work projects (which ended up in
private hands);  he was against state rights, against the spirit (and letter) of the constitution, against sub‐
treasury.  Yet, somehow, he is the good guy ?!  And Russia (that great friend of limited government,
constitutional republic and national independence) ‐‐ cemetery of nations, tool of England ‐‐ is a knight in
shining armor ? rushing to the aid of a emperor Lincoln — just as it ran to the aid of the Hapsburg and the
British empires.
5    It is just as impossible for half a World which employs paid labour and enjoys a high Standard of living to
compete forever with the other half which employs slave labour under a Dictatorship.
6  
7  
8    This act of interference caused the International Bankers to decide to overthrow the Russian Government.
 
 
 
This is a typical example of the Illuminati’s double‐talk.  Monarchy really meant money lender.
For more detailed information on this angle of the world Revolutionary Movement read Lightning Over The
Treasury Building by John R. Elsom and The Federal Reserve Conspiracy by Eustace Mullins.
Seite VIII William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 6
Guy Carr
Pawns in the Game
C HAPTER S IX
Monetary Manipulation
When the Rothschilds obtained control of the Bank of England, following Nathan’s spectacular
financial “killing” in 1815, he and his associates insisted that Gold be made the only base for
the issuance of paper money. In 1870 the European Bankers experienced a little annoyance in
their control system due to the fact that in America a considerable amount of silver coin was
used. The European Bankers decided that silver must be demonetized in the United States. At
that time England had much gold and very little silver : America had much silver and very little
gold. [1] The bankers on both sides of the Atlantic knew that while this difference continued
they could not obtain absolute control of the economy of the nation and absolute control is
essential for the success of big scale manipulation.
The European International Bankers sent Ernest Seyd over to America and placed at his disposal
in American banks $500,000 with which to bribe key members of the American legislature. In
1873, at the instigation of the bankers, their agents introduced a “Bill”, innocently named “A
Bill to reform Coinage and Mint Laws”. It was cleverly drafted. Many pages of writing
concealed the real purpose behind the Bill. The Bill was sponsored by none other than Senator
John Sherman, whose letter to the House of Rothschild has already been referred to. Sherman
was supported by Congressman Samuel Hooper. After Senator Sherman gave a very plausible,
but misleading, report regarding the purpose of the Bill, it was passed without a dissenting vote.
Three years passed before the full import of the Bill began to be realized. It was a camouflaged
Bill to demonetize silver. President Grant signed the Bill without reading the contents after he
had been assured it was just a routine matter necessary to make some desirable reforms in the
coinage and monetary laws. According to the Congressional Record none but the members of
the Committee which introduced the Bill understood its meaning.
The International Bankers considered the passage of the Bill so essential to their plans, to obtain
absolute control of the monetary system of the United States, that Ernest Seyd was instructed to
represent himself as an expert on coining of money. After organizing the formation of a
committee favourable to his master’s objectives, he sat in with the committee, in a professional
advisory, capacity, and helped draft the Bill in accordance with the Rothschilds’ instructions.
Congressman Samuel Hooper introduced the Bill in the House on April 9th, 1872. He is
recorded as saying : “Mr. Ernest Seyd, of London, a distinguished writer, has given great
attention to the subject of mints and coinage. After examining the first draft of the Bill, he
furnished many valuable suggestions which have been incorporated in the Bill.” Mr. John R.
Elsom in his book Lightning over the Treasury Building on page 49 declares : According to his
(Seyd’s) own statement, made to his friend Mr. Frederick A. Lukenback, of Denver, Colorado,
who has, under oath, given us the story, he (Seyd) said “I saw the Committee of the House and
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_06.html (1 of 6)5.4.2006 12:15:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 6
Senate and paid the money, and stayed in America until I knew the measure was safe”.
In 1878 a further withdrawal of currency, and restricting of credits, caused 10,478 business and
banking failures in the United States. In 1879 the issuance of more coin at the insistence of
Congress halted the artificially created recession and reduced business failures to 6,658. But in
1882 the “Secret Power” behind International affairs issued orders that there was to be no more
pussy-footing. They reminded their banking associates in the States that sentiment has no place
in business. These admonishments produced results as spectacular as they were drastic.
Between 1882 and 1887 the per capita money in circulation in the United States was reduced to
$6.67. This action increased the total business failures from 1878 to 1892, to 148,703, while
proportionate foreclosures were made on farms and private dwellings. Only the bankers and
their agents, who made the loans and took foreclosure proceedings, benefited.
It would appear that the International bankers were deliberately creating conditions of poverty,
and despair, in the United States in order to produce conditions which would enable their
instrument the Word Revolutionary Party to recruit revolutionary forces. This accusation is
supported by a letter issued to all American Bankers, by the American Bankers Association. It
has been proved that this association was intimately affiliated with Rothschild’s European
Monopoly, if not actually controlled by the House of Rothschild, at that time. The letter reads :
March 11, 1893.
Dear Sir :
The interests of the National Banks require immediate financial legislation by Congress. Silver
certificates, and Treasury notes, must be retired, and national bank notes, upon a gold basis, made
the only money. This will require the authorization of new bonds in the amount of $500,000,000 to
$1,000,000,000 as the basis of circulation. You will at once retire one-third of your circulation and
will call one-half of your loans. Be careful to create a money stringency among your patrons,
especially among influential business men. The life of the National Banks, as fixed and safe
investments, depends upon immediate action as there is an increasing sentiment in favour of
government legal tender and silver coinage.
This command was obeyed immediately and the panic of 1893 was created. William Jennings
Bryan tried to counteract the bankers’ conspiracy, but once again the public believed the false
accusations circulated in the Press by the bankers’ propagandists. The man in the street blamed
the government. The average citizen never even suspected the part the bankers had played in
creating chaos in order to feather their own nests. William Jennings Bryan was unable to do
anything constructive. His voice, like the voices of many other honest and loyal citizens, was a
voice crying in the wilderness.
In 1899 J.P. Morgan, and Anthony Drexel, went to England to attend the International Bankers’
Convention. When they returned, J.P. Morgan had been appointed head representative for the
Rothschild’s interests in the United States. He was probably chosen as Top-man because of the
ingenuity he had shown when he made a fortune selling his government Union Army rifles
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_06.html (2 of 6)5.4.2006 12:15:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 6
which had already been condemned. [2]
As the result of the London Conference J.P. Morgan & Co. of New York, Drexel & Co. of
Philadelphia, Grenfell & Co. of London, Morgan Harjes & Co. of Paris, M.M. Warburgs of
Germany & Amsterdam and the House of Rothschild were all affiliated.
The Morgan-Drexel combination organized the Northern Securities Corporation in 1901 for the
purpose of putting the Heinze-Morse group out of business. The Heinze-Morse controlled
considerable banking, shipping, steel and other industries. They had to be put out of business so
the Morgan-Drexel combination could control the forthcoming Federal election.
The Morgan-Drexel combination succeeded in putting in Theodore Roosevelt in 1901. This
delayed the prosecution which had been started against them by the Justice Department because
of the alleged illegal methods used to rid themselves of competition. Morgan-Drexel then
affiliated with Kuhn-Loeb & Co. To test their combined strength it was decided to stage
another financial “killing”. They created “The Wall Street Panic of 1907”. The public reaction
to such methods of legalized gangsterism was sufficient to make the Government take action,
but the evidence which follows clearly proves how the public was betrayed.
The Government appointed a National Monetary Commission. Senator Nelson Aldrich was
appointed head of the commission. He was charged with the duty of making a thorough study
of financial practices, and then formulating banking and currency reforms by submitting the
necessary legislation to Congress. Aldrich, it was discovered afterwards, was financially
interested with the powerful Rubber and Tobacco Trusts. He was just about the last man in the
Senate who should have been entrusted with such a task. Immediately after his appointment
Aldrich picked a small group of trusted lieutenants and they all departed for Europe. While in
Europe they were given every facility to study the way the international bankers controlled the
economy of European countries. After Aldrich had spent two years, and over $300,000 of the
American tax-payers’ money in Europe, lie returned to the U.S.A. All the public received for
their money was to be told by Aldrich that he hadn’t been able to arrive at any definite plan
which would prevent recurring financial panics which had upset business, created
unemployment, and destroyed many small fortunes in the U.S.A. since the Civil War. Aldrich
was so close to the Rockefellers that J.D. Jr. married his daughter Abby.
Prior to the tour of Europe Aldrich had been advised to consult Paul Warburg. This Paul Moritz
Warburg was a unique character. He had arrived in the U.S.A. as a German immigrant about
1902. It turned out afterwards that he was a member of the European Financial House of M.M.
Warburg & Co. of Hamburg and Amsterdam. This company was as we have seen, with the
House of Rothschild. Paul Warburg had studied International finance in Germany, France,
Great Britain, Holland and other countries before entering America as an immigrant. The U.S.
A. proved to be his land of golden opportunity because, in no time at all, he purchased a
partnership in Kuhn-Loeb & Co. of New York. He was voted a salary of $500,000 a year. One
of his new partners was Jacob Schiff who had previously purchased into the firm with
Rothschild gold. This Jacob Schiff is the man evidence will prove financed the Terrorist
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_06.html (3 of 6)5.4.2006 12:15:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 6
Movement in Russia from 1883, onwards to 1917.
Schiff hadn’t done too badly for himself, and his backers. He had managed to achieve
undisputed control over the transportation, the communication systems, and the supply lines in
the United States. As has been proved, control of these is absolutely essential for successful
revolutionary effort in any country. [3]
On the night of November 22nd, 1910 a private railway coach was waiting at the Hoboken, New
Jersey, Railway Station. Senator Aldrich arrived with A. Piatt Andrews, a professional
economist and treasury official, who had been wined and dined in Europe. Shelton, Aldrich’s
private secretary, also turned up. He was followed by Frank Vanderlip, president of the
National City Bank of New York; this Bank represented the Rockefeller Oil Interests and the
Kuhn-Loeb railway interests. The directors of the National City Bank had been publicly
charged with helping to foment a war between the U.S.A. and Spain in 1898. Regardless of the
truth or otherwise, of the charges, the fact remains that the National City Bank owned and
controlled Cuba’s sugar industry when the war ended. Others who joined Aldrich were H.P.
Davison, senior partner of J.P. Morgan & Co., Charles D. Norton, president of Morgan’s First
National Bank of New York. These last three had been accused in the American legislature of
controlling the entire money and credit of the U.S.A. Last to arrive were Paul Warburg and
Benjamin Strong. Warburg was so wealthy and powerful by this time that he is said to have
inspired the famous comic strip (“Orphan Annie”) in which Warbucks is featured as the most
wealthy and influential man in the world; a man who can, when he so wishes, use superhuman
or supernatural powers to protect himself and his interests. Benjamin Strong came into
prominence during the preliminary manipulations of high finance which led to the Wall Street
Panic of 1907. As one of J.P. Morgan’s lieutenants he had earned a reputation for carrying out
orders without question and with ruthless efficiency.
Aldrich’s private coach was attached to the train. Newspaper reporters learned of this gathering
of the men who controlled America’s oil, finances, communications, transportations and heavy
industries. They began to swarm down upon the private car like locusts ... But they couldn’t get
anyone to speak. Mr. Vanderlip finally brushed off the reporters’ demands for information with
the explanation “We are going away for a quiet week-end”.
It took years to discover what happened that quiet week-end. A secret meeting was held on
Jekyl Island, Georgia. This hide-away was owned by J.P. Morgan, and a small group of his
financial affiliates. The business discussed at the meeting referred to was “Ways and means to
ensure that proposed legislation to curb financial racketeering and monetary manipulation in the
U.S.A. be sabotaged and legislation favourable to those attending the secret meeting be
substituted.” To achieve these two important objectives was no easy task. Mr. Paul Warburg
was asked to suggest solutions. His advice was accepted.
Subsequent meetings were held by the same group to iron out details in New York. The
conspirators named their group the First Name Club because, when meeting together, they
always addressed each other by their first names to guard against strangers becoming interested
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_06.html (4 of 6)5.4.2006 12:15:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 6
should they hear the surnames of national and international financiers being spoken. To make a
long story short, Aldrich, Warburg and Company, drew up the monetary legislation which
Aldrich ultimately presented as the work of his special committee. He had it passed by
Congress in 1913 under the title “The Federal Reserve Act of 1913”. The vast majority of
American citizens honestly believed that this act protected their interests, and placed the Federal
Government in control of the nation’s economy.
Nothing is further from the truth. The Federal Reserve System placed the affiliated bankers in
America and Europe in position to bring about and control World War One. This statement will
be proved. World War One was fought to enable the International Conspirators to bring about
the Russian Revolution in 1917.
These facts illustrate how history does repeat itself and why. By means of similar plots, and
intrigue, the International Bankers had brought about the English Revolution in 1640-1649; and
the Great French Revolution of 1789. [4]
In 1914 the Federal Reserve System consisted of twelve banks which had bought $134,000,000
worth of Federal Reserve Stock. According to Congressional Record of May 29th, 1939; 8896,
they had made a profit of $23,141,456,197. In 1940 the assets of the Federal Reserve were
shown as five billion dollars. In 1946 they were declared to be forty five billion dollars. The
bankers made forty billion dollars profit out of their transactions in World War Two.
The majority of citizens in the United States believe that the Federal Reserve System benefits
the people of the Nation as a whole. They think the Federal Reserve System protects the
depositors’ money by making bank failures an impossibility. They think that profits made by
the Federal Reserve Banks benefit the National Treasury. They are wrong on all suppositions.
What the majority of the people think is exactly what the Federal Reserve System was originally
intended to accomplish, but the legislation drawn up on Jekyl Island, Georgia in 1910, and
passed by the American Congress in 1913, did not benefit the people or the government of the
U.S.A. It benefited only the American Bankers, who were interlocked with the International
Bankers of Europe.
The President of the United States nominates four of the men who are charged with the
responsibility of operating the Federal Reserve System. They are paid $15,000 a year for their
services. Congressional records will prove that the member banks shared illegally the profits
made right from its inception. It wasn’t until 1922 that the original Act was amended so the
bankers could take the profits legally.
Regarding the delusion that the Federal Reserve System protects people who deposit their
money for safe-keeping in American Banks against possible bank failures, statistics show that
since the Federal Reserve System came into operation in 1913 over 14,000 banks have failed.
Millions upon millions of the depositors’ hard earned money were lost to the rightful owners.
As money or wealth, generally speaking, is indestructible somebody got what the others lost.
That is what we term “Smart Business” to-day.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_06.html (5 of 6)5.4.2006 12:15:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 6
________________________
1 It was to aggravate this situation that agents of the International Conspirators in America organized the gangs of
stage-coach and train-robbers to intercept shipments of gold being sent from various mines to the U.S. Treasury
during this period. This connection between international Bankers and the Underworld will be proved to exist even
today.
2 Gustavus Myers deals with J.P. Morgan’s and his father’s connections with the House of Rothschild in much
greater detail and all Americans who wish to stop history repeating itself should read how they were sold down the
river in the middle of last century. It is explained in another Chapter how the International Bankers met in one
section of London and planned policy while the revolutionary leaders met in another and worked out the details of
intrigue which would put the wars and revolutions planned by the master-minds into effect.
3 Investigations in several countries already subjugated prove that the Financial Tycoons who owned and
controlled the transportation systems on land and sea, and affiliated industries deliberately brought about conditions
which led to general strikes immediately prior to the date set for a revolutionary effort to take place. It must be
obvious that these international Tycoons cannot form dictatorships as they did in Russia until existing governments
and institutions have been overthrown. This book proves how this purpose was achieved in Russia.
4 For full details of the Federal Reserve. Conspiracy read the book of that title written by Eustace Mullins and
published by Common Sense, Union, New-Jersey. 1954.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_06.html (6 of 6)5.4.2006 12:15:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
Guy Carr
Pawns in the Game
C HAPTER S EVEN
Events Preceding The Russian Revolution
The invasion of Russia in 1812 by Napoleon shook the Russian people to the core. Tzar
Alexander I set about the task of organizing a recovery programme. In the hope that he could
bring about a united effort throughout the Russian Empire, he relaxed many of the restrictions
which had been imposed on the Jews when they were confined to the Pale of Settlement in
1772. Special concessions were made to the artisans and professional classes. A determined
effort was made to establish Jews in agriculture. Under Alexander I they were given every
encouragement to assimilate themselves into the Russian way of life.
Nicholas I succeeded Alexander I in 1825. He was less inclined to favour the Jews, because he
viewed their rapid inroads into the Russian economy with alarm. His government viewed with
great displeasure the determination of the Jews to maintain their separate culture, language,
mode of dress, etc.
In order to try to assimilate the Jews into the Russian society Nicholas I, in 1804, made it
compulsory for all Jewish children to attend Public School. Nicholas thought that if the young
Jews could be convinced that they would be welcomed into Russian society it would go a long
way to eliminate misunderstandings. His avowed purpose was to offset the one-sided story of
religious persecution which was drilled into their minds from early infancy.
The net results of the Russian experiment didn’t turn out as expected. Education for non-Jewish
children was not compulsory. The Jews became the best educated segment in Russia. [1]
Alexander II followed Nicholas I to the throne of Russia in 1855. Benjamin Disraeli referred to
Alexander II as “The most benevolent prince that ever ruled over Russia”. Alexander devoted
his life to improving the conditions of the peasants, poorer classes, and the Jews. In 1861 he
emancipated 23,000,000 serfs. This unfortunate class had been FORCED to work on the land.
They were LITERALLY slaves. They could be transferred from one owner to another in all sales,
or leases, of landed estates.
Many Jews, who had taken advantage of the compulsory education, entered universities. They
found themselves severely handicapped after graduation when seeking employment. To correct
this injustice Alexander II ruled that all Jewish graduates be allowed to settle and hold
government positions in Greater Russia. In 1879 Jewish apothecaries, nurses, mid-wives,
dentists, distillers and skilled craftsmen were permitted to work and reside, anywhere in Russia.
But the Jewish revolutionary leaders were determined to continue their movement for Popular
World Revolution. Their terrorist groups committed one outrage after another. They worked to
enlist the support of disgruntled Russian intellectuals and to plant the general idea of violent
revolution in the minds of the industrial working population. In 1866 they made their first
attempt on the life of Alexander II. They tried to murder him a second time in 1879. In some
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (1 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
miraculous manner both attempts failed. It was then decided a very special effort had to be
made to remove Alexander. His benevolent rule was completely upsetting their claim “That
much needed reforms can only be brought about speedily by revolutionary action”. The
conspirators hatched their next plot against the life of Alexander II in the home of the Jewess
Hesia Helfman. The Tzar was murdered in 1881.
While the Revolutionary Forces within Russia were trying to embarrass the government in
every way possible, and committing all kinds of outrages, including assassination, the “Secret
Powers” behind the W.R.M. from their headquarters in England, Switzerland and the United
States were trying once again to involve Britain in war with Russia. In such a war neither
Empire could make any appreciable gains. The final outcome of such a war would be to
weaken both Empires materially and leave them easier prey for revolutionary action afterwards.
In the Nineteenth Century, October issue, 1881, Goldwyn Smith, professor of modern history at
Oxford University wrote : “When I was last in England we were on the brink of war with
Russia, which would have involved the whole Empire — the Jewish interests throughout
Europe, with the Jewish Press of Vienna as its chief organ, was doing its utmost to push us in.”
[2]
The assassination of the Russians’ “Little Father” in 1881 caused wide-spread resentment which
was expressed by a spontaneous outbreak of violence against the Jewish population in many
parts of Russia. The Russian Government passed “The May Laws”. These were harsh laws
passed because the Russian officials who sponsored them argued “That if the Jews could not be
satisfied and reconciled by the benevolent policy of Alexander II then it was obvious that they
would be satisfied with nothing less than the absolute domination of Russia.” Once again the
whole Jewish Race were being punished for the sins of a few self-appointed revolutionary
leaders.
On May 23rd, 1882 a Jewish delegation, headed by Baron Ginzberg, [3] called on the new Tzar
Alexander III and officially protested the May Laws. The Tzar promised a thorough
investigation into the whole matter concerning the conflict between the Jewish and non-Jewish
factions of the Empire’s population. On September 3rd he issued this statement : “For some
time the government has given its attention to the Jews, and their problems and their relations to
the rest of the inhabitants of the Empire with a view to ascertaining the sad conditions of the
Christian population brought about by the conduct of the Jews in business matters. During the
last twenty years the Jews have not only possessed themselves of every trade and business in all
its branches but also of a great part of the land by buying or farming it. With few exceptions
they have, as a body, devoted their attention not to enriching, or benefiting the country, but to
defrauding the Russian people by their wiles. Particularly have the poor inhabitants suffered,
and this conduct has called forth protests from the people as manifested in acts of violence
against the Jews. The government, while on one hand doing its best to put dawn these
disturbances; and to deliver the Jews from oppression and slaughter; on the other hand thought
it a matter of urgency, and justice, to adopt the stringent measures to put an end to oppression as
practiced by the Jews on the other inhabitants, and to rid the country of their malpractices,
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (2 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
which were, as is well known, the original cause of the anti-Jewish agitations.”
The May Laws had been passed by the Government not only as an act of resentment because of
the assassination of Tzar Alexander II, but also because Russian economists had been urgently
warning the Government that the national economy was in danger of being ruined if measures
were not taken to curb the illegal activities of the Jews. The economists pointed out that while
the Jews only represented 4.2 per cent of the whole population they had been able to entrench
themselves so well in the Russian economy that the nation was faced with economic disaster.
How correct the economists proved to be is shown by the action taken after Baron Ginzberg’s
deputation failed to have the May Laws rescinded. The International Bankers imposed
economic sanctions against the Russian Empire. They almost reduced the nation to
bankruptcy. They exercised an embargo on Russian trade and commerce. In 1904, after they
involved the Russian Empire in a disastrous war with Japan, the English Banking House of
Rothschild repudiated its promise of financial aid and tried to render the Russian Empire
bankrupt, while Kuhn-Loeb & Co. New York extended to Japan all the credit asked for.
Encyclopedia Britannica, page 76, Vol. 2 — 1947 says this of the May Laws : “The Russian
May Laws were the most conspicuous legislative monument achieved by modern anti-
semitism ... Their immediate results were a ruinous commercial depression which was felt all
over the empire and which profoundly affected the national credit. The Russian Minister was at
his wits end for money. Negotiations for a large loan were entered into with the House of
Rothschild and a preliminary contract was signed when the Finance Minister was informed that
unless the persecutions of the Jews were stopped, the great banking house would be compelled
to withdraw from the contract ... In this way antisemitism, which had already so profoundly
influenced the domestic policies of Europe, set its mark on the International relations of the
Powers, for it was the urgent need of the Russian Treasury, quite as much as the termination of
Prince Bismarck’s secret treaty of mutual neutrality, which brought about the Franco-Russian
Alliance.”
Many orthodox Jews were worried because of the ruthless terrorism being practised by their
compatriots. They knew that a similar policy was being carried out in France, Germany, Spain
and Italy. The less radical Jews worried because they feared a continuation of such terrorism
would result in such a wave of anti-semitism that it could quite possibly end with the
extermination of the Jewish race. Their worst fears were confirmed by a German Jew,
Theodore Herzl, who informed them of Karl Ritter’s anti-semitic policy and warned them that it
was rapidly being spread throughout Germany. He suggested the organization of a Jewish Back
to Israel Movement on the part of orthodox Jews. This was the beginning of the Zionist
movement. [4]
After Tzar Alexander III had issued his verdict blaming AVARICIOUS Jews as the cause of the
Empire’s unrest, and economic ruin, the leaders of the revolutionaries organized “The Social
Revolutionary Party”. An utterly ruthless man named Gershuni was appointed organiser of the
Terrorist Groups. A tailor named Yevno Azev was appointed to organize the “Fighting
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (3 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
Sections”. The leaders of the Social Revolutionary Party also emphasized the importance of
enlisting Gentiles in the movement. Gentiles, who passed the tests to which they were
submitted, became full members. It was this decision that brought Alexander Ulyanov into the
party. Before the revolutionary leaders would admit him into full membership he was ordered
to take part in the plot to assassinate Tzar Alexander III. The attempt on the Tzar’s life failed.
Alexander Ulyanov was arrested. He was tried, and condemned to death. His execution caused
his younger brother, Vlasimir, to dedicate himself to the revolutionary cause. Vlasimir rose in
power until he became leader of the Bolshevik Party. He assumed the name of Lenin. He
ultimately became the first Dictator of the U.S.S.Rs.
Between 1900 and 1906, in addition to causing serious labour trouble, and creating terrible
misunderstanding between all levels of Russian society, the Revolutionary Party rubbed the sore
of religious bigotry until it developed into a festering boil. This boil was brought to a head by
the hot applications of wholesale murders and assassinations. The boil burst in the form of the
revolution of 1905.
The officials assassinated by the Social Revolutionaries Terrorist Section were Bogolepov,
Minister of Education in 1901. This assassination was perpetrated to register Jewish resentment
against the educational clause in the previously referred to May Laws. This clause limited the
number of Jews attending state-supported schools, and universities, to a number in ratio to the
Jewish population as compared to the whole Russian population. This measure was passed
because the State financed schools had become flooded with Jewish students. A group of young
Jews who had “suffered” when boys, because of the educational clause in the May Laws of
1882, were given the task of murdering the Minister of Education. They had to prove their
courage and ability to qualify them for duty with the Terrorist section of the Social
Revolutionary Party.
Next year (1902) Sipyagin, Minister of the Interior, was assassinated to emphasize Jewish
resentment against the May Law which had reversed the policy of Alexander II, and prohibited
Jews from living outside the Pale of Settlement. Jews who had been evicted from their homes
in Greater Russia as children under the May Law were chosen to carry out this “Execution”.
They made no mistake.
In 1903 Bogdanovich, Governor of Ufa was assassinated; in 1904 Vischelev von Plehve, the
Russian Premier was killed; in 1905 the first full scale Russian Revolution broke out. The
Grand Duke Sergius, uncle of the Tzar, was assassinated on February 17th. In December, 1905,
General Dubrassov suppressed the revolutionaries, but in 1906 he was assassinated by the
Terrorist Section.
After the Tzar had blamed the Jews for the unsatisfactory state of affairs in Russia, Baron
Ginzberg was instructed to work to bring about the destruction of the Russian Empire. It was
agreed that to start the Russo-Japanese War the Rothschild interests in Europe would pretend to
be friendly with Russia. They would finance the war on Russia’s behalf while secretly the
Rothschild’s partners, Kuhn-Loeb & Co. of New York, would finance the Japanese
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (4 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
government. The defeat of Russia was to be made certain by the Rothschilds withdrawing
financial aid when it was most needed. Chaos and confusion was to be created within the
Russian armed forces in the far East by sabotaging the lines of transport and communication
crossing Siberia. This caused both the Russian Army and Navy to run short of supplies and
reinforcements. [5]
Then again, a Russian Naval Officer bound from the Baltic to Port Arthur in the Far East,
ordered his ships to fire on a British Trawler Fleet fishing on the Dogger Bank in the North
Sea. No logical reason was ever forthcoming to explain this wanton act of cruelty and mass
murder against a supposedly friendly power. Public reaction in England was such that war was
narrowly averted. Because of this incident many British Naval Officers and British Merchant
Officers volunteered their services to Japan.
The Japanese government was financed by international loans raised by Jacob Schiff (New
York). Schiff was senior partner in Kuhn-Loeb & Co. He co-operated with Sir Ernest Cassels
(England) and the Warburgs (Hamburg). Jacob Schiff justified his action of financing the
Japanese in the war against Russia in a letter he wrote to Count Witte, the Tzar’s emissary who
attended the Peace negotiations held at Portsmouth, U.S.A. in 1905.
“Can it be expected that the influence of the American Jew upon public opinion will be exerted
to the advantage of the country which systematically degraded his brethren-in-race ? ... If the
Government, now being formed, should not succeed in assuring safety, and equal opportunity
throughout the Empire, to the Jewish population, then indeed the time will have come for the
Jews in Russia to quit their inhospitable fatherland. While the problem with which the civilized
world will then be faced will be enormous, it will be solved, and you, who are not only a far-
seeing statesman, but also a great economist, know best that the fate of Russia, and its doom,
will then be sealed.”
The hypocrisy of Jacob Schiff can be better appreciated when it is explained that from 1897 he
had financed the Terrorists in Russia. In 1904 he helped finance the revolution which broke out
in Russia in 1905. He also helped to organize on an international basis the financing of the
Russian Revolution which broke out early in 1917, and gave him and his associates their first
opportunity to put their Totalitarian Theories into effect. [6]
The Russo-Japanese War was fomented by the international bankers in order to create the
conditions necessary for the success of a revolutionary effort to overthrow the power of the
Tzars. The plans of the International Bankers were upset when the Jewish-led Mensheviks
started a revolution independently in Russia in 1905. When the International Bankers withheld
financial support the revolution failed right at the moment it appeared to have reached the
pinnacle of success.
Because the Jewish-dominated Mensheviks acted on their own initiative the International
Bankers decided that Lenin would conduct their revolutionary programme in Russia from that
date onwards.
Lenin was born in the city of Simbirsk, located on the banks of the river Volga. He was the son
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (5 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
of a government official who had the title of “Actual State Counsellor”. This title was not
inherited, but had been awarded to his father for outstanding service as a school supervisor.
Lenin received a university education and was admitted to the practice of Law but he never set
himself up in business. Jewish students had persuaded him that it was time to overthrow the
power of the privileged classes and time that the masses ruled their own countries. It was while
Lenin was toying with the idea that “Necessary reforms could only be brought about speedily by
revolutionary action” that his brother was arrested by the police and executed.
Lenin was quickly recognized as an intellectual. He was associating with the leaders of the
Revolutionary Party when in his early twenties. It has been previously stated that the wealthy
direct influential international money-lenders had helped finance and direct the revolutionary
activities within the Pale of Settlement. Lenin wanted to find out all he could about the people
who directed the various national revolutionary groups which were united in the common cause
of Popular Revolution. In 1895, at the age of twenty-five, he went to Switzerland and joined
Plekhanov who had fled there from Russia to escape the fate of Lenin’s older brother Alexander.
While in Switzerland, Lenin and Plekhanov, who were Gentiles, joined forces with Vera
Zasulich, Leo Deutch, P. Axelrod, and Julius Tsederbaum, who were all Jews. They formed a
Marxist Movement on a world wide scale which they named the “Group for the Emancipation
of Labour”. Tsederbaum was a young man like Lenin. He had earned a reputation in “The Pale
of Settlement” as a ruthless terrorist, and accomplished agitator. He changed his name to
Martov. He became leader of the Mensheviks. Lenin ruled the Bolsheviks in Russia.
The abortive revolutionary attempt by the Mensheviks in 1905 convinced Lenin that the only
way to have a successful revolution was to organize an International Planning Committee which
would first plan and then direct any agreed upon revolutionary effort. Lenin brought into being
the Comintern, as the Central International Revolutionary Planning Committee. The
International Bankers picked him as their top-level agent in Russia. Lenin had made a serious
study of the Great French Revolution. When he learned that the Secret Power which had
brought about the French Revolution was still in active operation he threw in his lot with them.
His plan was to let the members of the Comintern think they were the Brains, but to influence
their thinking, so that they furthered the Long Range Plans of the International Bankers. If the
day came when the revolutionary leaders couldn’t be controlled then they could always be
liquidated. Evidence will be given to show how this actually happened.
Having decided his own policy, Lenin returned to Russia with Martov to organize his Money
Raising Campaign which consisted of blackmail, bank robbery, extortion, and other kinds of
illegal practices. Lenin argued that it was only logical to take money from the people whose
government they plotted to overthrow. He made it a principle of his party that all young people
who aspired to membership should, like his older brother Alexander, be tested for physical
courage. and mental alertness. Lenin insisted that part of every young revolutionary’s training
should include robbing a bank, blowing up a police station, and liquidating a traitor or spy.
Lenin also insisted that the revolutionary leaders, in all other countries, should organize an
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (6 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
underground system. In discussing, this matter, and writing about it, Lenin declared
“everything legal and illegal which furthers the revolutionary movement is justified”. He
warned, however, that “the legal party should always be in control of the illegal”. This practice
is in force to-day, particularly in Canada and the United States. Communists who openly
acknowledge their membership in the Labour Progressive Party take great care not to get
involved in a criminal way with the illegal activities of the Communist party’s underground
organization. But the “Apparatus” secretly directs operations and benefits financially, as a
result.
It is a fact that few of the early leaders of Communism were members of the proletariat. Most
of them were well educated intellectuals. In 1895 they caused a series of strikes. Some of these
were successfully turned into riots. Thus they brought about one of the fundamental principles
of revolutionary technique “developing a minor disturbance until it became a riot, and brought
the citizens into actual physical conflict with the police.”
Lenin, Martov, and a number of other revolutionaries, were arrested and sentenced to prison.
Lenin finished his prison term in 1897.
It is not generally known that in those days in Russia political offenders exiled to Siberia were
not imprisoned if they had not been convicted of any other CRIMINAL offence. Therefore, Lenin
took his beautiful young Jewish wife, and her Yiddish speaking mother, into exile with him.
During his term of exile Lenin drew an allowance of seven rubles and forty copecks a month
from the Russian Government. This was just about enough to pay for room and board. Lenin
worked as a bookkeeper to earn extra money. It was while in exile that Lenin, Martov, and an
accomplice named Potresov, decided upon their release to publish a newspaper for the purpose
of combining the brains and energies of the entire revolutionary movement which at that time
was broken up into many factions.
In February 1900 Lenin finished his exile. He was granted permission to return to Switzerland
for a visit. He joined the other revolutionary leaders and the agents of the Secret Powers. They
approved his idea; and Iskra (The Spark) was published. The editorial board consisted of the
older revolutionary leaders — Plekhanov, Zasulich and Axelrod — with Lenin, Potresov and
Martov representing the younger members. Lenin’s wife was secretary of the board. Trotsky
joined the editorial staff two years later. For a while the paper was actually printed in Munich,
Germany. The editorial board met in London. [7] In 1903 it was moved back to Geneva. The
copies were smuggled into Russia, and other countries, by way of the underground system
organized by the Grand Orient Masons. Because the paper was named “Iskra”, the
revolutionaries who subscribed to the Party Line, as defined by the editorial board, became
known as Iskrists.
The paper called for a Unification Congress to take place in Brussels in 1903 for the purpose of
uniting various Marxist groups. The Russian Social Democrats, Rosa Luxemberg’s Polish
Social Democrats, the group for the Emancipation of Labour, and the Maximalist group, were
represented. Early in August the Belgium police took action, and the delegates moved over to
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (7 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
London en masse. This Congress is of historical importance because during this Congress the
ideological split developed between the Iskrists. Lenin became leader of the Bolshevik (or
majority group) while Martov became leader of the Mensheviks (or minority group).
When the Mensheviks pulled off the abortive revolution in Russia in 1905, Trotsky proved
himself a leader of ability. It is difficult for the uninitiated to understand just what caused the
effort to fold up, because the revolutionaries had control of St. Petersburg from January to
December 1905. They formed the Petersburg Soviet, Lenin and many of his top-level
revolutionary leaders stayed aloof. They let the Menshevik Party handle this revolution.
Lenin had been in Geneva consulting with the Secret Powers when the revolution broke out
following the Bloody Sunday tragedy in St. Petersburg in January 1905. He didn’t return to
Russia until October. The Bloody Sunday tragedy was blamed on the intolerance of the Tzar,
but many who investigated the happenings found ample evidence to convince them that the
Bloody Sunday incident had been planned by the Terrorist Group for the purpose of arousing
anger and hatred in the hearts of the non-Jewish workers against the Tzar. The incident enabled
the leaders of the revolutionary movement to enlist the support of thousands of non-Jewish men
and women who, until that sad day, had remained loyal to the Tzar, and spoken of him as “The
Little Father”. Bloody Sunday is of great historical importance.
In January, 1905, Russia was at war with Japan. Transportation on the railway across the
Russian waste-lands from west to east had been broken down. Reinforcements and supplies had
failed to get through to the eastern front due to sabotage. On January 2nd the Russian people
were shocked with the news that Port Arthur had fallen to the Japanese. They had lost the war
against what they had considered a very second class power.
The Imperial Government, in its attempt to gain the favour of the industrial population, had
adopted the policy of encouraging the formation of legal trade unions. Known revolutionaries
had to be barred from membership. One of the most active leaders in organizing the Legal
Trade Unions was the Russian Orthodox Priest, Father Gapon. The liberal reforms, obtained by
non-radical citizens, didn’t please the leaders of the revolutionary party who claimed that
“necessary reforms could only be brought about speedily by revolution”. Father Gapon had
won so much respect he was welcomed by the Tzar, and his ministers, any time he wished to
discuss a weighty labour problem.
On January 2nd, when the bad war news swept the Empire, organized labour disturbances broke
out in St. Petersburg’s huge Putilov Works. A strike was called, but because of the general
situation, Father Gapon said he would settle the matters in dispute by direct appeal to the Tzar.
The idea appealed to the majority of the workers, but the “Radicals” opposed it. However, on
Sunday afternoon January 22nd, 1905, thousands of workmen, accompanied by their wives and
children, formed into a procession to accompany Father Gapon to the palace gates. According
to the authentic reports the procession was entirely orderly. Petitioners carried hastily made
banners expressing loyalty to the “Little Father”. At the palace gates, without the slightest
warning, the procession was thrown into utter confusion by a withering volley of rifle and
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (8 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
machine gun fire. Hundreds of workers and their families were slaughtered. The square in front
of the Palace was turned into a space of agonized chaos. January 22nd, 1905 has been known as
“Bloody Sunday” ever since. Was Nicholas II responsible ? It is a proven fact that he was not
in the Palace, or in the city, at the time. It is known that an officer of the guard ordered the
troops to fire. It is quite possible he was a “Cell” carrying out the terrorist policy of his
superiors. This act was the “spark” that touched the “tinder” provided by the revolutionary
leaders. The “blaze” of a full scale revolution followed.
Regardless of who was responsible, tens of thousands of previously loyal industrial workers
joined the Socialist Revolutionary Party, and the movement spread to other cities. The Tzar
tried to stem the tide of rebellion. Early in February he ordered an investigation into the St.
Petersburg events, by the Shidlovsky Commission. In August he announced provision had been
made for the establishment of a democratic representative legislature. This became the Duma.
He offered amnesty to all political offenders. It was under this amnesty that Lenin, and his
Bolshevik leaders, returned to Russia in October from Switzerland, and other countries abroad.
But nothing the Tzar did could stem the tide of revolution.
On October 20th, 1905, the Menshevik-led all Russian Railway Union went on strike. On
October 25th general strikes were effective in Moscow, Smolensk, Kursk, and other cities. On
October 26th the Revolutionary Petersburg Soviet was founded. It assumed the functions of a
national government. The Soviet government was dominated by the Menshevik faction of the
Russian Social-Democratic Labour Party although the Social Revolutionary Party had
representation. The first President was Menshevik Zborovisk. He was quickly displaced by
Georgi Nosar. He in turn was superseded by Lev Trotsky who became President on December
9th, 1905. On the 16th of December, a military force arrested Trotsky and 300 members of the
Soviet government. There wasn’t a single prominent Bolshevik amongst those arrested. This
should prove that Lenin was acting for, and protected by, the Secret Powers which operate
behind the government.
The revolution wasn’t quite over. On December 20th a Jew named Parvus assumed control over
a new Soviet Executive. He called a general strike in St. Petersburg and 90,000 workers
responded. The next day 150,000 workers went on strike in Moscow. Open insurrection broke
out in Chita, Kansk and Rostov. On December 30th the troops, and government officials, who
had remained loyal to the Tzar, in some miraculous manner regained control. They put an end
to the revolution. [8] Tzar Nicholas II kept his promise. The Duma was formed and an elected
legislature established.
In 1907 the Fifth Congress of the Russian Social Democratic Labour Party was held in London.
Lenin with 91 delegates represented the Bolshevik party; the Mensheviks led by Martov had 89
delegates; Rosa Luxemberg led her Polish Social democrats with 44 delegates; the Jewish Bund
led by Rafael Abramovitch had 55; the Lettish Social Democrats, led by Comrade Herman
(Danishevsky) made up the remainder. All told there were 312 delegates of which 116 were, or
had been, workers.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (9 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
This Congress had been called for the purpose of holding a postmortem on the abortive Russian
Revolution of 1905. Lenin blamed the failure of the revolutionary effort on lack of co-operation
between the Mensheviks and other group leaders. He told the 312 delegates that the
Mensheviks had run the whole show and made a mess of things generally. He called for unity
of policy and unity of action. He argued that revolutionary action should be planned well in
advance, and the element of surprise used to full advantage.
Martov hit back at Lenin. He accused him of failing to give the Menshevik revolutionary effort
the support he should have done. He accused him particularly of withholding financial
assistance. Martov and the other Jewish groups led by Ross. Luxemberg and Abrahamovitch,
were annoyed that Lenin had been able to finance the attendance of the largest number of
delegates. They accused him of financing his Bolshevik party by robbery, kidnappings, forgery
and theft. They reprimanded him for refusing to contribute a fair proportion of his ill-gotten
gains to the central unifying organization. One big laugh was created when one of the
Mensheviks accused Lenin of marrying off one of his top officials to a rich widow in order to
enrich his party treasury.
Lenin is alleged to have admitted he had done this for the good of the Cause. He maintained
that the official he had married oft to the widow was a fine, strong, healthy specimen of
humanity. He thought the widow would agree she had gotten full value for her money. It was
at this Congress that Stalin, then a very minor character, became attached to Lenin. The
Congress finally agreed to closer co-operation between the leaders of the various revolutionary
groups and decided who should edit their revolutionary newspapers. They put great emphasis
upon propaganda. At this Congress they laid the foundation for a re-organization of their
propaganda machine with the understanding that all publications should adopt the same editorial
policy “The Party Line”.
In 1908 the Bolsheviks started publishing the “Proletarie”. Lenin, Dubrovinsky, Zinoviev and
Kamenev were the editors. The Mensheviks published “Golos Sotsial-Demokrata”. Plekhanov,
Axelrod, Martov, Dan and Martynov (Pikel) were the editors. All editors were Jewish except
Lenin and Plekhanov. Trotsky started a semi-independent publication named “Vienna Pravda”.
In 1909 Lenin won the unconditional support of two Jewish leaders, Zinoviev and Kamenev.
They became known as “The Troika” and this friendship endured until Lenin’s death in 1924.
After the Fifth Congress of the Russian Social Democrats Labour Party held in London in 1907,
Lenin decided to find out how courageous and trustworthy his new disciple Stalin was. He also
wished to convince the leaders of the other revolutionary groups that he was financially
independent. To accomplish this dual purpose he instructed Stalin to rob the Tiflis Bank. Stalin
picked as his accomplice an Armenian named Petroyan, who afterwards changed his name to
Kamo. They discovered the Bank was going to transfer a large sum of money from one place to
another by public conveyance. They waylaid the conveyance. Petroyan tossed a bomb.
Everything, and everyone, in the conveyance was blown to smithereens, except the strong box
containing the cash — 250,000 rubles. Thirty people lost their lives. The loot was turned over
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (10 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
to Lenin. Stalin had proven himself as a potential leader.
The Bolsheviks encountered difficulty using the stolen rubles for party purposes because most
of the currency consisted of 500 ruble notes. Lenin conceived the idea of distributing the 500
ruble notes among trustworthy Bolsheviks in various countries. They were instructed to get rid
of as much of the money as they could on a given day. This directive was carried out, but two
of Lenin’s agents fell foul of the police during the transaction. One was Olga Ravich, who
afterwards married Zinoviev, Lenin’s great friend. The other was Meyer Wallach, whose real
name was Finklestein. He afterwards changed his name again to Maxim Litvinov. He became
known throughout the world as Stalin’s Commissar of Foreign Affairs from 1930 to 1939. [9]
After the revolution of 1905 had ended, Tzar Nicholas II set about making many radical
reforms. He planned turning the Russian absolute monarchy into a limited monarchy such as is
enjoyed by the British people. After the Duma began to function the Premier, Peter
Arkadyevich Stolypin became a great reformer. He dominated Russian politics and drafted the
“Stolypin Constitution” which guaranteed civil rights to peasants who were about 85 per cent of
the entire Russian population. His land reforms granted financial assistance to the peasants so
they could purchase their own farms. His idea was that the logical way to defeat those who
advocated the communal way of life was to encourage individual ownership.
But the revolutionary leaders wanted to usurp political and economic power. They were not the
least bit satisfied with reforms. In 1906 the Terrorist Group attempted to assassinate Stolypin.
They destroyed his home with a bomb. Several more plots were hatched to do away with the
most progressive premier the Russians could have hoped to have. On a dark September night,
in 1911, the Great Emancipator was shot to death, in cold blood, while attending a gala
performance at the Kiev theatre. The assassin was a Jewish lawyer named Mordecai Bogrov.
In 1907 the International Bankers organized the Wall Street Panic in order to reimburse
themselves for the money spent in connection with the Russian wars and revolutions. They
were also financing the preliminary stages of the Chinese revolution which broke out in 1911.
Many of Stolypin’s proposed reforms were carried out after his death. In 1912 an industrial
insurance law gave all industrial workmen compensation for sickness and injury to the extent of
two-thirds of their regular pay for sickness, and three-fourths, for accidents. Newspapers of the
revolutionary parties were given legal status for the first time since they had been printed.
Public schools were expanded. The election laws were revised in order to give more
representative government. In 1913, the government of the Tzar of Russia, granted a general
amnesty for all political prisoners. Immediately they were released from prison they began to
plot with renewed energy the overthrow of the Russian Government. Terrorists advocated the
liquidation of the Royal Family. But the reforms had appealed to the vast majority of the
Russian people. The revolution in Russia looked like a dead issue for the time being. Those
who directed the World Revolutionary Movement decided they would give Russia a rest for the
time being. They concentrated their efforts in other countries. Portugal and Spain came in for
attention.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (11 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
Because of the Red Fog created by Communist propaganda, and an organized campaign of
“L’Infamie” carried on in Russia, as it had been carried on in France and England prior to those
revolutions, it is difficult for the average person to believe that the Russian Tzars and Nobles
were anything else than big bearded monsters who enslaved the peasants, raped their young
women, and speared babies on the points of their swords while galloping through villages on
horse back. In order to prove that the last of the Tzars was a reformer we will quote Bertram
Wolfe, because Bertram Wolfe was anti-Tzarist and pro-revolutionary. Wolfe says on page 360
of his book “Three who made a Revolution” :
“Between 1907 and 1914 under Stolypin’s land reform laws, 2,000,000 peasants and their families
receded from the village mir and became individual proprietors. All through the war (1914 -1917)
the movement continued so that by January 1st, 1916, 6,200,000 peasant families out of
approximately 16,000,000 who had become eligible, had made application for separation. Lenin
saw the matter as a race with time between Stolypin’s reforms and the next revolutionary upheaval.
Should the upheaval be postponed for a couple of decades the new land measures would transform
the countryside so it would no longer be a revolutionary force. How near Lenin came to being right
is proved by the fact that in 1917, when he called upon the peasants to Take the Land they already
owned more than three-fourths of it.”
It is unfortunately true that Rasputin did exert an evil influence upon certain men and women of
the Russian Imperial Court. I know, from ladies attached to the Court at that time, that Rasputin
exercised a tremendous influence over the Empress because her young son suffered from
hemophilia and Rasputin was the only man who could stop the bleeding.
Rasputin definitely had mesmeric powers which are not uncommon amongst certain of the
Russian people. He seemed able to place the Empress under his influence, not as a lover, but
for the purpose of making her force the Tzar to do what Rasputin decided he wanted him to do.
It is not an exaggeration to say that Rasputin, because of the power he exerted on the Tzar
through the Queen, virtually ruled Russia to the dismay of the Russian people.
It is also true that Rasputin introduced into Court Circles men and women who practised the
pagan rites which were secretly carried on in the Palais Royal prior to the out-break of the
French Revolution in 1789. These ritualistic orgies were based on the ridiculous assumption
that people could not be saved until they had plumbed the depths of degradation in sin. He
introduced subversives right into the Royal Household and they obtained information that
enabled their masters to blackmail many influential people into doing their bidding. Rasputin
was undoubtedly of the Illuminati and the Synagogue of Satan.
_______________________
C HAPTER E IGHT
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (12 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
The Russian Revolution — 1917
In January, 1910, nineteen leaders of the World Revolutionary Movement met in London. This
meeting is recorded as “The January Plenum of the Central Committee”. Ways and means were
discussed to bring about greater unity. Lenin was again pressed to give up his policy of
financial independence. He responded by burning the Five Hundred Ruble notes left over from
the Tiflis bank robbery. Lenin was convinced it was just about impossible to cash the notes
without getting caught by the police.
The Plenum decided to accept the newspaper “Sotsial Demokrata” as the general party
publication. The Bolsheviks appointed Lenin and Zinoviev, and the Mensheviks, Martov and
Dan as editors. Kamenev was appointed to assist Trotsky edit “Vienna Pravda”. The Plenum
also discussed the pattern the world revolutionary effort should take. The delegates considered
the possible repercussions certain contemplated political assassinations would bring about. The
policy of the party was set. The Central Committee was ordered to prepare the Temples and
Lodges of the Grand Orient for action. The members were to be made active proselytizing their
revolutionary and atheistic ideology. [10]
The Party Line was to unite all revolutionary bodies for the purpose of bringing all the big
capitalistic countries into war with each other so that the terrific losses suffered, the high
taxation imposed, and the hardships endured by the masses of the population, would make the
majority of the working classes react favourably to the suggestion of a revolution to end wars.
When all countries had been Sovietized then the Secret Powers would form a Totalitarian
Dictatorship and their identity need remain secret no longer. It is possible that only Lenin knew
the secret aims and ambitions of the Illuminati who moulded revolutionary action to suit their
purposes.
The revolutionary leaders were to organize their undergrounds in all countries so as to be ready
to take over their nation’s political system and economy; the International Bankers were to
extend the ramifications of their agencies right around the world. It has been shown that Lenin
became active in revolutionary circles in 1894. It has also been stated that he decided to throw
in his lot with the International Bankers because he doubted the ability of the men who led the
Jewish dominated national revolutionary parties to consolidate their victories when gained. In
view of these statements it is necessary to review revolutionary events from 1895 to 1917.
The Empress of Austria was assassinated in 1898; King Humbert in 1900; President McKinley
in 1901; the Grand Duke Sergius of Russia in 1905, and the King and Crown Prince of Portugal
in 1908. To prove that the Illuminati acting through the Grand Orient Masons were responsible
for these political assassinations the following evidence is submitted.
The leaders of the World Revolutionary Movement, meeting in Geneva, Switzerland, thought it
was necessary to remove King Carlos of Portugal so they could establish a Republic in Portugal
so, in 1907, they ordered his assassination. In December 1907, Megalhaes Lima — the head of
Portuguese Grand Orient Masonry went to Paris to lecture to the Masonic Lodges. His subject
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (13 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
was “Portugal, the overthrow of the Monarchy, and the need of a republican form of
government”. A few weeks later King Carlos and his son, the Crown Prince, were assassinated.
Continental Masons boasted of this success. Furnemont, Grand Orator of the Grand Orient of
Belgium, said on February 12, 1911 : “Do you recall the deep feeling of pride which we all felt
at the brief announcement of the Portuguese Revolution ? In a few hours the throne had been
brought down, the people triumphed, and the republic was proclaimed. For the uninitiated, it
was a flash of lightning in a clear sky... But we, my brothers, we understood. We knew the
marvellous organization of our Portuguese brothers, their ceaseless zeal, their uninterrupted
work. We possessed the secret of that glorious event.” [11]
The leaders of the World Revolutionary Movement, and the top-level officials of continental
Freemasonry, met in Switzerland in 1912. It was during this meeting that they reached the
decision to assassinate the Archduke Francis Ferdinand in order to bring about World War One.
The actual date on which the murder was to be committed was left in abeyance because the cold
blooded plotters did not consider the time was quite ripe for his murder to provide the maximum
political repercussions. On September 15th, 1912 the “Revue Internationale des Sociétés
Secretes” edited by M. Jouin, published the following words on pages 787-788 “Perhaps light
will be shed one day on these words spoken by a high Swiss Freemason. While discussing the
subject of the heir to the throne of Austria he said : ‘The Archduke is a remarkable man. It is a
pity that he is condemned. He will die on the steps of the throne.’”
Light was shed on those words at the trial of the assassins who murdered the heir to the Austrian
throne, and his wife, on June 28th, 1914. This act of violence committed in Sarajevo, was the
spark that touched off the blaze that was developed into World War One. Pharos’ shorthand
notes of the Military Trial is a most enlightening document. They provide further evidence that
the international bankers used the Grand Orient Lodges to bring about World War One, as they
used them in 1787-1789 to bring about the French Revolution. On October 12, 1914, the
president of the military court questioned Cabrinovic, who threw the first bomb at the
Archduke’s car.
The President : “Tell me something more about the motives. Did you know, before deciding to
attempt the assassination, that Tankosic and Ciganovic were Freemasons ? Had the fact that
you and they were Freemasons an influence on your resolve ?” [12]
Cabrinovic : “Yes”.
The President : “Did you receive from them the mission to carry out the assassination ?”
Cabrinovic : “I received from no one the mission to carry out the assassination. Freemasonry
had to do with it because it strengthened my intention. In Freemasonry it is permitted to kill.
Ciganovic told me that the Freemasons had condemned the Archduke Franz Ferdinand to death
MORE THAN A YEAR BEFORE .”
Add to this evidence the further evidence of Count Czerin, an intimate friend of the Archduke.
He says in “Im-Welt-Krieg” — “The Archduke knew quite well that the risk of an attempt on
his life was imminent. A year before the war he informed me that the Freemasons had resolved
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (14 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
on his death.”
*// Conveniently fails to tell that in the back of all that Serb agitation there was French diplomacy and Russian money;
and behind all that tension, scheming and secret alliances which this spark ignited into a war, ultimately the British
foreign ministry and the British ruling class. How could he write about WWI and not even mention Paléologue, Grey,
Conrad, Januskevics, Moltke (or Izvolsky and his remark : ‘Je suis le père de cette guerre’) ? How could he write this
book without saying a word about Cecil Rhodes and Alfred Milner and their secret society ?
Having succeeded in bringing about a World War, the leaders of the Revolutionary Movement
proceeded to use the very fact to convince the industrial workers, and the men in the armed
forces, that the war was a capitalistic war. They agitated. They criticized everything possible.
They blamed the various governments for everything that went wrong. The International
“Capitalists” were directed by the Illuminati who remained discreetly in the background,
unsuspected, and unharmed. [13]
Because Russia had only emerged from the disastrous war with Japan a few years previously it
was a comparatively simple matter for the trained agitators amongst the Mensheviks to create an
atmosphere of doubt, suspicion, and unrest in the minds of the Russian workers, and finally
amongst the troops in 1914-1916. By January 1917 the Russian Imperial Armies had suffered
nearly 3,000,000 casualties. The cream of Russia’s manhood had died.
*// Yes, and for what ? For the sake of England and the imperial dream of controlling the Dardanelles. What Illuminati
forced the Czar and the Russian ruling class to have dreams of enlarging their borders, to send soldiers to the front with
no weapons, to continue that sensless war against Germany and Austria when they never wanted war with Russia in the
first place. Could any menshevik or bolshevik mobilize Russia and in a suicide attack drive it all the way to the
Tannenberg forest ? or was it a grand duke, drunk with nationalistic fervor ?
Lenin and Martov were in Switzerland, the neutral ground upon which all international plots are
hatched out. Trotsky was organizing the hundreds of ex-Russian revolutionaries who had found
refuge in the United States. He was particularly active in New York’s East Side. [14] The
leaders of the Mensheviks were carrying on their subversive policy in Russia. Their first
objective was to overthrow the power of the Tzar. Their opportunity came in January 1917.
Cleverly carried out sabotage in the communication systems, the department of transport, and
the ministry of supply, resulted in a serious food shortage in St. Petersburg. This happened at
the time when the population was swollen so far above its normal size, due to the influx into the
city of industrial workers needed for the war effort. February, 1917, was a bad month. Food
rationing was introduced. On March 5th, general unrest was evident. Bread lines were
growing. On March 6th, the streets became crowded with unemployed. Cossack troops were
brought into the city. The Tzar was still at the front visiting the troops. [15]
On March 7th, the Jewish leaders of the Menshevik party organized the women to put on street
demonstrations as a protest over the bread shortage. [16]
On March 8th, the women staged the demonstration. The revolutionary leaders then took a
hand. Selected groups staged diversionary demonstrations. Gangs appeared here and there
singing revolutionary songs and raising Red Flags. At the corner of Nevsky Prospekt, and the
St. Catherine Canal, the Mounted Police and Cossacks dispersed the crowds without inflicting
any casualties. The crowds who gathered around those who raised the Red Flags and cried out
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (15 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
for revolution weren’t even fired on. It looked as if definite orders had been given to avoid, at
all cost, a repetition of what happened on Bloody Sunday, 1905. [17]
On March 9th the Nevsky Prospekt from Catherine Canal to Nicolai Station was jammed with
milling crowds which became bolder under the urgings of agitators. Cossack cavalry cleared
the street. Some were trampled but the troops only used the flat of their sabres. At no time
were fire-arms used. This tolerance infuriated the revolutionary leaders and the agitators were
directed to increase their efforts to bring the people into physical conflict with the police and
troops. During the night the revolutionary leaders set up machine-guns in hidden positions
throughout the city.
On March 10th an unfortunate incident provided the tiny spark necessary to kindle the
revolutionary tinder which had been piled up, and soaked with inflammable oratory. A big
crowd had gathered about Nicholai station. About two in the afternoon a man, heavily dressed
in furs to protect himself from the cold, drove into the square in his sleigh. He was impatient.
He ordered his driver to go through the crowd. He misjudged the temper of the crowd.
The man was dragged from the sleigh and beaten. He regained his feet and took refuge in a
stalled street car. He was followed by a section of the mob and ONE of them, carrying a small
iron bar, beat his head to a pulp. This single act of violence aroused the blood-lust in the crowd
and they surged down Nevsky smashing windows. Fights broke out.
The disorder spread until it became general. The revolutionary leaders by pre-arrangement fired
on the mob from their hidden positions. The mob attacked the police. They blamed the police
for firing on them. They slaughtered every policeman to a man. [18] The inmates of the prisons
and jails were then released to stir up the blood-lust. Conditions necessary for the Reign of
Terror were introduced.
On March 11th the depredations of the recently released criminals led to wide-spread rioting.
The Duma still tried to stay the rising tide of revolt. They dispatched an urgent message to the
Tzar telling him the situation was serious. The telegram explained at considerable length the
state of anarchy which then existed. Communist “Cells” within the communication systems
sent another message. The Tzar, upon reading the telegram he did receive, commanded the
dissolution of the Duma. Thus he deprived himself of the support of the majority of the
members who were loyal to him.
On March 12th, the President of the dissolved Duma sent a last despairing message to the Tzar.
It concluded with the words, “The last hour has struck. The fate of the fatherland and the
dynasty is being decided”. It is claimed the Tzar never received this message. This control of
communication systems by “Cells” placed in key positions was used widely during the next few
months. [19]
On March 12th, several regiments revolted and killed their own officers. Then, unexpectedly,
the garrison of St. Peter and St. Paul fortress surrendered, and most of the troops joined the
revolution.
Immediately after the surrender of the garrison a Committee of the Duma was formed consisting
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (16 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
of 12 members. This provisional government survived until overthrown by Lenin’s Bolsheviks
in November, 1917. The reolutionary leaders, who were for the most part Mensheviks,
organized the Petersburg Soviet. They agreed to allow the Provisional Government to function
because it had the resemblance of rightful authority.
St. Petersburg was only one city in a vast Empire. There was no way of knowing accurately just
how the citizens in other cities would behave. Kerensky, the Socialist, was a very strong man.
He was referred to as the Napoleon of Russia.
Through the good auspices of the international bankers, M.M. Warburg & Sons. Lenin was put
in communication with the German military leaders. He explained to them that the policy of
both Kerensky’s Provisional Government, and the Menshevik revolutionary Soviet, was to keep
Russia in the war against Germany. [20]
*// Please read actual history of the financing of the bolshevik revolution, of the revolutionazition of Russia by the
german high command as a war measure, and the origin of leninism.
Lenin undertook to curb the power of the Jewish revolutionary leaders in Russia. He promised
to take the Russian Armies out of the war against Germany, providing the German government
would help him overthrow the Russian Provisional Government and obtain political and
economic control of the country. This deal was agreed to and Lenin, Martov, Radek and a party
of 30 odd Bolsheviks were secretly transported across Germany to Russia in a sealed railway
compartment. They arrived in St. Petersburg April 3rd. The Warburgs of Germany, and the
international bankers in Geneva provided the necessary funds.
*// The Warburgs were not stupid, neither the international bankers. The german high command made available for the
bolsheviks 40 million marks, and that was chanelled to them through private banks (Disconto-Gesselschaft, Nya
Banken, Siberian Bank). Far from initiating anything, Lenin moved only after the Germans forced him.
The Russian Provisional Government signed its own death warrant in 1917 when, immediately
after it was formed, it promulgated an order granting unconditional amnesty to all political
prisoners. The amnesty included those in exile in Siberia, and those who had sought refuge in
countries abroad. This order enabled over 90,000 revolutionaries, most of them extremists, to
re-enter Russia. Many of them were trained leaders. Lenin and Trotsky enlisted this vast influx
of revolutionaries into their Bolshevik Party.
No sooner was Lenin back in Russia than he used propaganda to attack the Provisional
Government which had granted him and his followers pardon. At the beginning of April, the
Petersburg Soviet (meaning Workers’ Council) was dominated by the Mensheviks. The Essars
(Social Revolutionaries) came second, and the Bolsheviks, for once, were the minority group.
The policy of the Provisional Government was to continue the war effort because the majority
of Russians considered the totalitarian ambitions of the German “Black” Nazi War Lords a
direct threat to Russian sovereignty. This policy was vigorously supported by Tcheidze who
had assumed the presidency of the Petersburg Soviet in the absence of Martov. Vice-president
Skobelev of the Soviet, who was also a member of the Provisional Government, also supported
the war effort because he thought that if the revolutionaries could help bring about the defeat of
Germany’s armed forces they might be able to help the German and Polish revolutionary groups
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (17 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
overthrow the German Government in the hour of its defeat.
Lenin’s one object, at that time, was to obtain leadership. He attacked the policy of the
Provisional Government. He accused its members of being instruments of the bourgeois. He
openly advocated its immediate overthrow by violent means. He didn’t want to antagonize the
Menshevik members of the Petersburg Soviet at this time. Lenin insructed his Bolshevik
agitators to preach the destruction of the Provisional Government to factory workers and
military garrisons but to use the slogan “All power to the Soviets” — meaning all power to the
workers’ councils.
Amongst the thousands of revolutionaries who returned to Russia, following the general
amnesty, was Trotsky. He took back with him, fromm Canada and the United States, several
hundred revolutionaries who had previously escaped from Russia. The vast majority were
Yiddish Jews from the East End of New York. [21]
These revolutionaries helped put Lenin into power. Once these revolutionaries had served their
purpose most of them were condemned to exile or death. It was only a comparatively short time
before all original members of the First International were either dead, in prison, or in exile.
The history of the Lenin and Stalin Dictatorships should convince any unbiased person that the
masses of the world’s population, regardless of colour, or creed have been used as Pawns in the
Game of international chess played by the “Red” international bankers and the “Black” Aryan
Nazi War Lords as directed by the Illuminati.
Further proof that the international bankers were responsible for Lenin’s part in the Russian
Revolution is to be found in a “White Paper” published by authority of the King of England in
April 1919 (Russia No. 1), but the international bankers, through the directors of the Bank of
England, persuaded the British Government to withdraw the original document and substitute
another in which all reference to international Jews was removed. [22]
François Coty in “Figaro” February 20th, 1932 states :
“The subsidies granted to the Nihilists in Russia and elsewhere at this period by Jacob Schiff
were no longer acts of isolated generosity. A veritable Russian Terrorist organization had been
set up in the U.S.A. at his expense, charged to assassinate ministers, governors, heads of police,
etc.” The Illuminati who use Communism and Naziism to further their secret totalitarian
ambitions organize revolutionary action in three steps or movements. [23]
1. The change-over of the existing form of government (regardless of whether it be a monarchy,
or a republic) into a socialist state by constitutional means if possible.
2. The change-over of the Socialist State into a Proletarian Dictatorship by revolutionary action.
3. The change-over from a Proletarian Dictatorship to a Totalitarian Dictatorship by purging all
influential people who may be opposed.
After 1918, all Russian Jews were either revolutionary Jews, clinging tenaciously to the
Marxian theories, and working for the establishment of an international of Soviet Socialist
Republics, (Trotskyites) of they favoured returning to Palestine (The Zionists). Miss B.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (18 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
Baskerville in her book “The Polish Jew” published in 1906 has this to say about the Ghettos on
pages 117-118 : “Social-Zionism aims at converting the Zionists to socialism before they go to
Palestine in order to facilitate the establishment of a Socialist Government ... in the meantime
they do their best to overthrow those European Governments which do not attain to their
political standard ... their programme which is full of Socialistic ideas ... includes the
organization of strikes, acts of terror, and the organizers being very young, acts of folly as
well ... ”
The Secret Power behind the W.R.M. also controls political Zionism, yet the vast majority of
the Jews who work for Zionism are absolutely ignorant that they also are being used as “Pawns
in the Game”, of International Chess.
________________________
1 This fact had a great deal to do with the eventual destruction of Tzarist power which ended with the murder of
Tzar Nicholas II, and his whole family, in the house in Ekaterinburg on July 17th, 1918 by a man named
Yorovrest. Ekaterinhurg was afterwards renamed Sverdlovsk in honour of the Jew Yakov Sverdlov who was
president of the Soviet Republic at the time of the executions. Illuminati symbols were formed on the walls of the
death cellar.
2 This is another illustration of how even a Professor of History can fall into the Anti-Semitic pitfalls set by the
conspirators. Admittedly the majority of people believe that all the International Bankers and Tycoons are Jews,
but this is incorrect. The majority are not Jews, either by blood, racial descent or religion. They actually foster
Anti-Semitism because they can use all Anti-movements to further their diabolical plans.
3 Ginzberg was the official representative in Russia of the House of Rothschild.
4 The Zionist Movement was in turn controlled by the International Bankers and also used to further their secret
plans and ambitions. Read The Palestine Plot by B. Jensen.
5 My farther, Captain F.H. Carr, was one of the British officers who served with the Japanese in 1904 and 1905. I
have in my possession a very beautiful ivory carving of a Japanese wood-cutter enjoying a smoke after his lunch.
This museum piece was presented to my father by the Japanese government in appreciation of services rendered.
My father gave me a great deal of valuable information regarding the behind the scene intrigue which led to the
Russian-Japanese War.
6 François Coty in Figaro Feb. 20th, 1932 said : The subsidies granted the Nihilists at this period (i.e. 1905 to 1914
– author) by Jacob Schiff were no longer acts of isolated generosity. A veritable Russian Terrorist organization had
been set up in the U.S.A. at his expense, charged to assassinate Ministers, Governors, Heads of Police, etc.
7 Because the Rothschild’s influence was so great with the Bank of England’s directors, and because the directors
of the Bank of England could control the policy of the British government, revolutionaries have always been able to
find asylum in England when barred by every other country. Karl Marx and Engels are typical examples.
8 Had Lenin and the International Bankers intervened on behalf of the Mensheviks at this time nothing could have
defeated the revolutionary efforts. There is no possible explanation for them allowing the Government Forces to
regain control except that they had secret plans which they were not then ready to put into effect. That they were
preparing for World War One and wished Russia to remain a Monarchy until after the war broke out seems to be
the only logical conclusion, and future events would indicate this was their plan.
9 This “Gangster” played an important part in International affairs in England and Germany, in the League of
Nations and the United Nations right up to the time of his death.
10 The Atheistic Grand Orient Masons must not be confused with other European and American Freemasons,
whose principles are above reproach, work philanthropic, and whose ritual is based on belief in The Great Architect
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (19 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 7, 8
of the Universe.
*// Really ? Now you are trying to tell me that worship of Yahbulon, grand architect of the universe is
acceptable ? What happened to your Roman Catholic ideas, not to mention your Christian views ?
11 Note : Bulletin du Grand Orient de Belgique 5910, 1910, page 92.
12 Tankosic and Ciganovic were higher Masons than Cabrinovic. It had previously been brought out at the trial
that Ciganovic had told Cabrinovic that the Freemasons could not find men to carry out the Archduke’s murder.
13 It was indeed a Capitalistic war, but not the kind of Capitalistic war the workers were led to believe it was by
propaganda put out by the press the international bankers controlled in every country of the world.
14 Police officials and debates in Congress show this illegal entry is going on today on an ever increasing scale.
The underworld characters also find admittance to Canada very easy. The danger lies in the fact that the
underworld and the revolutionary underground are interlocked. One could not and never has survived without the
other. The men who are The Secret Power direct both. The Aryan War Lords have used the Mafia, The
International Tycoons, the Jewish terrorists. This explains gang wars.
15 The troops had 1 rifle to 6 men by Feb. 1917 : 1 day’s ammunition.
16 This move was almost identical with the plot to use men disguised as women in the march on the Tuileries.
17 One of the best works dealing with the events leading up to the Russian Revolution is “Behind Communism” by
Frank Britton.
18 I have definite and authoritative evidence in my possession from people who were in St. Petersburg and in a
position to know that the machine-guns used were neither placed in their positions, or fired by the police. The
police had received definite orders that they were not to use drastic action.
19 Lenin, in order to break the spirit of the troops fighting the Germans at the front in November 1917, had
messages sent to field officers which they accepted as coming from the Russian High Command. One General
received orders to advance against the enemy, while two others, one on each flank of the General who was ordered
to advance, were ordered to retire. It is little wonder that the troops turned on their own officers.
20 I have evidence to prove that the brother of Paul Warburg of New York was the German Army Intelligence
Officer who negotiated with Lenin on behalf of the German High Command and arranged for his safe passage
across Germany to Russia.
*// Then you should have provided that evidence, because you seem to the only one who ever heard of this meeting.
21 Father Denis Fahey C.S. Sp. in his book The Rulers of Russia pages 9-14 gives the names of all these
revolutionary leaders, their nationality, racial origin, and the positions they were assigned to immediately Lenin had
usurped power and Trotsky consolidated his position in Russia in November, 1917.
22 Captain A.H.M. Ramsay, member of Parliament for Midlothian and Peebleshire from 1931 to 1945, states on
page 96 of his book : The Nameless War — “I was shown the Two White Papers ... the original and the abridged
issue, side by side. Vital passages had been eliminated from the abridged edition.”
23 For further details regarding this matter read “The Last Days of the Mevanovs,” by Thornton Butterworth; and
“Les Derniers Jours des Romanoff”, by Robert Wilton, 15 years Russian correspondent for the “London Times”.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_07.html (20 of 20)5.4.2006 12:15:51William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 9
Guy Carr
Pawns in the Game
C HAPTER N INE
Political Intrigue — 1914 – 1919
The way international intrigue was used to depose the Right Honourable H.H. Asquith when he
was Prime Minister of Great Britain in 1916 was explained to me by a man who was extremely
well informed. I met him while serving as King’s Messenger in 1917. We were in my room, in
a hotel when, during the course of conversation, I mentioned that I strongly suspected that a
comparatively small group of extremely wealthy men used the power their wealth could buy to
influence national and international affairs, to further their own secret plans and ambitions.
My companion replied : “If you talk about such things it is unlikely that you will live long
enough to realize how right you are.” He then told me how Mr. Asquith had been deposed in
December 1916, and Mr. David Lloyd George, Winston Churchill, and The Rt. Hon. Arthur
James Balfour were placed in power in England.
The story he told me had a remarkable similarity to the plot used by the Secret Powers who
directed the campaign of L’Infamie immediately prior to the outbreak of the French revolution
in 1789. It will be recalled a letter was used to lure Cardinal Prince de Rohan to the Palais
Royal where he was involved with a prostitute disguised as Marie Antoinette. The alleged
modern method is as follows :
Shortly after the outbreak of the war in August 1914 a small group of wealthy men authorized
an agent to turn an old, but very spacious mansion, into a fabulous private club. Those who
made it possible to finance such a costly undertaking insisted that their identity remain secret.
They explained that they simply wished to show their deep appreciation to officers in the Armed
Forces who were risking their lives for King and Country.
The club provided every kind of luxury, entertainment, and facilities for pleasure. The use of
the club was usually restricted to commissioned officers on leave in London from active
service. A new member had to be introduced by a brother officer. My companion referred to it
as the “Glass Club”. [1]
Upon arrival, officer guests were interviewed by an official. If he was satisfied with their
credentials they were told how the club functioned. The officer applying for admission was
asked to give his word of honour that he would not mention the names of any persons he met
during his stay at the club, or reveal their identity after he left the club. Having given this
solemn promise, it was explained to the guest that he would meet a number of women well
known in the best of London’s society. They all wore masks. The officer was asked not to try
to identify any of the ladies. He was sworn to keep their secret should he happen to identify any
of them accidentally.
With the preliminaries over, the officer was shown to his private room. It was furnished in a
most luxuriant manner. The furnishings included a huge double bed, dressing table, wardrobe,
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_09.html (1 of 16)5.4.2006 12:16:02William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 9
cabinet with wines and liqueurs, a smoking humidor, and private toilet and bath. The new guest
was invited to make himself at home. He was informed that he would receive a lady visitor.
She would wear a brooch of costume jewelry with the number of his room. If, after getting
acquainted, he wished to take her down to dinner that was his privilege.
The reception room, where guests and their hostesses mingled over cocktails before dinner, was
like that of a King’s palace. The dining room was large enough to accommodate fifty couples.
The ballroom was such that many people dream about but few seldom see. Costly decorations
were set off by luxurious drapes, subdued lighting, beautiful women gorgeously dressed, soft
dreamy music, the smell of rare perfumes, made the place an Arab’s dream of heaven. The
whole atmosphere of the club was such that the officers home on leave relaxed at first and then
set out to have a real Roman Holiday. There was nothing gross or vulgar about the “Glass
Club”. Everything about the place was beautiful, delicate, soft, and pliant ... the exact opposite
of the horrors, the violence, the brutality, of a modern war. Between dance numbers
entertainers gave performances which brought out the feelings of joy, fun and laughter. As the
evening progressed, a long buffet was literally loaded with luscious dishes of fish and game. A
bar provided every kind of drink from champagne to straight whisky. Between midnight and
one a.m. five beautiful girls performed the Dance of the Seven Veils. The dance depicted a
scene in a Sultan’s Harem. The girls started the dance fully clothed, (even to the veil they wore
to conceal the facial features) but, when the dance ended the girls were entirely naked. They
danced the final act in their lithe-nakedness, waving the flimsy veil around and about them in a
manner which extenuated, rather than concealed, their physical charms. Couples, when tired of
entertainment, dancing, and other people’s company, retired to their private rooms.
Next day they could enjoy indoor swimming, tennis, badminton, billiards, or, there was the card
room which was a miniature Monte Carlo. About November 1916 a very high personage was
lured into visiting the Club when he received a note saying that he would obtain information of
the greatest importance to the British Government. He drove to the Club in his private car. He
instructed his chauffeur to wait for him. After being admitted, he was taken to one of the
luxuriously furnished bed-sitting rooms. A lady joined him. When she saw him she nearly
fainted. It was his own wife. She was much younger than her husband. She had been acting as
hostess to lonely officers on leave for a considerable time. It was a most embarrassing situation.
The wife knew nothing of the plot. She had no secret information to give. She was convinced
that both she and her husband were philandering. She thought it was only this unfortunate
chance meeting which had brought them face to face. There was a scene. The husband was
informed regarding the part hostesses played at the Club. But his lips were sealed as if in
death. He was a member of the Government. He couldn’t afford to figure in a scandal.
Every employee in the club, both male and female, was a spy. They reported everything that
happened at the club to their masters. The identity of those involved became known. The
information thus obtained was printed for the record in what became known as “The Black
Book”. “The Black Book” recorded their sins of omission and commission, their peculiar vices,
their special weaknesses, their financial status, the condition of their domestic relations, and the
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_09.html (2 of 16)5.4.2006 12:16:02William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 9
degree of affection they had for relatives and friends. Their connection with, and their influence
over, influential men in politics, industry, and religion was carefully noted.
In November 1916, a member of Parliament tried to expose the real character of the “Glass
Club”. Three army officers, who had patronized the club, became suspicious that it was a vast
espionage system, after an attempt had been made to blackmail them into giving information
that would have been valuable to the enemy. Their adventure involved an Australian lady, her
chauffeur, and the wives, and daughters of several highly placed government officials. [2]
The effort to make known the true facts was suppressed, but mention of “The Black Book” was
made in Parliament, and in the public press. The government’s policy was said to be based on
the contention that a scandal of such magnitude could prove a national calamity at a time when
the armed forces at sea, on land, and in the air, were meeting severe reverses.
The Liberal press began to attack the Prime Minister. He was accused of harbouring men
within his government who were unfit to hold office. He was accused of having had extensive
dealings with German industrialists and financiers prior to the war. He was accused of being
friendly towards the Kaiser. He was accused of being unable to make prompt and firm
decisions. He was ridiculed as “Wait-and-see-Asquith”. My companion told me that evidence
against high officials involved in the “Glass Club” scandal caused the Government to resign.
Thus, according to my companion, the British Empire was forced to change political Horses in
the middle of a World War. When Mr. Asquith did resign in December 1916 he was superseded
by a coalition government headed by David Lloyd George. Winston Churchill and Mr. Balfour
were two of the more prominent members.
*// In the middle of a world war that the British Empire fomented (for control of the world’s economy). A war that
England declared on Germany thanks to the good offices of members of the Round Table (Roberts, Curzon, Balfour,
Lothian) and the Times — who considered Empire UK God’s gift to planet Earth and couldn’t suffer Germany, too, to
have a navy and colonies, and national industry and a railway to Baghdad —, while Jewish money men of the City
spoke up against entering into the war ? Darny goshy, how sad, somebody beat them in their own game !
Shortly after hearing the above story, I was struck by the fact that the three army officers
mentioned were reported in the official lists as “Killed in action”. In war-time such a thing is
quite possible. Next came a brief notice that the Australian lady, and her chauffeur, had been
imprisoned under the Defence of the Realm Act. Then came an announcement that the member
of parliament involved in the case had retired from public life. A few weeks later I was taken
off duty as King’s Messenger and appointed as Navigating Officer of British Submarines. We
did lose 33 per cent of our officers and men but I was one of those to survive.
It was not until long after the war, when I was studying modern history and comparative
religions, that I began to realize the vast importance of political Zionism to those who planned
to obtain undisputed control of the world’s economy. The following historical events speak for
themselves.
When war broke out in 1914 the Rt. Hon. H.H. Asquith was Prime Minister. He was an Anti-
Zionist. The International Bankers decided that Asquith’s Government had to go and be
replaced by a coalition government in which David Lloyd George and Winston Churchill would
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_09.html (3 of 16)5.4.2006 12:16:02William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 9
wield great influence. Lloyd George had for years been Solicitor for the Zionist movement as
planned and financed by the Rothschilds. Winston Churchill had been a supporter of political
Zionism from the time he first entered politics.
In 1917 the International Bankers were supporting both the Bolshevik and Zionist movements.
It would seem incredible that the British Cabinet didn’t know what was going on, particularly
when the British Government had had to intervene to get Trotsky and his revolutionary leaders
released after they had been detained in Halifax while on their way from New York to Russia.
The overthrow of the Russian Empire was bound to cause the withdrawal of the mighty Russian
Armies from the war on the side of the Allied Powers. The German Armies, which had been
engaged on the Eastern Front, would be free to re-inforce the Armies fighting against the allied
forces on the Western Front.
Despite this knowledge, nothing was done to prevent the plans of the International Financiers
reaching maturity.
The British Government was aware of the serious conditions brewing in regard to Russia. This
is proved by the fact that the matter was discussed by the cabinet and a decision was reached to
send Lord Kitchener to Russia for the purpose of re-organizing the Russian military forces.
Lord Kitchener sailed from Scapa Flow aboard the H.M.S. Hampshire. She was mysteriously
sunk during the night of June 5th, 1916. Lord Kitchener was lost with all but a dozen of the
crew. The survivors drifted ashore on a life-raft. The British Government announced H.M.S.
Hampshire was sunk by a German U-boat or a German mine. This has been proved to be a lie.
I investigated this incident very thoroughly. In a previous book Hell’s Angels of the Deep
published in 1932, I PROVED H.M.S. Hampshire had not been sunk by an enemy torpedo or
mine. H.M.S. Hampshire was sunk by either sabotage or due to an error of judgment on the part
of her navigating officer. Judging all evidence available, I was convinced that H.M.S.
Hampshire sank after striking the submerged North Shoals Rocks. It is hard to believe that a
skilled and experienced naval navigator committed such an error of judgment. I still believe
that a saboteur probably tampered with the magnets in the steering compass. Gyro compasses
were not then standard equipment and even ships that had them found the Sperry models very
unreliable as I know from personal experience.
General Erich Von Ludendorf (who was Chief of Staff and shared with General Hindenburg the
leadership of Germany’s military might), also studied the circumstances surrounding the loss of
H.M.S. Hampshire and Lord Kitchener’s death. He states positively “Action by German naval
units, either U-boats or mine-layers, had nothing to do with the sinking of the ship.” He said he
had arrived at the conclusion that the death of Lord Kitchener was An act of God, because had
he lived he would undoubtedly have re-organized the Russian Armies and trained them into the
most formidable fighting force. The General then remarked “Had he done this the Bolsheviks
would have come into possession of one of the most formidable fighting machines the world has
ever known. Such a force would have enabled Communism to sweep over the whole world.”
I maintain that the International Bankers could not afford to have the Russian Armies re-
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_09.html (4 of 16)5.4.2006 12:16:02William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 9
organized until AFTER the Menshevik uprising, and after Kerensky’s provisional government
had been overthrown in 1917. It is very doubtful if Lenin and Trotsky could have accomplished
what they did if Lord Kitchener had been able to re-organize, discipline, and train, the Russian
armed forces in 1916. History also records that Winston Churchill and Lord Kitchener had
quarrelled seriously over military policy during 1914–1916. Lord Kitchener had bitterly
opposed Churchill’s idea of sending the Naval Division to Antwerp in 1914. He had also
opposed Churchill’s plan to capture the Dardanelles. Both ventures proved to be costly
mistakes. The Dardanelles venture could have succeeded, and would probably have ended the
war in 1916, if Churchill had waited until both army and naval forces were ready to co-operate
jointly.
When Churchill insisted that the naval forces attack the Dardanelles alone he notified the enemy
of intended strategy. After Churchill had committed the initial blunder the army was ordered to
participate. Lord Kitchener’s objections were overruled. His advice was ignored. The allied
military forces committed to the assault on the Dardanelles were insufficient in numbers,
improperly trained, poorly equipped for such a task, and badly supported both in regard to
provisions, medical aid, and reinforcements. They were forced to attack first class troops whose
leaders had been alerted to their danger. The allied military and naval forces were required to
overcome military and naval obstacles that had not been in existence when Churchill ordered
the first naval assault. The Dardanelles campaign was doomed to failure from the start.
The more we study the methods employed by the Secret Powers behind international affairs, the
more obvious it is to see that they make private assassinations look like accidents or suicides;
sabotage look like carelessness, errors of judgment, and unintentional blunders committed due
to excusable circumstances.
The only possible consideration that could justify the policy of the coalition government in
1916, in regard to Russia, was the fact that the government knew they could not obtain financial
backing, or military aid from America until AFTER the Russian government had been
overthrown. Such a statement seems preposterous, but it is supported by the following facts :
The Mensheviks started the Russian Revolution February 1917.
The Tzar abdicated March 15th, 1917.
Jacob H. Schiff, senior partner of Kuhn-Loeb & Co. of New York, immediately removed the
restrictions he had imposed extending financial aid to the Allies. Mortimer Schiff was then
ordered by his father Jacob to cable Sir Ernest Cassels — “Because of recent action in Germany
and developments in Russia we shall no longer abstain from Allied government financing.”
On April 5th the British government announced that it was sending Rt. Hon. Arthur James
Balfour, the Foreign Secretary, to the United States, to notify the American bankers that the
British government was prepared to officially endorse their plans for political Zionism provided
they would bring America into the war on the side of the Allies. America came into the war.
On June 7th, 1917, the first American troops landed in France.
On July 18th, 1917 Lord Rothschild wrote Mr. Balfour as follows :
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_09.html (5 of 16)5.4.2006 12:16:02William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 9
“Dear Mr. Balfour :
At last I am able to send you the formula you asked for. If His Majesty’s government will send
me a message in line with this formula, and they and you approve it, I will hand it to the Zionist
Federation at a meeting to be called for that purpose.”
The draft declaration was as follows :
(1) “His Majesty’s government accepts the principle that PALESTINE should be reconstituted
as a national home for the Jewish people. [3]
His Majesty’s government will use its best endeavours to secure the achievement of this object,
and will discuss the necessary methods and means with the Zionist organization.” [4]
Mr. Balfour, and the British government, agreed to the terms dictated by Lord Rothschild and
his Zionist confreres. This is proved by the fact that on August 28th. Sir Herbert Samuel, (he
was subsequently made a Viscount), Sir Alfred Mond, (he was subsequently made a Lord), and
Lord Rothschild persuaded the British cabinet to send Lord Reading to the U.S.A. as head of the
Economic Mission. Lord Reading, when Sir Rufus Isaacs, had been mixed up in the Marconi
scandal.
The details of the deal he negotiated with the U.S.A. government in September 1917 have never
been made known. It is known, however, that the deal had to do with the Bank of England
because it was completely re-organized, under American supervision, and physically rebuilt
after 1919. [5]
In September, Jacob Schiff of Kuhn-Loeb & Co. wrote a long letter dealing with the Zionist
question to a Mr. Friedman. In it the following passages occur : “I do believe that it might be
feasible to secure the good-will of America, Great Britain and France, [6] in any event, towards
the promotion of a large influx, and settlement of our people in Palestine ... further it might be
possible to obtain from the Powers the formal assurance to our people that they shall obtain
autonomy in Palestine as soon as their numbers become large enough to justify this.”
September 26th, 1917 — Louis Marshall, legal representative of Kuhn-Loeb & Co. wrote his
friend Max Senior, another leading Zionist, as follows : “Major Lionel de Rothschild, of the
League for British Jews, informs me that his organization is in agreement with the American
Jewish Committee ... The Balfour Declaration, with its acceptance by the Powers, is an act of
the highest diplomacy. Zionism is but an incident of a far-reaching plan : It is merely a
convenient peg on which to hang a powerful weapon. All protests they (the opponents) may
make would be futile. It would subject them individually to hateful and concrete examples of a
most impressive nature. I would shrink from the possibilities which might result.”
Here we have a blunt admission from Louis Marshall, that “Zionism is but an incident of a far
reaching plan ... it is merely a convenient peg on which to hang a powerful weapon.” The far
reaching plan referred to cannot be anything else than the Long Range Plan to which continual
reference has already been made. It is a plan by which the International Financiers intend to
win ultimate undisputed control of the wealth, natural resources, and man-power of the entire
world.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_09.html (6 of 16)5.4.2006 12:16:02William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 9
A few of the more important historical events which bear out the above statement are as
follows :
On January 28th, 1915, Mr. Asquith, Prime Minister of England wrote in his diary : “I just
received from Herbert Samuel a memorandum headed The Future of Palestine ... He thinks we
might plant in this territory about three or four million European Jews. It read almost like a new
edition of Tancred brought up to date. I confess I am not attracted by this proposed addition to
our responsibilities”, etc. Thus Asquith proved himself Anti-Zionist.
Prominent Zionists owned most, if not all, of Britain’s major war industries. For no good
reason, in 1915-1916, Britain suddenly found herself short of chemicals needed in the
manufacturing of explosives. Guns and munitions which had been promised our Russian allies
failed to materialize. Shells for our guns were so scarce they had to be rationed. The Asquith
government was accused of bungling the war effort. But let us examine the facts.
*// Yes, sir, examine the facts. Why was England in that war when Germany did not want war with the United
Kingdom, and had it known that the British Empire will join the war on the side of France, Germany would not have
mobilized ? Why had England not declared its intention before August 1914 ? Why did (foreign minister) Ed Grey and
(ambassador to Russia) Paléologue do everything they could NOT to avoid armed conflict ?
Sir Frederick Nathan was in charge of chemical production. Messrs. Brunner & Mond were
credited with doing all they could to correct the critical situation which had arisen. Using
GOVERNMENT FUNDS they constructed a large chemical factory at Silveltown. Sir Alfred Mond
was appointed His Majesty’s Commissioner of Works. He afterwards became head of the
Jewish agency in Palestine.
Work on the factory was rushed ahead. The factory was brought into production in record
time. Bouquets were passed around and honours bestowed upon the wealthy Zionist financiers
who were supposedly doing so much for the British war effort. BUT AS SOON AS THE
SILVERTOWN FACTORY CAME INTO PRODUCTION IT BLEW UP WITH THE LOSS OF FORTY LIVES .
Over eight hundred buildings and homes were demolished. [7]
Because of the failure of Britain to deliver arms and munitions to Russia as promised, severe
military reverses were experienced on the Eastern Front. Newspapers reported Russian troops
were fighting with sticks and bare fists until slaughtered by well-armed German troops. A letter
written by Professor Bernard Pares, (Professor Pares was knighted afterwards) to Lloyd George
would indicate that the guns and munitions promised the Imperial Russian government were
deliberately withheld to create conditions favourable for the revolution then being planned in
Geneva and New York by the international bankers. Professor Pares’ letter, written in 1915,
reads in part :
*// The same questions for Russia : why did it launch that suicide attack on Germany when everyone knew that Russia
won’t be ready for war at least until 1917 ? Was Russia in that war because of the freemasons; because of German
threat; or, because of the idea of the slav historic mission and England’s dangling in front of it the carrot of controling
the Bosporus (which, until then, England opposed) ?
“I have to submit my strong opinion that the unfortunate failure of Messrs. Vickers-Maxim &
Co. to supply Russia with munitions which were to have reached the country five months ago, is
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_09.html (7 of 16)5.4.2006 12:16:02William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 9
gravely jeopardizing the relations of the two countries, and in particular their co-operation in the
work of the present war ... I AM DEFINITELY TOLD THAT SO FAR NO SUPPLIES WHATEVER HAVE
REACHED RUSSIA FROM ENGLAND .” David Lloyd George, at the time the letter was written was
chancellor of the Exchequer and responsible for financing the war. Messrs. Vickers-Maxim &
Co. were controlled by Sir Ernest Cassels business associate of Kuhn-Loeb & Co. of New York,
who in turn, were affiliated with the Rothschilds, and the international bankers of England,
France, Germany, etc.
When Professor Pare’s letter was discussed by the cabinet, Lloyd George is alleged to have
defended the government’s policy by saying “Charity should start at home. Our British soldiers
fighting in France have only got four machine-guns to a battalion. They should be better armed
before we export arms to Russia.”
Lord Kitchener is reported to have replied. “I consider more than four machine-guns per
battalion a luxury when our failure to deliver the arms we promised to Russia has resulted in the
Russians having only ONE rifle available for every six men.”
The agents of the international conspirators were ordered to smear Lord Kitchener and they
circulated the story all over the world that Lord Kitchener had stated he considered more than
four machine-guns to a battalion of British soldiers, fighting in France, a luxury. This smear
and untruth has continued to this very day. It appeared in the biography of David Lloyd George
recently published. It appeared in a review of the biography which appeared recently in the
Toronto Star Weekly. I sent the editor of the Star Weekly the truth regarding this important
historical event. He replied it was too much dynamite for him to handle. He informed me he
had handed my correspondence to the Daily Star. Needless to say the TRUTH was never
published.
This is a typical illustration of how the international conspirators smear the reputations of
honest men, even dead men, in order to cover up their own wrong-doing. It illustrates perfectly
how their agents use the press of the world to mis-inform the public so they will blame innocent
men, and even their own governments, for the harm done as the result of their machinations.
To prove that Vickers-Maxim & Co. were under the influence of Kuhn-Loeb & Co. at this time,
Boris Brazel [Brasol] says : “On February 4th, 1916 the Russian Revolutionary Party of
America held a meeting in New York which was attended by 62 delegates ... It was revealed
that secret reports had just reached the Party from Russia designating the moment as
favourable ... the assembly was assured that ample funds would be furnished by persons in
sympathy with the liberating of the people of Russia. In this connection the name of Jacob
Schiff was repeatedly mentioned.” [8]
Jacob Schiff was at that time senior member of Kuhn-Loeb & Co. of New York.
Approximately 50 of the 62 people attending the meeting on Feb. 4th, 1916 were men who had
taken an active part in the Russian Revolution in 1905. Once again they were to be used to
foment revolutionary action, but Jacob Schiff had planned that the fruits of victory were to be
usurped by Lenin, in the interests of the international bankers.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_09.html (8 of 16)5.4.2006 12:16:02William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 9
The Encyclopedia of Jewish Knowledge says of Zionism : “The World War forced the
abandonment of Berlin as the centre of the organization and all authority was transferred to the
Provisional Zionist Emergency Committee established in New York under the leadership of
Justice L.D. Brandeis.”
Jacob de Haas writing in his book “Louis Dembitz Brandeis” says : “The (Zionist) Transfer
Department ... its ramifications extended through all the war-zones occupied by the Allies, and
throughout Turkey, Syria, Palestine, to Trans-Jordan and Bagdad; practically not a cent of the
millions handled was lost ... Starting by using the good offices of the U.S.A. Dept. of State
(Foreign Office) as a means of communication and deposit, it became so successful, and so
reliable, it was employed by the Treasury of the U.S.A. to deliver moneys, and messages, which
the government could not handle successfully ... Embassies in European capitals advanced cash
on the requisition of the (Zionist) Executive Secretary in New York.”
L. Fry has this to say in “Waters Flowing Eastward”, p. 51 : “From then on their influence was
felt more and more in POLITICAL circles in Europe and America. In particular, the Zionist
Transfer Department as it was called, was in a position to transmit funds, and informtion, to
subversive elements in enemy countries.”
Next we find the Grand Orient Lodges back into the Picture of the W.R.M. again. M. Erzberger
says on pp. 145-146 of “My Experience in the World War”: “On March 16th, 1916, the
Alliance Israelite paid the Grand Orient of Paris the sum of 700,000 francs, and in the archives
of the Grand Orient of Rome it can be proved that on March 18, 1916 the transfer of one million
lire to the Grand Orient of Rome took place. I am not so naive as to imagine that the ‘Alliance
Israelite’ makes use of two Grand Orients solely for the purpose of sending one million lire to
Italian Jews.”
Telling of events AFTER Asquith had been deposed in 1916 — A.N. Field says in “All These
Things”, p. 104 : “Jewish influence in British Politics became pronounced after the rise of Mr.
Lloyd George”. L. Fry on page 55 of “Water Flowing Eastward” says : “The first official
London meeting of ... the Political Committee took place on Feb. 7th, 1917, in a house of Dr.
Moses Gaster. There were present Lord Rothschild, James de Rothschild, (son of Edmund de
Rothschild of Paris, former owner of the Rothschild colonies in Palestine) Sir Mark Sykes; –
(whose house in Buckingham Gates was fully equipped as headquarters for the Zionist Cause
with telegraphic apparatus, etc.), Sir Herbert Samuel, Herbert Bentwich, (later Attorney-General
for Palestine) Harry Sacher, Joseph Cowen, Chaim Weizmann, and Nahum Sokolov. [9] The
Zionist programme to serve as a basis for official negotiations covering the future mandates of
Palestine, Armenia, Mesopotamia, and the kingdom of the Hedjaz, was discussed in detail.”
J.M.N. Jeffries op. cit. p. 139 contributes this further information “The minutes of this meeting
were communicated forthwith in cipher to the Zionist organization of the United States ... From
now on the political Zionist organization in the United States began to take a hand in the
shaping of British policy, and the ordering of British affairs.”
To illustrate the power the international bankers exercise over the British government’s affairs
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_09.html (9 of 16)5.4.2006 12:16:02William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 9
Samuel Landman is quoted. [10] He says “After an agreement had been arrived at between Sir
Mark Sykes, Weizmann, and Sokolov, it was resolved to send a secret message to Justice
Brandeis that the British cabinet would help the Jews to gain Palestine in return for active
Jewish sympathy, and for support in the U.S.A. for the Allied Cause so as to bring about a
radical Pro-ally tendency in the United States. This message was sent in cipher through the
British Foreign Office. Secret messages were also sent to the Zionist leaders in Russia through
General MacDonogh ... Dr. Weizmann (one of the founders of political Zionism) was able to
secure from the government the service of half a dozen younger Zionists for active work on
behalf of Zionism. At that time conscription was in force, and only those engaged in work of
national importance could be released from active service at the front. I remember Dr.
Weizmann writing a letter to General MacDonogh (director of Military Operations) and
invoking his assistance in obtaining the exemption from active service of Leon Simon, Harry
Sacher, Simon Marks, Hyamson, Tolkowsky and myself. At Dr. Weizmann’s request I was
transferred from the War Office (M.I.9) ... to the Ministry of Propaganda ... and later to the
Zionist office ... about December 1916. From that time onwards, for several years, Zionism was
considered an ally of the British government ... Passport and travel difficulties did not exist
when a man was recommended by our office. For instance, a certificate signed by me was
accepted by the Home Office that an Ottoman Jew was to be treated as a friendly alien and not
as an enemy, which was the case of Turkish subjects.”
Study of the life of Disraeli reveals that he spent many Sunday evenings with the Rothschilds of
London. It is revealed that while Kuhn-Loeb & Co. of New York were financing the Jewish
revolutionaries in Russia, the London Rothschilds were the managers of the Tzarist
administration in London. We also learn that the London Rothschilds were Liberals and that
from 1840 to 1917 the Liberal Press controlled by the Rothschilds was consistently Anti-
Russian. Disraeli informs us that in Germany the head men in politics and finance, were
considered reactionaries because they didn’t allow the international bankers to do exactly as
they wanted to do. Baron von Bleichroeder of Berlin and the Warburgs of Hamburg were the
Rothschild representatives in Germany. In Russia the Weinsteins of Odessa assisted the
Ginzbergs in St. Petersburg to look after the Rothschild interests.
Another man who was very active on the part of the international bankers was Otto Kahn. He
cleverly hid his true colours, as a world revolutionary, behind the national flags of the several
countries in which he lived and pretended to be a Patriotic citizen. Mr. Otto Kahn was born in
Germany. He migrated to the United States the same as Paul Warburg did. Like Warburg he
also became a partner in Kuhn-Loeb & Co. Kahn, upon arriving in America, obtained
employment as a clerk with Speyer & Co. so as not to make matters too obvious. He later on
married the grand-daughter of Mr. Wolf, one of the founders of Kuhn-Loeb & Co. When Mrs.
Kahn visited Moscow in 1931 she was officially received by the Soviet government which gave
a grand dinner and several brilliant receptions in her honour. The Red armies of Stalin lined the
roads as she passed along, and the soldiers presented arms as she passed by. [11]
On April 2nd, 1934 an article appeared in the Daily Herald in which Mr. Hannen Swaffer
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_09.html (10 of 16)5.4.2006 12:16:02William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 9
wrote : “I knew Otto Kahn, the multimillionaire, for many years. I knew him when he was a
patriotic German. I knew him when he was a patriotic American. Naturally when he wanted to
enter the (British) House of Commons, he joined the Patriotic Party.” Mr. Otto Kahn would
have become President of the English-speaking Union if his revolutionary activities had not
been accidentally exposed when it was proved that his house was the meeting place for Soviet
agents such as Nina Smorodin, Claire Sheridan, Louise Bryant, and Margaret Harrison.
In the summer of 1917 the problem of who was to finance Lenin and Trotsky during their joint
revolutionary effort in Russia had to be solved. The international bankers decided that their
representatives would meet in Stockholm, Sweden, because that country was neutral, and
comparatively free from international spies. Among those attending the meeting were men
representing the banking interests in Britain, Germany, France, Russia, and the United States of
America. Mr. Protopopoff, the Russian Minister of the interior was there, and so was Mr.
Warburg of Hamburg. He was the brother of Paul Warburg who was a partner in the Kuhn-
Loeb & Company of New York, who had drafted the legislation for the Federal Reserve System
in 1910. It will be seen that in order to decide how finances should be arranged for Lenin and
Trotsky to overthrow the Russian government, delegates attended from ALL warring nations. It
was finally decided that Kuhn-Loeb of New York should place $50,000,000 to the credit of
Lenin and Trotsky in the bank of Sweden.
Both British and American Intelligence officers reported these facts to their respective
governments in 1917. Commander E.N. Cromie died fighting off a revolutionary mob which
attacked the British Consulate in St. Petersburg. He held them off in order to give his confreres
time to burn documents relating to this and other matters. [12]
The American government forwarded to the British government reports they had received from
their intelligence officers. Mr. Oudendyke, the Netherlands Minister in Petrograd (who looked
after the British interests in Russia after Commander Cromie was murdered also warned the
British government. His warning was published in April 1919 as part of a White Paper on the
Bolshevik Revolution published by the King’s Printer.
The plans Jacob Schiff had made to allow Trotsky, and his band of revolutionary leaders, to
return to St. Petersburg from New York went away when Trotsky was detained by Canadian
government officials in Halifax, Nova Scotia, while en route. The power the international
bankers exercise over constitutional governments is fully illustrated by the fact that immediately
they protested to the governments concerned, Trotsky and his whole gang of revolutionary
gangsters, were released and given safe conduct through the British Blockade Zone.
Further proof of the British politicians’ complicity in the Russian Revolution of 1917 was
obtained by D. Petrovsky who explains the part played by Sir G. Buchanan, the Ambassador.
[13] Petrovsky proves that, although fully informed of all that was going on behind the scenes,
Lloyd George’s government aided the international bankers to put Trotsky and his revolutionary
leaders into Russia while at the same time the German High Command aided the international
bankers to get Lenin and his gang of revolutionary leaders from Switzerland to Petrograd.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_09.html (11 of 16)5.4.2006 12:16:02William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 9
Lenin and his followers were provided with a private railway coach for their journey across
Germany.
Mr. Petrovsky reveals that Milioukoff, who had been appointed Minister for Foreign Affairs by
the Russian Republican government in the Spring of 1917, was the man who negotiated this
intrigue which involved both warring nations. It is also recorded that in appreciation for the
cooperation given by the German General Staff the government of Great Britain agreed to
Milioukoff’s request that M.M. Litvinov be released. He had been arrested by British
Intelligence officers as a spy for Germany. The identification of M.M. Litvinov proves of great
interest. He was born to parents whose name was Finklestein. When he joined the World
Revolutionary Movement he changed his name to Meyer Wallach. When he was closely
associated with Lenin and his Bolshevik Party he changed his name once again to Maxim
Litvinov. He is the same man referred to as Litvinov the German Spy and he is the same man
who had been arrested while trying to cash the five hundred ruble notes Stalin had obtained
when he bombed, and robbed, the Tifilis bank.
Following his release by the British authorities Litvinov returned to Russia. He aided Lenin to
overthrow the Kerensky Provisional Government, and the Menshevik Soviet established in St.
Petersburg prior to October 1917. Litvinov was Stalin’s Commissar for Foreign Affairs from
1930 to 1939. He was appointed a member of the Central Committee of the Communist Party
in 1935. His ability as an assassin; receiver of stolen money, spy, international gangster, and
leader of revolutionary efforts in several countries was acclaimed by the nations of the world
when he was appointed President of the Council of the United Nations. Only an international
group, such as the international bankers, could have saved this man’s life, and assured him his
liberty when he was carrying out the criminal aspects of international intrigue. Only the power
and influence of the international bankers could have caused him to be elected president of the
United Nations Council. This illustrates the fact that the Illuminati control those who control
the United Nations.
Other evidence is available to prove that the international bankers of the United Kingdom, the
United States, Germany and Russia worked together even after Germany and Britain were at
war. It is contained in a pamphlet entitled Trostky (Defender Publishers, Wichita, Kansas)
which quotes a letter written by J.M. Dell to Lloyd George, personally. But why go on. It
would take volumes to quote all the evidence to prove that the international bankers organized,
financed, and directed the Russian Revolution in order to obtain control of a vast territory so
that the Illuminati could try out their ideas for totalitarianism. Only by experimenting in an area
as vast as the so-called U.S.S.Rs could they find out mistakes and weaknesses by the process of
trial and error. Until they had performed this experiment, which cost millions and millions of
human lives, it would have been gross stupidity on their part to try to rule the whole world.
Theirs has been a Long Range Plan. It started 3,000 years ago. It was revised at the meeting in
Bauer’s Goldsmith Shop in Frankfort in 1773. Unless united action is taken, it is likely to end
when they take over economical and political control after World War Three.
It will thus be seen that the Coalition Government which took over the prosecution of the war
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_09.html (12 of 16)5.4.2006 12:16:02William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 9
from Prime Minister Asquith, in December 1916, made no effort to stop the international
bankers from proceeding with their plans for the Russian Revolution, even when they knew its
success would cause the Russian armies to be withdrawn from the war. Proof that the Zionists
in both Britain and the U.S.A. agreed that the Russian Imperial government should be
overthrown, is to be found in the fact that immediately Lenin announced he had established his
dictatorship in November 1917, Lloyd George also announced that the policy of the British
government would be to back the Rothschild plan for the establishment of a national home for
the Jewish people in Palestine. This proves Lloyd George held no resentment towards the
international bankers for taking Russia out of the war as an ally of Britain.
The Jewish-dominated Menshevik revolutionaries in Russia had fought the abortive revolution
in 1905. They also started the revolution in February 1917. Once again they met with great
success during the first stages of the revolutionary effort. They actually established a Soviet in
Petrograd. The international bankers didn’t mind who carried the ball until it was near the goal,
but as soon as the ball carrier got into position to score they stepped in and took over the play.
Their goal was to bring about a totalitarian Dictatorship operated on the JOINT STOCK COMPANY
PRINCIPLE : Lenin was made Dictator. They remained behind the scene. The Communist
“Mob” was blamed for their crimes against humanity.
On July 17, 1917 the Bolsheviks under Lenin started an anti-government agitation in Russia.
This resulted in an uprising by thousands of the city’s inflamed worker-soldier population. This
abortive revolt is known as “The July Days”. Kerensky dealt with the situation firmly. The
mobs were fired upon, several hundred people were killed, but order was restored. The
Bolshevik leaders fled. Some were arrested. Lenin and Zinoviev hid in Sestroretsk. Trotsky,
Kamenev, and Lunarcharsky were amongst those arrested. Stalin, who was at that time editor of
Pravda, was not molested. After the revolt Prince Lvov resigned and Kerensky the Jewish
Napoleon became Prime Minister. Kerensky was a great orator. He tried to whip up
enthusiasm for the war effort amongst the soldiers and workers. All Kerensky’s oral efforts
failed.
Kerensky’s influence began to decline steadily. Lenin was busy. He called for the Sixth
Congress of the Russian Social-Democratic Labour Party to be held August 8th to 16th. He
came out of it leader of the unified revolutionary groups. Within a year the united revolutionary
party called itself THE COMMUNIST PARTY . At the congress a secret committee was formed
called the October Central Committee. It consisted of 26 members who were to plan the
October Revolution and then direct the revolutionary effort in all its various phases. Stalin
made the grade at last. He was elected to the presidium of the Sixth Party Congress. The
majority of students believe Stalin wouldn’t even have been given notice if many of the other
experienced revolutionary leaders hadn’t been in jail, but the truth is, Lenin was acting as Chief
Agent for the “Secret Powers”. They had plans to use Stalin to supersede others.
The idea of the Central Committee to organize the October Revolution was to anticipate the
Provisional Government’s intention to call a general election in which the secret ballot would be
used to elect a representative constitutional government to rule the Russian Empire. Lenin felt
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_09.html (13 of 16)5.4.2006 12:16:02William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 9
that if his bid for power was to succeed he had to make it before the Constitutional Assembly
met in January to arrange the nation-wide election. If this election was ever held the people
would have their own representatives in the government. He felt it would be harder to get the
support necessary to overthrow a peoples’ government than it would to overthrow the
Provisional Government. In this he proved right.
Strange as it may seem, in the light of future events, Kamenev was released from prison August
17th, and Trotsky exactly a month later. By September 24th, Trotsky was elected president of
the Petersburg Soviet in place of Cheidze. On September 26th the Petersburg Soviet voted to
transfer all military power to a Military Revolutionary Committee under the leadership of
Trotsky. The real Lenin revolution was by now only a few days away. Lenin was proving what
proper planning and time-table precision, backed by unlimited financial aid, could accomplish.
He knew how to use the element of surprise advantageously. He rapidly convinced many
leaders of other revolutionary groups that he was the man to direct the revolutionary war. He
soon had everyone under discipline. The leaders were required to obey orders efficiently, and
without question — or else.
The revolutionary leaders circulated an order that the second AllRussian Congress of the
Soviets would meet November 7th. This was a “red” herring, drawn across the trail to make the
general public believe that no revolutionary action was pending in the immediate future. On
November 4th, however, the Military Revolutionary Committee arranged huge mass meetings
preparatory for the actual revolt. The next day, November 5th, the garrison of Peter and Paul
declared itself in alliance with the Bolsheviks. On November 6th Kerensky made a desperate
effort to forestall the revolution by ordering the arrest of the Military Revolutionary
Committee. He banned all Bolshevik publications. He ordered fresh troops to replace the
garrison of Peter and Paul. But Lenin had organized his Fifth Column too well, Kerensky’s
orders were never carried out. Officials he trusted let him down.
Lenin sneaked out of hiding. He joined the Military Revolutionary Committee in Smolny
Institute as soon as he knew Kerensky’s counterrevolutionary measures had failed. The Institute
served as the revolutionary headquarters. At 2.00 A.M. November 7th, the order to begin the
organized revolutionary effort was given. By noon, St. Petersburg was largely in Lenin’s
hands. At 3.00 P.M. he delivered a fiery speech to the Petersburg Soviet. By 9.00 P.M.
Bolshevik troops were besieging the Winter Palace headquarters of the Provisional
Government. At 11.00 P.M. the Second All-Russian Congress of Soviets met and the Bolsheviks
had a clear majority. The Congress thus became the official government of Russia. Kamenev
was elected the first president. Lenin became Premier. Trotsky became Commissar of Foreign
Affairs. On November 21st a Jew by the name of Sverdlov succeeded Kamenev. He had been
in the Bolshevik Party only six months and was considered a very minor figure but, after being
elected president, he quickly assumed absolute control of the Russian economy. He was a
specially trained financial expert and agent of the Bankers.
*// After they established control, Lenin and the communists outlawed gold as money, closed down private banks and
issued interes-free, government-backed paper currency.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_09.html (14 of 16)5.4.2006 12:16:02William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 9
Many things happen in revolutionary circles which never come to light. Sverdlov died, a very
young man, only two years after he reorganized the Russian internal economy. He had served
his purpose. He knew too much, so he died. Thus history repeats itself.
Bloody battles, which might better be described as wholesale massacres, and the ruthlessly
conducted “Reign of Terror” proved the theory that utter ruthlessness and organized terror, in
which physical sufferings are combined with mental anguish, and moral degradation, have
definite economic value, because the Bolsheviks obtained undisputed control of Petersburg
within a few days. Lenin didn’t allow success to go to his head. The Russian Empire was
large. He craftily allowed the elections, for which the Provisional Government had set up the
machinery, to be held on November 25th.
The Provisional Government had planned that the convocation of the Assembly of freely elected
representatives should be organized by a special commission. Lenin let everything go according
to schedule and then he arrested the members of this special commission. He substituted for it a
“Commissary for the Constitutional Assembly”. The only difference between the one and the
other was that Bolsheviks headed by Uritzky dominated the one Lenin had formed. By this
move the Bolsheviks were in a position to exert authority over the newly elected Assembly as
soon as it convened. When the Assembly did finally convene Sverdlov took charge of the
proceedings ALTHOUGH HE WAS NOT A DELEGATE . The Bolsheviks present resorted to tactics
which kept the delegates in a constant uproar. They created utter confusion. After ten hours the
Bolsheviks all walked out suddenly. Bolshevik troops walked in. They ejected the remaining
delegates and locked the doors of the building. This was the end of Constitutional rule in
Russia.
In March, 1918, the Bolsheviks, who called themselves “The Russian Social-Democratic
Labour Party” moved to Moscow and changed their name to the Communist Party. The second
All-Russian Congress of Soviets now became the official governing body.
The Jewish-led Social Revolutionary Party did not want Lenin as Number One man in Russia.
On August 30th, 1918 two Jewish members of this group tried to assassinate him. Lenin was
wounded and Uritzky, whom Lenin had appointed head of his Cheka organization, was killed.
This incident gave Lenin the excuse for pulling out all stops. He turned on terrorism at full
blast. Night raids became regular occurrences. No person knew, when he went to bed, if he
would be alive in the morning. David Shub in his Pro-Marxist book “Lenin” says : “Little time
was wasted sifting evidence, or classifying people rounded up, in these night raids ... The
prisoners were generally hustled to the old police station, near the Winter Palace and shot.”
Murder, torture, mutilation, rape, burning; these and all other outrages against human sentiment
and decency, were the impregnable rocks upon which the so-called Soviet Socialist Republic
was founded. Millions of Russian citizens died. It is estimated that more than 12,000,000
others were condemned to serve the State at Forced Labour until they were released by death.
And while the allies were half-heartedly fighting Bolshevism on four fronts, Lenin re-organized
the W.R.M. In March, 1919, he convened the Third International. He presided. Zinoviev was
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_09.html (15 of 16)5.4.2006 12:16:02William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 9
elected president. The purpose of the meeting was to consolidate the revolutionary parties in
every country in the world, and to arrange to provide the leaders with advice, financial aid, and
any other assistance considered necessary to the success of Popular World Revolution. [14]
________________________
1 An exact duplicate of this club was organized just outside Montreal during World War Two.
2 This was in keeping with paragraph 8 of the plot exposed in Chapter 3.
3 Note the word used is “Palestine” not “Israel”.
4 This letter was quoted by Mr. Stokes, M.P. in the British Parliament during the Palestine Debate December, 11,
1947.
5 Read “Programme for the Third World War”, by C.H. Douglas, Liverpool, 1944.
6 Mr. Cambon of the French Ministry of Foreign Affairs accepted the Balfour Declaration in regard to supporting
Zionism at this time.
7 For further details of this aspect of the war read “The Brief for the Prosecution”, by C.H. Douglas.
8 Boris Brazel was author of “World at the crossroads” see p. 69.
9 This is the Sokolov who afterwards wrote “History of Zionism”.
10 He wrote “World Jewry” (London) February 22nd 1936. It will be seen that a very similar situation was created
by international intrigue at the beginning of World War II.
11 Read “All These Things” — A.N. Field.
12 Comdr. Cromie served in British Submarines at the same time as the author. His exploits on behalf of the
Russians are recorded in “By Guess and by God” — a book published by the author in 1931.
13 Read — La Russie sous les Juifs, pp. 20-28 and 34-35.
14 A great deal more information on the Russian angle can be obtained by reading “Behind Communism” by Frank
Britton.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_09.html (16 of 16)5.4.2006 12:16:02William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 10
Guy Carr
Pawns in the Game
C HAPTER T EN
The treaty of Versailles
It has been previously stated that the treaty of Versailles was one of the most iniquitous
documents ever signed by the representatives of socalled civilized nations. The injustice
perpetrated upon the German people by the terms of the Peace Treaty made another world war
inevitable. [1]
The circumstances surrounding the signing of the Armistice on November 11, 1918 must be
understood. The German High Command did not ask for the Armistice because their armies
were in danger of defeat. When the Armistice was signed the German armies had never been
defeated on the field of battle. The German High Command asked for an Armistice so that they
could devote their efforts towards preventing a Communist Revolution. Rosa Luxemberg
[Luxemburg], and her Jewish dominated Spartacus Bund, had planned to duplicate in Germany
what Lenin had achieved in Russia exactly one year previously.
The Armistice was signed as a prelude to a negotiated Peace. It is of the utmost importance to
remember this fact because an Armistice entered into under those conditions is far different
from unconditional surrender.
The events which caused the German High Command to realize their danger on the home front
were as follows :
Rosa Luxemberg’s revolutionaries infiltrated into the German High Seas fleet. They became
very active in 1918. They spread rumours that the ships, and their crews, were to be sacrificed
in an all out battle with the combined British and American navies. The rumour-mongers stated
that the purpose of the battle was to cripple the combined allied fleets to such an extent they
would be unable to defend the British coasts against a military invasion planned to bring the
German Warlords Victory. The Communist ‘Cells’ exhorted the German seamen to mutiny
because they claimed that the planned invasion of Britain was doomed to failure due to the fact
that British Scientists had developed a secret weapon. According to the rumour-mongers
invading craft could, by the use of chemicals fired from guns ashore or dropped from planes, be
surrounded by a sea of flames. Fire, heat, and lack of oxygen would create conditions in which
nothing human could survive. The subversives argued that the only way to avoid such a fate
was to bring about a revolution to end the war. The German seamen mutinied the 3rd of
November, 1918.
On November 7th, a large body of marines deserted while on their way to the Western Front.
They had been told that they were going to be used to ‘Spear-head’ the rumoured invasion of
Britain.
Meantime, uprisings had caused shut-downs in many German industrial centres. Subversives
talked defeatism. Conditions deteriorated until, on November 9th, the Kaiser abdicated.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_10.html (1 of 12)5.4.2006 12:16:10William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 10
The Social Democratic Party immediately formed a Republican Government. The Armistice
was signed November on 11th, 1918. The Communist leaders of the Spartacus Bund had placed
their ‘Cells’ in key positions within the new government and throughout the armed forces.
Their combined efforts created chaotic conditions everywhere. Rosa Luxemberg then played
her trump card. She forced the Socialist government to order the immediate demobilization of
the German armed forces. This action prevented the German High Command from using their
well disciplined troops to prevent the pending revolution which broke out in January 1919.
Before she usurped power in Germany, Rosa Luxemberg was promised the same financial
assistance and military aid the international bankers had given to Lenin and Trotsky a year
before. The initial stages of her revolutionary effort were financed by the fund they made
available through the Soviet Ambassador Joffe. The revolutionary effort only failed to
accomplish what Lenin had achieved in Russia when the promised aid failed to materialize after
Rosa had launched her initial onslaught. Then she realized her Jewish Spartacus Bund had been
betrayed by the very men she considered her friends and supporters. This incident alone should
prove that “The Secret Power”, behind the world revolutionary movement, is not concerned
about the welfare of the Jews any more than it is about the Gentiles. The majority of the
Directors of the W.R.M. are men who descended from the Khazars, Tartars, and other Mongol-
Asiatic non-semitic races. They adopted the Jewish religion to suit their own selfish purposes
between the 7th and 8th centuries. [2] They have used Jews exactly as they have used Gentiles as
“Pawns in the Game”.
The purpose of the double-cross was two-fold. The men who plot and plan the World
Revolutionary Movement did not want Germany sovietized until after they had used the German
people to fight another war against Britain. They calculated a second World War would render
both Empires so utterly exhausted that they could then be easily subjugated by the resources of
the U.S.S.R.s they controlled under Lenin’s dictatorship. In order to start a Second World War,
they considered it was necessary to build up within Germany an intense anti-semitic hatred for
the purpose of dividing Europe into two opposing camps — Fascist and Anti-Fascist. The plan
required all communized countries to remain neutral, in a military sense, while their agents did
everything possible to aggravate the adverse conditions the master-minds created.
After the Jewish-dominated revolution collapsed for want of aid, the German Aryan people took
a full measure of revenge on the Jewish people. Thousands of Jews, men, women and children,
were rounded up during the night and executed. Rosa Luxemberg, and her right hand man Karl
Liebknecht, were captured and shot in the head like mad dogs by a German lieutenant. Thus,
once again, a large number of Jews were made to pay the penalty for the crimes of a small group
of international gangsters who used them as pawns in the game of international intrigue.
To prolong and intensify the hatred of the German people for the Jews, propaganda blamed the
Jews for bringing about the military defeat of Germany’s armed forces; and the unjust and
humiliating terms enforced by the Treaty of Versailles. Propaganda strengthened the trend
towards National-Socialism in Germany by representing Britain, France, and the United States
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_10.html (2 of 12)5.4.2006 12:16:10William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 10
as selfish capitalistic countries influenced and controlled by the international Jewish bankers.
Thus the way was prepared for the advent of Hitler.
Soon after the Armistice was signed the international bankers instructed Lenin to consolidate
the Communist gain and to prepare to defend the Soviet States against capitalistic aggression.
Lenin announced this as his policy. Trotsky disagreed bitterly. He advocated immediate
revolution in all European countries which remained to be subjugated. He wanted to help
Germany’s Spartacus Bund in order to keep the revolutionary spirit alive.
Lenin insisted that their first duty was to establish the Communist sphere of influence in all
countries of the world located between the 35th and 45th parallels of latitude in the Northern
Hemisphere. Lenin stated he would only countenance revolutionary action in countries within
those limits. The most important countries were Spain, Italy, Greece, certain sections of Asia-
Minor including Palestine; certain sections of China, and the area both sides of the border in
Canada and the United States. Lenin warned the Third International that it was the duty of the
revolutionary leaders in all those countries to organize their parties so as to be ready to take over
their governments when outside forces created favourable conditions to revolt. Rosa
Luxemberg’s failure was cited as an example of what would happen if revolutionary action was
taken independently.
Lenin’s strategic plan is known in military circles as ‘The Musk Ox Plan’ because these
northern animals have been able to survive against the attacks of all their enemies by the simple
expedient of forming a circle with their heads pointing out and their tails in. Calves are placed
inside the circle. Wolves and bears could not attack the herd from flank or rear. If they
attacked head-on they were gored to death, or cut to ribbons, by the razor-like hooves of the
oxen. [3]
Lenin justified himself for abandoning Rosa Luxemberg on the grounds that he had thus been
able to organize the Soviet armies to withstand the combined onslaught of the Capitalistic
countries from 1919 to 1921. In 1921 Lenin informed the members of the Third International
that Spain was to be the nest country sovietized. He blamed Rosa Luxemberg as being
responsible for the wave of anti-Semitism which had swept over Germany. The Third
International then despatched Karl Radek to lead Communism in Germany. He was instructed
to use his own initiative as far as recruiting, organizing, and training the party was concerned,
but he was warned not to take revolutionary action until ordered to do so by the Comintern. The
Comintern was under control of Lenin, and therefore the international bankers.
Having settled internal conditions in Germany to suit their Long Range Plans the international
gangsters next turned their attention to Palestine. Palestine occupied a central geographical
position in their overall plans for world conquest. In addition to that, they knew that world
famous geologists [4] had located vast deposits of mineral wealth in the area around the Dead
Sea. They therefore decided to sponsor Political Zionism to further their two-fold purpose.
One. To force the nations of the world to make Palestine a National Home for the Jews so they
would have a sovereign state which they would control by reason of their wealth and power. If
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_10.html (3 of 12)5.4.2006 12:16:10William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 10
their long-range plans matured to the extent of a third world war they could use their sovereign
state to extend the control they exercised over the communized nations throughout the whole
world. When this was accomplished they would be able to crown the head of the group ‘King
of the Universe’, and ‘God upon this Earth’. [5]
Two. They had to secure control of the five trillion dollars worth of mineral wealth they knew
was hidden in and around the shores of the Dead Sea. Events will show how they went about
their dual purpose. After Britain, France, and the United States, had been committed to form a
national home for the Jews in Palestine, by the Balfour Declaration in April 1917, Lord Allenby
was ordered to drive the Turks out of Asia-Minor and occupy the Holy Land. The fact that
Palestine was to be turned over to the Jews was not made known until after the Arabs had
helped Allenby accomplish this task. The general impression was that Palestine would be a
British Protectorate.
Immediately after Lord Allenby’s triumphant entry into Jerusalem the international bankers
‘persuaded’ the allied governments to appoint their political emissaries as a Zionist
Commission. Officially, the members of this commission were sent to Palestine to act as liaison
between the military Administration and the Jews. Their real purpose was to ‘advise’ General
Clayton so his military administration would further their secret plans. The Zionist Commission
went into effect in March 1918.
Members of the Zionist Commission included Major Ormsby-Gore. He afterwards became
Lord Harlich. He was a director of the Midland Bank; the Standard Bank of South Africa; and
the Union Corporation. [6]
Major James de Rothschild, the son of Edmund de Rothschild of Paris, who had formerly
owned the Rothschild Colonies in Palestine. Major de Rothschild afterwards became a Liberal
member of the British parliament. He served in this capacity from 1929 to 1945. He was
appointed parliamentary secretary in the Churchill-Labour Coalition Government.
Lieut. Edwin Samuel — afterwards became Chief Censor for the British government during the
Second World War. He was appointed Chief Director of Palestine Broadcasting after the State
of Israel was established in 1948. [7]
Mr. Israel Sieff — He was a director of Marks and Spencers, the huge British departmental
stores. He was a close associate of all the international bankers. He was appointed Chairman of
the Political and Economic Planning Committee. He was a permanent member of the ‘Brain
Trust’ which ‘advised’ successive British governments. His standing in Great Britain was very
similar to that of Bernard Baruch in the United States of America from 1918 to date. Mr. Sieff
rendered the international bankers such outstanding service that he was made a commander of
the Order of Maccabees.
Leon Simon — He was afterwards knighted, and placed in charge of the British General Post
Office. He controlled all telegraph, telephone, and cable facilities. The remaining members of
the commission were Dr. Elder, Mr. Joseph Cowen, and Mr. Chaim Weizmann; all close
friends of wealthy Zionists in America. [8]
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_10.html (4 of 12)5.4.2006 12:16:10William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 10
Sir R. Storrs says the Zionist Commission was sent to Palestine before the Peace Conference
started, in order to create an atmosphere favourable to establishing a national home for the
Jews; and also to stimulate its financial supporters.
The international bankers dominated the conference which culminated in the Treaty of
Versailles. This is proved by the fact that in January 1919 Mr. Paul Warburg (who drafted the
Federal Reserve System in the U.S.A.), arrived in Paris to head the American delegation. His
brother Max arrived to head the German delegation. Comte de St. Aulaire says : “Those who
look for the truth elsewhere than in the official documents know that President Wilson, whose
election had been financed by the Great Bank of New York (Kuhn-Loeb & Co.) rendered almost
complete obedience to its beck and call.”
Dr. Dillon states “The sequence of expedients framed and enforced in this direction were
inspired by the Jews (i.e. representatives of the international bankers) assembled in Paris for the
purpose of realizing their carefully thought out programmes which they succeeded in having
substantially executed.”
The Mandate of Palestine was drafted by Professor Felix Frankfurter, the eminent American
Zionist, who afterwards became Chief Adviser in the White House to President Roosevelt. He
was assisted by the Right Honourable Sir Herbert Samuel, Dr. Jacobson, Dr. Fiewel, Mr.
Sacher, Mr. Landman, Mr. Ben Cohen, and Mr. Lucien Wolfe who exercised tremendous
influence over Mr. David Lloyd George. [9] He was said to possess all the secrets of the British
Foreign Office. [10]
At the preliminary conferences M. Mandel (whose real name was Rothschild ) was private
secretary to Mr. Clemenceau of France. Mr. Henry Morgenthau was on the U.S. delegation in a
general supervisory capacity. He was the father of the man who afterwards became President
Roosevelt’s Financial Secretary. Another man affiliated with the international bankers was Mr.
Oscar Strauss who took a leading part in forming the League of Nations and moulding its
policies so that they fitted in with the International Gangsters’ Long Range Plan for ultimate
world domination.
Mr. Lucien Wolfe says on page 408 of his “Essays in Jewish History” “A small group of other
distinguished Jews appear as signatories of the Peace Treaty. The Treaty of Versailles is signed
for France by Louis Klotz. (He was afterwards implicated in shady financial transactions and
retired from public life. Ed.) Baron Somino for Italy, and Edwin Montague for India.”
Mr. Harold Nicolson, author of “Peace Making 1919-1944” p. 243 states, that Wolfe suggested
to him that all Jews should have international protection while retaining all national rights of
exploitation. M. Georges Batault says in “Le Problème Juif”, p. 38, “The Jews who surrounded
Lloyd George, Wilson, and Clemenceau are to blame for creating a ‘Jewish Peace’.” Once
again the Jewish race is blamed for the sins of a few ruthless financiers.
In the spring of 1919 Béla Kun usurped power in Hungary. He tried to put Lucien Wolfe’s
ideas into practice. Béla Kun’s dictatorship lasted only three months, but during that time tens
of thousands of Christians were dispossessed and ruthlessly murdered. The victims included
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_10.html (5 of 12)5.4.2006 12:16:10William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 10
working men, army officers, merchants, land-owners, professional men and women, priests and
laymen.
The “New International Year Book of 1919” says in part : “The government of Béla Kun was
composed almost exclusively of Jews, who held also the administrative offices. The
Communists had united first with the Socialists, who were not of the extremely radical party,
but resembled somewhat the Labour Parties, or Trade Union groups, in other countries. Béla
Kun did not however select his personnel from among them, but turned to the Jews and
constituted virtually a Jewish bureaucracy.”
History records that after three months of systematic pillage, rape, and wholesale murder, Béla
Kun was deposed. Instead of being executed he was interned in a lunatic asylum. His release
was arranged by agents of the powerful group he had served so well. He returned to Russia and
was put in charge of the Cheka which terrorized the Ukranians into subjection when Stalin was
ordered to collectivize agriculture in the Soviets. Five million peasants were starved to death
for refusing to obey the edicts. Over five million more were sent to forced labour in Siberia.
When Stalin tried to turn Spain into a Communist Dictatorship in 1936, Béla Kun was chosen to
organize the Reign of Terror in Spain.
The power of the international bankers is well illustrated by an incident that happened during
the preliminary conferences held in Paris in 1919. The negotiations tended to stray away from
the policy set by the international bankers. Thereupon, Jacob Schiff, of New York, sent
President Wilson, who was attending the Paris conference, a two thousand word cable. He
‘instructed’ the president of the United States what to do in regard to the Palestine Mandate,
German Reparations, Upper Silesia, The Sarre, The Danzing Corridor, and Fiume. The
cablegram was dated May 28th, 1919. Schiff sent it in the name of the Association of the
League of Free Nations. [11]
Upon receipt of the cablegram President Wilson immediately changed the direction of the
negotiations. Of this incident Comte de St. Aulaire said : “The Treaty of Versailles on these
five questions was dictated by Jacob Schiff and his co-religionists.” [12] It must be pointed out
again that the rank and file of the Jewish people had absolutely nothing to do with framing the
policy which the international bankers insisted Lloyd George, President Wilson, and Premier
Clemenceau carry out.
As soon as the allied governments had been ‘persuaded’ to make Palestine a British
Protectorate, (as demanded in the cable), the international bankers instructed their agents that
the terms of the Peace Treaty were to be made so severe that it would be impossible for the
German people to tolerate them very long. This was part of the plan to keep the German people
hating the British, French, Americans and the Jews so they would be ready to fight again to
regain their legal rights.
Immediately the Treaty of Versailles was signed, the phony Capitalist-Bolshevik war was
started. This war enabled Lenin to justify his policy, by which he abandoned the German
revolutionaries to their fate in order to consolidate the gains he had already made in Russia. The
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_10.html (6 of 12)5.4.2006 12:16:10William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 10
war against Bolshevism was never permitted to endanger Lenin’s dictatorship. It was ended in
1921. The net result was that the Bolsheviks gained a tremendous amount of prestige, while the
Capitalist countries lost a similar amount. This paved the way for the agents of the international
bankers to suggest, in the interests of permanent PEACE , that the Soviet States be admitted to
membership in the League of Nations.
The British government, always obedient to the ‘wishes’ of the international bankers, was the
first to comply with the new ‘request’. France followed suit on October 28th, 1924. After the
infamous Litvinov had worked on Henry Morgenthau and Dean Acheson (who were both
dominated by Felix Frankfurter and Louis D. Brandeis), President Roosevelt recognized the
Soviets on November 16th, 1933. The League of Nations accepted the Soviet States as
members. From that day on, the League of Nations was nothing more or less than an instrument
in the hands of Stalin. His agents moulded its policy and activities, to suit the Long Range
Plans of those who direct the World Revolutionary Movement. [13]
Once the Communist countries had been admitted into the League of Nations, Grand Orient
Masons, who were delegates, or on the staff, took charge. [14]
Wickham Steed, former editor of the Times, London, was one of the best informed men in the
world. On more than one occasion he discussed the fact that the international bankers
dominated international affairs. He made this definite statement just after the Treaty of
Versailles was signed : “I insist[ed] that [, unknown to him,] the prime movers (to make the
Allied Powers acknowledge the Bolshevik dictatorship) were Jacob Schiff, Warburg, and other
international financiers, who wished above all to bolster up the Jewish Bolsheviks in order to
secure a field for German and Jewish exploitation of Russia.” [15]
Leo Maxse, writing in the August issue of the ‘National Review’ 1919 stated : “Whoever is in
power in Downing Street, whether Conservative, Radicals, Coalitionist, or Pseudo-Bolshevik,
the international Jews rule the roost. Here is the mystery of the ‘Hidden Hand’ of which there
has been no intelligent explanation.” Once again the word ‘Jew’ should have been ‘Banker’ or
‘Gangster’. It would be just as reasonable to blame all Roman Catholics for the crimes of a few
Roman Mafia Chieftains who had given up the practice of their religion for many years. [16]
When Mr. Winston Churchill visited Palestine in March 1921, he was asked to meet a
delegation of Moslem leaders. They protested that the ultimate objective of political Zionism
was to give the natural resources of Palestine to the Jews. They pointed out that the Arabs had
occupied Palestine for over a thousand years. They asked Churchill to use his influence to
correct what they considered a great injustice. Churchill is recorded as saying in reply : “You
ask me to repudiate the Balfour Declaration and to stop (Jewish) immigration. This is not in my
power ... and it is not my wish ... We think it is good for the world, good for the Jews, good for
the British Empire, and good for the Arabs also ... and we intend it to be so.” [17]
When Churchill gave the Arabs his reply he was in all probability thinking of the threat issued
by Chaim Weizmann who had been an agent of the international bankers for many years. Just a
year before Churchill’s visit to Palestine, Weizmann had made an official statement of policy
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_10.html (7 of 12)5.4.2006 12:16:10William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 10
which was published in ‘Judische Rundschau’, No. 4, 1920 : He said “We will establish
ourselves in Palestine whether you like it or not ... You can hasten our arrival or you can equally
retard it. It is however better for you to help us so as to avoid our constructive powers being
turned into a destructive power which will overthrow the world.”
Weizmann’s statement must be studied in conjunction with another declaration made by an
international banker to a gathering of Zionists in Budapest in 1919. When discussing the
probabilities of a supergovernment he was quoted by Comte de St. Aulaire as saying : “In the
management of the New World we give proof of our organization both for revolution and for
construction by the creation of the League of Nations, which is our Work. Bolshevism is the
accelerator, and the League of Nations is the brake on the mechanism of which we supply both
the motive force and the guiding power... What is the end ? That is already determined by our
mission.” [18] One world government.
The two statements combined show the international extent of their secret ambitions. Eight
years after I had finished this chapter of the orginal manuscript the following report came into
my possession through Canadian Intelligence Service. Because the statements made at the
Conference held in Budapest on January 12th, 1952 supports my contentions made in 1944, and
confirms the conclusions I had arrived at in 1924, I insert the report of the speech given in 1952
here verbatim. It was originally made available to an American publication ‘Common Sense’
by Mr. Eustace Mullins, an authority on the Marxist conspiracy. [19]
“A report from Europe carries the following speech of Rabbi Emanuel Rabinovich before a special
meeting of the Emergency Council of European Rabbis in Budapest, Hungary, January 12, 1952 :
‘ Greetings, my children : You have been called here to recapitulate the principal steps of our new
programme. As you know, we had hoped to have twenty years between wars to consolidate the
great gains which we made from World War II, but our increasing numbers in certain vital areas is
arousing opposition to us, and we must now Work with every means at our disposal to precipitate
World War III within five years.
‘ The goal for which we have striven so concertedly for three thousand years is at last within our
reach, and because its fulfillment is so apparent, it behooves us to increase our efforts, and our
caution, tenfold. I can safely promise you that before ten years have passed, our race will take its
rightful place in the world, with every Jew a king, and every Gentile a slave. (Applause from the
gathering). You remember the success of our propaganda campaign during the 1930’s, which
aroused anti-American passions in Germany at the same time we were arousing anti-German
passions in America, a campaign which culminated in the Second World War. A similar
propaganda campaign is now being waged intensively throughout the world. A war fever is being
worked up in Russia by an incessant anti-American barrage, while a nationwide anti-Communist
scare is sweeping America. This campaign is forcing all of the smaller nations to choose between
the partnership of Russia or an alliance with the United States.
‘ Our most pressing problem at the moment is to inflame the lagging militaristic spirit of the
Americans. The failure of the Universal Military Training Act was a great setback to our plans, but
we are assured that a suitable measure will be rushed through congress immediately after the 1952
elections. The Russian, as well as the Asiatic peoples, are well under control and offer no
objections to war, but we must wait to secure the Americans. This we hope to do with the issue of
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_10.html (8 of 12)5.4.2006 12:16:10William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 10
anti-Semitism, which worked so well in uniting the Americans against Germany. We are counting
heavily on reports of anti-Semitic outrages in Russia to help whip up indignation in the United
States and produce a front of solidarity against the Soviet power. Simultaneously, to demonstrate
to Americans the reality of anti-Semitism, we will advance through new sources large sums of
money to outspokenly anti-Semitic elements in America to increase their effectiveness, and we
shall stage anti-Semitic outbreaks in several of their larger cities. This will serve the double
purpose of exposing reactionary sectors in America, which can be silenced, and of welding the
United States into a devoted antiRussian unit.
‘ Within five years, this programme will achieve its objective, the Third World War, which will
surpass in destruction all previous contests. Israel, of course will remain neutral, and when both
sides are devastated and exhausted we will arbitrate, sending our Control Commission into all
wrecked countries. This war will end for all time our struggle against the Gentiles.
‘ We will openly reveal our identity with the races of Asia and Africa. I can state with assurance
that the last generation of white children is now being born. Our Control Commissions will, in the
interests of peace, and wiping out inter-racial tensions, forbid the whites to mate with whites. The
white women must cohabit with members of the dark races, the white men with black women.
Thus the white race will disappear, for mixing the dark with the white means the end of the white
man, and our most dangerous enemy will become only a memory. We shall embark upon an era of
ten thousand years of peace and plenty, the Pax Judaica, and our race will rule undisputed over the
world. Our superior intelligence will easily enable us to retain mastery over a world of dark
peoples.’
Question from the gathering : ‘ Rabbi Rabinovich, what about the various religions after the Third
World War ?’
Rabinovich : ‘ There will be no more religions. Not only would the existence of a priest class
remain a constant danger to our rule, but belief in an after-life would give spiritual strength to
irreconcilable elements in many countries, and enable them to resist us. We will, however, retain
the rituals, and customs of Judaism, as the mark of our hereditary ruling caste, strengthening our
racial laws so that no Jew will be allowed to marry outside our race, nor will any stranger be
accepted by us.
‘ We may have to repeat the grim days of World War II, when we were forced to let the Hitlerite
bandits sacrifice some of our people, in order that we may have adequate documentation and
witnesses to legally justify our trial and execution of the leaders of America and Russia as war
criminals, after we have dictated the Peace. I am sure you will need little preparation for such a
duty, for sacrifice has always been the watchword of our people, and the death of a few thousand
Jews in exchange for world leadership is indeed a small price to pay.
‘ To convince you of the certainty of that leadership, let me point out to you how we have turned all
of the inventions of the white man into weapons against him. His printing presses and radios are
the mouthpieces of our desires, and his heavy industry manufactures the instruments which he
sends out to arm Asia and Africa against him. Our interest in Washington are greatly extending the
Point Four Programme for developing industry in backward areas of the world, so that after the
industrial plants and cities of Europe and America are destroyed by atomic warfare, the whites can
offer no resistance against the large masses of the dark races, who will maintain an unchallenged
technological superiority. [20]
‘ And so, with the vision of world victory before you, go back to your countries and intensify your
good work, until that approaching Light when Israel will reveal herself in all her glorious destiny as
the Light of the World.’ Illuminati means ‘Holder of the Light’.”
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_10.html (9 of 12)5.4.2006 12:16:10William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 10
This speech also confirms what I have contended in regard to the manner in which the Secret
Powers have deliberately stirred up anti-Semitism to suit their purposes and also anti-
Communism. It proves my contention that the Illuminati have used Communism, Zionism, and
Fascism to further their secret ambitions. And they will, if they can, use Christian-Democracy
against Communism to bring about the next phase of their long range plan ... World War Three.
But the most illuminating feature of the speech is the fact that it discloses the manner in which
the Illuminati use a Jewish Rabbi to convince other co-religionists that they will be the
governing class in the New World Order — a fact that past history would indicate is very
doubtful. Satanism, not the Jews will rule.
Under the terms of the Treaty of Versailles in 1919 the international bankers obtained control
over Germany’s military rearmament, and her economic recovery. This accomplished, they
entered into the Abmachungen (agreement) with the German High Command. They agreed to
have the Soviets secretly supply the German generals with all the arms and munitions they
required for a modern army of several million. They also undertook to have the Soviet dictator
place complete training facilities at the disposal of the Germans to enable them to train the
number of commissioned and non-commissioned officers they would require to officer the new
army they planned to bring into being when they considered the time was ripe.
The vast building projects required to put the terms of the Abmachungens into effect were
financed by the international bankers. [21] They thus enabled both Communist and Fascist
countries to build up their economy and war potentials. The international bankers enabled the
German High Command to evade all the military restrictions placed upon them by the Treaty of
Versailles. [22]
The vast Krupp Munition and Armaments Plants built in the Soviets behind the Ural mountains
were named “Manych”. The German armament firms were granted every concession they
asked for. International intrigue on such a lavish scale could only mean one thing. Those
involved were preparing for World War II. The governments of the socalled allied nations were
kept fully informed regarding what was going on behind the scenes, as I found out when I
visited London during the conference on naval disarmament in 1930. This is only another proof
that Disraeli spoke the truth when he said “The governments elected do not govern.”
Thus history reveals that from 1920 to 1934 the Secret Power directed international intrigue in
such a manner that the leaders of ALLEGEDLY Jewish dominated Communism in RUSSIA were
working hand in glove with the leaders of ALLEGEDLY Aryan dominated Naziism in Germany.
This phase of history is most complicated. It is difficult for the average citizen to understand. [23]
Communism and Naziism have several things in common : both are atheistic creeds which
deny the existence of Almighty God. They both advocate war, hatred, and force; as opposed to
Christ’s policy of peace, love, and teaching. The leaders of both atheistic-materialistic
ideologies MUST therefore be agents of the Devil. They further the diabolical conspiracy to win
the souls of men away from loyalty and obedience to Almighty God. They both use a form of
Grand Orient Masonry for proselytizing purposes. [24]
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_10.html (10 of 12)5.4.2006 12:16:10William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 10
The head of the Council of Thirty Three is the president of the top executives council of
Thirteen, previously referred to. Because the initiating ceremonies of ALL Grand Orient Lodges
require the candidate to swear he will acknowledge no other mortal as above the head of the
organization that head is automatically God on Earth. The international bankers have always
been the top executives of the Grand Orient Masonry since 1770. Aryan War Lords have
always been the top executive of the German Lodges. They select their own successors.
A review of history, 1914-1934, indicates :
(1) That the international bankers fomented World War I to bring about conditions favourable for
revolutionary action and thus enable them to obtain undisputed control of the Russian Empire.
(2) To remove the Crowned Heads of Europe. These rulers had to be removed before either group
could achieve their totalitarian ambitions.
(3) To force the British and French governments to agree to establish A National Home for the Jews
in Palestine.
The government of Britain was forced to aid the international bankers plan for the Bolshevik
revolution in Russia in 1917 in order to obtain their promise that they would bring America into the
war on the side of the allies. It can be assumed that S.S. Lusitania was sunk to provide the
necessary incident to justify the changer of American policy, just as Pearl Harbour was used as an
excuse for America to enter World War II.
The original draft of the mandate on Palestine reads : “ TO TURN PALESTINE INTO A NATIONAL HOME
FOR THE JEWS ”. It was altered at the last minute to read “to establish a National Home for the Jew
IN PALESTINE ”. This was done to conceal the secret ambitions of the Zionists.
The international bankers deliberately concealed the truth regarding the vast mineral deposits
geologists had discovered in Palestine until AFTER the governments of Britain, France, and the
United States had agreed to their Mandate of Palestine. [26]
The international bankers used Zionism to obtain control of a centrally located Sovereign State
from which they could extend the control they now exert over the U.S.S.Rs. to cover the entire
World.
The conspirators managed international affairs between 1921 and 1934 so that Europe was divided
into two camps — Fascist and Anti-Fascist — in preparation for World War II.
________________________
1 The injustice perpetrated at Versailles was only exceeded by the agreements afterwards entered into Tehran;
Potsdam; and Yalta. It will be proved that the same evil influences were at work in all negotiations.
2 See the Iron Curtain Over America by Pro. John Beaty. Wilkinson Publishing Co., Dallas, Texas. pp. 15-16.
3 Time has shown how far this long range plan has matured, and it explains why China was turned over to the
Communists.
4 This was Conningham-Craig previously mentioned.
5 The Long Range Plans published in Chapter 3 proves this is intended.
6 The directors of the Standard Bank helped bring about the Boer war in order to give them control of the gold and
diamond fields in Africa.
7 It might have been more accurate to have given him the title of Chief Director of Propaganda for the International
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_10.html (11 of 12)5.4.2006 12:16:10William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 10
Bankers.
8 The importance of Palestine in the plans of those who direct the World Revolutionary Movement is such that
several books have been written on the subject. People wishing to be better informed should read—Palestine, the
Reality, by J.M.N. Jeffries; The Palestine Plot by B. Jensen; Zionism and Palestine by Sir Ronald Storrs (who was
first Governor of Jerusalem); Geneva versus Peace by Comte de St. Aulaire, (who was at one time ambassador to
the Palace of St. James, England); The Paris Peace Conference by Dr. Dillon, London 1919; Brief for Prosecution
by Major C.H. Douglas.
9 Mr. L. Wolfe published Essays in Jewish History in 1934.
10 See Jewish Guardian June issue 1920. Also The Surrender of an Empire by Nesta H Webster, p. 357, 1933;
and The Palestine Plot by B. Jensen, p, 60.
11 This league was financed, and dominated, by five American Bankers.
12 See Geneva versus Peace, p. 90.
13 For further particulars read Moscow’s Red Letter Day in American History by Wm. La Varre, in the August
edition of the American Legion Magazine. Also Trotsky’s book entitled Stalin.
14 Read The Hidden Hand, page 28, by Colonel A.H. Lane. Nahun Sokolov, who was President of the Executive
Committee of the Zionist Congress, said on August 25th, 1952, “The League of Nations is a Jewish idea”.
15 Read Through Thirty Years by Wickham Steed, London. Vol. 2, pp. 301-302.
16 It was the references to The Secret Power and Hidden Hand by Steed, De Poncin, Mrs. Webster, Maxse and
others which caused me to investigate the matter in an effort to find the real answer. Author.
17 The full significance of this declaration was not appreciated even by the author until 1954 when Prime Minister
Churchill (during his visit to Bernard Baruch) stated “I am a Zionist and have always promoted Zionism”. He then
followed this declaration by strongly advocating ‘Peaceful co-existence with the Communist Nations’. As the
Communist States are actually International Financiers Dictatorships it must be assumed that in 1921 as in 1954
Churchill secretly believed they are best fitted, and most able to rule under present day conditions.
18 Geneva versus Peace, p. 83.
19 Mr. E. Mullins is author of The Federal Reserve Conspiracy. Published by “Common Sense”, New Jersey, U.S.
A.
20 Study this statement in regard to the meeting of leaders of all ‘Dark’ and ‘Black’ races which met in Bandung in
April, 1956 and the policy of sending arms to Israel and Egypt.
21 This was prior to the advent of Hitler.
22 It will be proved that the German Generals, and top-level officials who negotiated the Abmachungen were the
ones condemned to death at the Nuremberg Trials as War Criminals. They knew too much.
23 A great deal of light has, however, been thrown on this subject by Mr. Cecil F. Melville, who made a deep study
of this particular phase of the World Revolutionary Movement, and wrote The Russian Face of Germany.
24 N OTE .—The German Grand Orient Lodges have never admitted Jews to membership for the obvious reason that
the Secret Powers could never have put into effect an international plot of the nature and proportions of the
Abmachungen, had their policy been otherwise.
25 N OTE .—The truth regarding value of mineral resources was not allowed to leak out until the United Nations had
partitioned Palestine in 1948 in such a manner that over five trillion dollars worth of minerals are now known to be
located in The State of Israel. Count Bernadotte of Sweden proposed that the Jews should give up all of the south,
and receive West Galilee in the north. His plan was rejected and in September 1947 Count Bernadotte was
assassinated by Jewish extremists.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_10.html (12 of 12)5.4.2006 12:16:10William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 11
Guy Carr
Pawns in the Game
C HAPTER E LEVEN
Stalin
Stalin was born Joseph Vissarionovich Djugashvili, in the mountain village of Gori in the
province of Georgia in 1879. His father was a peasant from the town Dido-Lilo. His mother,
Ekaterina Geladze, was a devoutly religious woman whose forebears had been serfs in the
village of Gambarouli.
Not a great deal is known about Stalin’s father, except that he sometimes worked as a labourer
and sometimes as a cobbler in a shoe factory in Adelkhanov. He is said to have been an easy-
going individual who liked to drink a great deal. Stalin’s mother, however, was a devoted
mother and worked hard. She took in washing to earn extra money for her family’s benefit.
Her ambition was to see Stalin become a priest. She skimped and saved to provide him with the
necessary education. Young Stalin attended the elementary school in Gori for four years and
won a scholarship which entitled him to attend the Tiflis Theological Seminary. But Stalin
wasn’t cut out for a religious life. He was continually getting into trouble with the seminary
authorities. He was expelled after completing four years of study. He then joined a group of
young revolutionaries.
Stalin first married Ekaterina Svanidze, who bore him a son, Yasha-Jacob Djugashvili. This
boy was never very bright. Even after his father became dictator, he worked as an electrician
and mechanic.
Stalin’s second wife was Nadya. Allilyova who bore him two children, Vasili, a son, and
Svetlana, a daughter. Vasili became a major-general in the Soviet Air Force. He usually led the
flying demonstrations on special occasions of state after his father became dictator. He was
thrown into the discard after his father died.
Stalin and his second wife don’t seem to have got along very well together. Stalin had an affair
with a beautiful Jewess, Rosa Kaganovich. She is reported to have been living with Stalin when
his second wife, Nadya, committed suicide.
It is believed that in addition to Stalin’s love affairs, Nadya became more and more depressed as
the result of the ruthless way in which Stalin slaughtered so many of her co-religionists whom
he accused of being diversionists.
Rosa’s brother, Lazar Kaganovich, was a great friend of Stalin’s. He was made a member of the
Politburo and retained his office until Stalin died. Kaganovich proved his ability as
Commissioner for Heavy Industry when he developed the Donetz Basin Oil Fields and built the
Moscow subway. Kaganovich’s son, Mihail, married Stalin’s daughter Svetlana. [1] What
became of Svetlana’s first husband remains a mystery. It would appear that Svetlana’s first
hubby removed himself, or was removed, to allow Kaganovich’s son to marry Stalin’s daughter,
just as Stalin’s second wife removed herself or was removed, to allow Stalin to marry
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_11.html (1 of 5)5.4.2006 12:16:15William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 11
Kaganovich’s sister, Rosa. It is reported that Stalin did marry Rosa after his wife’s suicide.
Molotov, vice-premier to Stalin, was married to a Jewess, the sister of Sam Karp, owner of the
Karp Exporting Co. of Bridgeport, Conn. Molotov’s daughter was engaged to Stalin’s son,
Vasili, in 1951, so the Politburo was to a certain extent ‘A Family Compact’.
As was mentioned previously, Stalin only became a member of the Upper Crust of the Russian
revolutionary party because, during the preliminary phases of the Russian Revolution, many of
the better known leaders were in jail. Stalin never rose to any very exalted position in the
Communist Party during Lenin’s dictatorship. It was during Lenin’s last illness that Stalin
jockeyed for position, and then he moved out in front, to eliminate Trotsky and other Jewish
contenders. Once he took over the leadership he never relinquished it until his death.
How Stalin rose to power is an interesting story. Lenin suffered a paralytic stroke in May 1922,
and this affected his speech and motor reflexes. In December of that year he appointed a
triumvirate composed of Zinoviev, Kamenev and Stalin to share the problems of government.
Shortly after Lenin suffered another stroke and died. Trotsky has suggested, and his followers
believe, Stalin helped bring about Lenin’s death because he was irritated by Lenin’s incapacity
and prolonged illness.
When the triumvirate started to function in Moscow the Politburo included of Lenin, Zinoviev,
Kamenev, Trotsky, Bukharin, Tomsky, and Stalin. Zinoviev and Kamenev had been Lenin’s
right hand men from the day he became dictator. They naturally regarded themselves as the
senior members of the triumvirate and logically his successors. Zinoviev treated Stalin in a
circumspectly patronizing manner and Kamenev treated him with a touch of irony. [2]
Zinoviev and Kamenev considered Trotsky as their real competitor for the dictatorship after
Lenin died. In Trotsky’s book “Stalin” he records that Stalin was used by both Zinoviev and
Kamenev as a counterweight against him (Trotsky) and to a lesser extent by other members of
the Politburo also. No member of the Politburo at that time thought Stalin would one day rise
away above their heads.
Zinoviev was considered senior member of the triumvirate when he was delegated to give the
opening address of the 12th Party Congress, a function Lenin had always reserved for himself
on previous occasions. Zinoviev didn’t go over too well. Stalin was quick to take advantage.
Before the congress was over, Stalin had secured control over the Communist Party machine
and held a dominant position in the triumvirate. This was the situation when Lenin died in 1924.
In April 1925 Stalin had Trotsky removed as war commissar. He then broke relations with
Zinoviev and Kamenev and allied himself with Bukharin, Rykov, and Tomsky. Zinoviev,
Kamenev and Trotsky then united forces in opposition to Stalin, but they had moved too late. In
February, 1926, Stalin had Zinoviev expelled from the Politburo; then from the presidency of
the Petersburg (Leningrad) Soviet; and finally from the presidency of the Third International.
In October, 1926, Stalin had Kamenev and Trotsky expelled from the Politburo. Next year
Stalin had his three enemies removed from the Central Committee of the Communist Party and
shortly afterwards he had them read out of the party altogether.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_11.html (2 of 5)5.4.2006 12:16:15William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 11
In 1927 Trotsky tried to start a revolt against Stalin on the grounds that he was departing from
the Marxian ideology and substituting an imperialistic totalitarian dictatorship for a genuine
Union of Sovietized Socialist Republics. What everyone seems to have failed to realize was the
fact that Stalin had been nominated to rule the Soviets by the international bankers. He had to
purge Russia of all men who might obstruct their Long Range Plans.
During the purge several million people were slain and about an equal number sent to forced
labour. Many men who had been leaders of the revolutionary movement, since the First
International was formed, were hounded to death or imprisoned. Amongst the leaders Stalin
purged were Trotsky, Zinoviev, Kamenev, Martynov, Zasulich, Deutch, Parvus, Axelrod,
Radek, Uritzky, Sverdlov, Dan, Lieber, and Martov. About the only Jews close to Stalin at the
time of his death were Kaganovich, his brother-in-law and Rosa, his third wife.
Stalin continued to develop Lenin’s policy to establish the Communist sphere of influence
between the 35th and 45th parallels of latitude right around the northern hemisphere. Many
revolutionary leaders in other countries became convinced that Stalin had developed personal
Imperialistic ideas and was intent upon making himself ruler of a world-wide totalitarian
dictatorship. They were right. Stalin took his orders, as Lenin had done, from the men who are
“ THE SECRET POWER ” behind the World Revolutionary Movement, until 1936 and then he began
to ignore their mandates, as will be proved.
Stalin did not want to involve his armed forces in wars with other nations. His policy was to
feed the revolutionary fires in all countries to the south between the 35th and 45th parallels of
latitude. His policy paid off exceedingly well. At the time of his death, Communistic control
had been established over half the territory in the Northern Hemisphere. About half the world’s
population had been subjugated.
Lenin had stated in 1921 that Spain was to be the next country Sovietized. Upon his death
Stalin accepted the subjugation of Spain as a pious legacy. Once Spain had been turned into a
so-called proletarian dictatorship it would be an easy matter to subjugate France and Britain.
Germany would then be between the nut-crackers. If by some mischance the subjugation of
Spain failed to materialize, then the incident could be used to help bring about World War II.
While preparing for the Spanish revolution, Stalin was ordered by the international bankers to
take an active part in an economic war which was planned in 1918 immediately after the
Armistice had been signed. Generally speaking, the people who had not been engaged in the
actual fighting became prosperous during World War I. When the fighting ended the people in
the allied countries enjoyed two boom years. Then, after speculative investments had just about
reached their peak, vast amounts of money were withdrawn from circulation. Credits were
restricted. Calls were made on loans. In 1922-25 a minor depression was experienced. [3] This
economic juggling was a preliminary experiment before the Powers-That-Be brought about the
great depression of 1930.
After 1925 financial policy was reversed and conditions steadily improved until prosperity in
America, Britain, Canada, and Australia, reached an all-time record. Speculation in stocks and
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_11.html (3 of 5)5.4.2006 12:16:15William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 11
bonds and real estate went wild. Then, towards the end of 1929 came the sudden crash, and the
greatest depression ever known settled down over the free world. Millions of people were
rendered destitute. Thousands committed suicide. Misgovernment was blamed for the
economic upset which made paupers out of tens of millions of people, and trillionaires out of
three hundred who were already millionaires.
In 1925 Stalin started his five-year industrial plans to increase the so-called Sovietized countries
internal recovery. The plan was to exploit the natural resources, manufacture raw materials into
useful commodities, and modernize industrial and agricultural machinery. This vast Five Year
Plan was financed by loans from the international bankers. This programme, when added to the
development of the Russian and German war potential under the Abmachungen (agreements)
previously referred to, gave a great boost to Soviet economy. The fact that the Rulers of Russia
could use millions of men and women as slaves gave those who enslaved them an additional
advantage over nations which employ paid labour, and maintain a high standard of living.
The next move was the collectivization of farms. For centuries the serfs in Russia had been
little better than slaves of the landed proprietors. Lenin had won their support by promising
them even greater concessions than they had been granted under the benevolent rule of Premier
Peter Arkadyevich Stolypin from 1906 to 1914, when over 2,000,000 peasant families seceded
from the village mir and became individual land owners. By January 1st, 1916, the number had
increased to 6,200,000 families.
But, in order to secure the loans they had made for the Abmachungen and industrial
development programmes, the international bankers insisted that they control the import and
export trade of the Sovietized nations. They also demanded the collectivization of farms as the
only means to obtain greatly increased agricultural production.
History records what happened when Stalin enforced the edicts. He has always been blamed
personally for the inhuman atrocities which made the peasants comply with the laws. Many
versions of what happened have been given. The truth, as I reported it to American newspapers
in 1930, has never been published to date. It is acknowledged that over 5,000,000 peasants
were executed, or systematically starved to death, because they refused to obey, or tried to
evade the edicts. Over 5,000,000 more were sent to forced labour in Siberia. What is not
generally known is the fact that the grain which was confiscated from the Russian farmers was
pooled together with a vast quantity of grain purchased by the agents of the international
bankers in other countries except Canada and the United States. In addition to this corner on
grain the international bankers bought up huge supplies of processed and frozen meats in the
Argentine and other meat producing countries. Canada and the United States could not find a
market for their cattle, or their grain.
During the period 1920-1929 the international bankers subsidized shipping in most countries
except Britain, Canada, and the United States. As the result of this commercial piracy, it
became impossible for ships owned in Britain, Canada, and the United States to compete with
ships owned by other countries. Thousands of ships were tied up idle in their home ports.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_11.html (4 of 5)5.4.2006 12:16:15William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 11
Export trade fell off to an all-time low.
The falling off of exports from the allied nations was accompanied by increasing the
importation of cheaply manufactured goods from Germany, Japan, and central European
countries. To enjoy reasonable prosperity, five out of every eight wage-earners in Canada must
obtain their pay directly or indirectly as a result of the export trade. When the export trade falls
off a recession immediately follows, due to loss of purchasing power among five-eighths of the
population. This immediately affects those who earn their living by rendering services of one
kind or another. If the export trade remains down, then the recession deteriorates into a
depression.
To make absolutely sure that the skids were completely knocked from under the economic
structures of allied countries, the men who had cornered grain and meats began to dump their
supplies on the markets of the world at prices below the cost of production in Canada, America
and Australia. This action brought about a situation in which the granaries of the countries
allied together in World War I were bursting with grain they couldn’t sell, while the people of
other countries were starving to death for want of bread and meat. Britain needs to earn
£85,000,000 a year from her ocean services in order to offset her unfavourable annual trade
balance each year. The British economy was given a severe jolt when unfair competition made
it impossible for her to earn this money. The British people were forced to buy their bread and
meat in the cheapest markets. This artificially produced economic mess-up was used by the
men who master-mind international intrigue to cause grave misunderstanding between different
units of the British Commonwealth of Nations and thus weaken the bonds of Empire. [4]
As the result of this economic war, the shipping, industrial, and agricultural activities of the
allied or capitalistic countries were brought to a virtual standstill, while the Soviet States and the
Axis Powers worked at full capacity. Once again it must be remembered that the men who plot
and plan the World Revolutionary Movement always work on the fundamental principle that
wars end depressions and pave the way for revolutionary action in countries that still remain to
be subjugated. This being a fact, it was essential to the furthering of their Long Range Plans to
arrange international affairs so they could bring about World War II when they wished to do so.
As Spain had been indicated by Lenin and Stalin as holding a key position, the manner in which
Spain was used will be studied next.
________________________
1 The marriage of Svetlana Stalin to Mihail Kaganovich was reported in the Associated Press, July 15th, 1951.
2 Note : ‘Stalin’, by Trotsky, page 337 (ibid page 48).
3 This is explained in Chapters 1 and 2 of “The Red Fog”.
4 This phase of history is dealt with more extensively elsewhere.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_11.html (5 of 5)5.4.2006 12:16:15William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
Guy Carr
Pawns in the Game
C HAPTER T WELVE
The Spanish Revolution
The Long Range Plan for the ultimate subjugation of Spain started, as in other countries, soon
after the death of Christ. In an attempt to crush the power of the Christian Church in Spain, the
money-lenders their agents to infiltrate into the congregations and pose as Christians. [1] This
placed them in positions to destroy the church organizations from within. This conspiracy
became obvious, and in the 13th ceutury Pope Innocence III instituted the Inquisition. The
purpose of the Inquisition was to ferret out and question infidels suspected of masquerading as
Christians. Spain had been exceptionally kind to the Jews. They were allowed to hold office
and acted as tax-collectors. But, as happened in every other country in Europe, the crimes of the
athiestic money-lenders, and their agents, were charged against the whole Jewish population.
Between 1475 and 1504 during the reign of Isabella and Ferdinand, the Inquisition was used
extensively to locate and destroy all traitors who plotted to overthrow the power of the Church
and State. The Inquisitors under Torquemada discovered the subversive underground to be so
widespread and well-organized that in 1492 Spain followed the example of other European
countries and expelled all the Jews. This task provided the opportunity for some extremists to
organize mob violence against the Jews and several extensive and regrettable massacres took
place. These illegal killings were condemned publicly by the Church authorities in Rome.
After the international bankers re-organized during the 1600s, their agents infiltrated into the
Spanish Treasury Department. They were exceptionally active during both the English and the
French revolutions, trying to destroy the Spanish economy in order to prepare the way for
revolutionary efforts in that country also.
It is worth while to study the political intrigue that went on in Spain from 1839 to 1939 because
it gives a clear picture of the pattern of the ultimate subjugation of all countries. There are three
steps in all revolutionary efforts.
First: Infiltration by the agents of the revolutionary party into the government, civil services,
armed forces, and labour organizations in order to be in position to destroy the government from
within when the order to revolt is given.
Second: The affiliation of the revolutionary party with the socialist or liberal party left of centre
in order to overthrow the established government regardless of whether it is a monarchy or a
republic.
Third: Subversive activities to bring about anarchy in order to discredit the Popular Front
Government and provide the excuse for forming a proletarian dictatorship. Once this is
established purges turn it into a totalitarian dictatorship as it happened in Russia in 1917.
Karl Marx’s agents organized Spain’s first General Political Strike in 1865. In 1868 the
Directors of the World Revolutionary Movement (W.R.M.) sent Senor Fanelli to Spain to
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (1 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:26William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
affiliate the Anarchists with the Marxist revolutionaries. Fanelli was a close friend of Bakhunin
who was a close associate of Marx and Engels. In 1870 Bakhunin fell out with Marx over
Policy. He was expelled from the First International of the W.R.M. [2]
In 1872 Bakhunin influenced the Spanish revolutionary leaders into forming the Socialist-
Democratic Alliance. [3] The Spanish government decreed Bakhunin’s extremist organizations
illegal, but they continued to exist underground. The Grand Orient Lodges formed convenient
headquarters. At a congress held in Zargoza the Spanish section of the Marxist International
agreed to ally themselves with the Anarchist International. After its affiliation, both groups
concentrated in organizing the various Labour Groups into a vast ‘Carnorra.’ They crowned
their combined efforts with a revolution which produced the first Spanish Republic in 1873.
The effort on the part of the revolutionary leaders was accompanied with the usual Reign of
Terror. Anarchy ran wild. All kinds of excesses took place. Finally, General Pavia brought off
a ‘Coup d’Etat’ and the revolutionaries went underground again.
In order to emerge into the open once more, the members of the revolutionary underground
supported the leaders of a mild ‘liberal’ movement to obtain political power. The revolutionary
leaders used the quarrel going on between those who claimed the descendants of Don Carlos
should occupy the throne, and those who claimed the descendants of Isabella should reign, to
start a Civil War. This war ended with the defeat of the Carlist Group in 1876. [4]
The Spanish workers really desired to organize for their own protection, but the majority did not
agree with the extreme policy advocated by the Anarchists. The anti-revolutionaries therefore
organized the “Workers Association.” These moderates were immediately set upon by both
revolutionaries and employers of labour alike. [5] This persecution continued until 1888 when,
at the suggestion of Pablo Iglesias, the moderate group adopted the name “The Workers General
Union” which became known in Spain as the U.G.T. The members of this organization did not
get much support until after the government outlawed the Iberian Anarchist Federation.
The syndicalist elements collaborated with the radical republican party until 1908. They then
formed the ‘Solidaridad Obrera’, and, two years later, in 1910, they rounded the Regional
Federation of Labour known in Spain as the C.R.T. Immediately afterwards they formed the
National Federation of Labour (C.N.T.).
In 1913 both the C.R.T. and the C.N.T. were suspended as the result of a series of strikes. The
government did not object to the principles of collective bargaining, but it did object to the
extremist policy, and revolutionary actions, of the leaders. So legitimate labour, striving for
social justice, found their organizations barred because the radical element always seemed able
to work its way into executive positions within the Unions.
The reaction was what the plotters of world revolution expected it would be. Their
revolutionary syndicalist movement greatly increased in power and acted against all political
parties, and against the State itself. The policy of these extremists was “direct action,”
advocated with the greatest heat and violence. In 1916 the C.R.T. was reorganized by Angel
Pestana and Salvador Segui. In 1918 these two labour leaders were able to form in Barcelona
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (2 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:26William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
the ‘Sole Syndicate’ generally known as ‘The One Big Syndicate.’
During World War I Spain, as a neutral country, made a vast amount of money but, generally
speaking, the labouring classes did not receive anything like a fair share of the national
prosperity. This fact was perhaps the deciding factor which drove the majority of the working
classes out of moderate labour organizations into the arms of the revolutionary leaders in the
extremist labour groups. However, the more moderate and level-headed labour leaders didn’t
give up the fight against the radical groups and as a result of their efforts, they brought into
being a new labour group known as “The Free Syndicate” in 1920. During the next three years
there was continuous strife going on between the Right and Left labour organizations. Local
strikes, general strikes, destruction of property, private assassinations to remove labour leaders,
wholesale murders to reduce the strength of opposing organizations. All these crimes were
committed in the name of liberty. By 1923 conditions became chaotic. To prevent the
Commumst Party bringing about another revolution the king of Spain asked General Franco to
become military dictator.
One of the first results of Primo de Rivera’s dictatorship was the successful termination of the
Moroccan War. It was during the final stages of this war that General France greatly
distinguished himself in the field. He turned what looked like a complete military defeat into a
brilliant victory. By tempering justice with mercy he won the admiration, and the loyalty, of
many of the Moroccan natives. It was thus he came to the notice of the general public in Spain,
Rivera is accused by General his enemies of doing everything a man shouldn’t do. It is only fair
to record that he did restore law and order; he brought about a number of social reforms; he co-
operated with Largo Caballero to improve working conditions. He worked so hard that only his
breakdown in health in 1929 can explain the errors in judgment he made during 1930.
Tired and worn out, and as if in a hurry to unburden himself of the responsibilities of office, he
called in two socialist leaders, Besteiro and Saborit. He charged them with the task of re-
organizing the electoral machinery of the nation so the people could decide whether they wanted
a monarchy or a republican government. Just why De Rivera appointed Besteiro and Saborit to
re-organize the electoral machine of Spain will probably never be known.
The two socialists rigged the election machinery so well a socialist-Republican Government
was assured. In Madrid alone the number of ficticious voters exceeded 40,000. [6] Similar
corruption existed in all the larger centres of population.
To ensured the end of the monarchy in Spain The Grand Orient Lodges organized a special
“Military Brotherly Union” by which they obtained the promise of twenty-one of the twenty-
three Spanish generals to support the Republican Cause. General Mola, who was Chief of the
Spanish Internal Security, in his book, Tempestad Calma Intriga Y Crisis informs us that the
generals were initiated into the Grand Orient and had one and a half million pesetas placed to
their credit, to help them escape abroard should the republican movement fail. Franco was one
of the two generals who refused to join the “Military Brotherly Union.” In support of Mola’s
statement, Cano Lopez sain on the floor of the Spanish Cortes (parliament): “Since 1925
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (3 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:26William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
masonry has grouped under the heading ‘Military Brotherly Union’ most of the high ranking
officials of the army. The members include Cabanellas, Sanjurjo, Goded, Mola, Lopez, Ochoa,
Queipo de Llana, and others... Of twenty-three divisional generals, twenty-one were masons...
All had taken the oath of the Grand Orient.” (I swear obedience without limitation to the Head
of the Council of Thirty-Three... I swear to acknowledge no mortal as above him.) Lopez
added: “Both in 1929, for the abolition of the dictatorship of de Rivera, and in 1931 for the
abolition of the monarchy, the Grand Orient issued the orders most of the other generals
obeyed.” [7]
General Mola tells how he, and most of the other generals, broke their oath to the Grand Orient
when they became convinced that they were being used to further the secret plans of Stalin to
turn Spain into another Communist dictatorship. [8]
The international bankers helped finance the revolutionary effort in Spain without becoming
involved themselves. In February 1932 Le Journal reports that Stalin promised $200,000 to
help finance the Revolutionary Training Schools in Spain.
The financial statements submitted to the 1931 congress of the Communist international
discloses the fact that £240,000 (English money) had been received to help the Spanish
Revolutionaries. [9]
In addition to the above, two and a half million pesetas were made available for the purchase of
arms and ammunition.
General Mola says that by 1938 over two hundred revolutionary leaders had arrived in Spain
after being trained in the Lenin Institute in Moscow.
From 1930 to the date of the election a campaign of L’Infamie was carried on against the king
of Spain and the royal family exactly as it was against Louis XVI and Marie Antoinette. One of
the most ridiculous lies ever invented claimed that one Spanish soldier was bled to death every
day to keep the Prince of Asturias alive. He was known to be suffering from haemophilia.
Other slanders accused the king of being a libertine, just as the Empress of Russia had falsely
been accused of being mistress to Rasputin.
The plugged ballots in the large industrial centres wiped out the strong rural vote in favour of
the monarchy. After the election had been declared to favour a repubilcan form of government,
King Alfonso XIII of Spain issued his last public proclaimation. It read as follows :
“The elections held on Sunday proved to me that I no longer hold the love and affection of my
people. My conscience tells me this condition will not be permanent because I have always striven
to serve Spain, and my people, with all my devotion. A king may make mistakes. Without doubt I
have done so on occasion, but I know our country has always shown herself generous towards the
faults of others committed without malice.
“I am the king of all Spaniards, and I am a Spaniard. I could find ample means to maintain my
royal prerogatives in effective resistance to those who assail them, but I prefer to stand resolutely
aside rather than to provoke a conflict which might array my countrymen against one another in
Civil War and patricidal strife.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (4 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:26William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
“I renounce no single one of my rights which, rather than being mine, are an accumulated legacy of
history for the guardianship of which I shall one day have to render strict account. I shall wait the
true and full expression of the collective conscience and, until the nation speaks, I deliberately
suspend the exercise of my royal powers and am leaving Spain, thus acknowledging that she is sole
mistress of her destinies. Also now I believe that I am fulfilling the duty which the love of my
country dictates. I pray God that all other Spaniards may feel and fulfill their duty as sincerely as I
do.” [10]
Many of the Socialists who formed the Spanish republican government in 1931 were sincere in
their beliefs. They wanted no part of “Red” Communism or “Black” Nazism. But they were
proved to be powerless to prevent the Communists and Anarchists from putting the second part
of their revolutionary programme into effect.
The tactics the revolutionary leaders employed were to double-cross the Socialists at every
opportunity. Red Cells within the government caused the government to commit some foolish
mistakes. The Reds outside then damned the government as a lot of incompetent, corrupt,and
inefficient nincompoops. The Communists, and Anarchists, claimed only a dictatorship of the
proletariat could establish a stable government. The agents of Moscow committed evey
conceivable kind of crime to bring those responsible for internal security into disrepute also.
General De Rivera had used Largo Caballero a great deal to iron out differences between labour
and employers during the years he had been dictator. With the advent of the republican
movement Largo Caballero showed his true colours. By 1935 Caballero openly boasted that he
had placed “Tens of thousands of Communist Cells throughout Spain.”
At the Eleventh Plenum of the Executive of the Communist International, the Spanish delegates
were showered with congratulations because “The prerequisites of a revolutionary crisis are
being created at a rapid rate in Spain.” [11]
At the Twelth Plenum the wording of the congratulations to the Spanish delegates was as
follows: “In Spain, in paticular, we have been able to observe such revolutionary strike
struggles going on uninterruptedly over period of many months as the Spanish proletariat has
never experienced before. What is happening in these struggles is, above all, the further
development of a Spanish Revolution.”
There is an old saying “When thieves disagree the truth will come out.” That is exactly what
happened in Spain. The three leaders of Moscow’s underground in Spain were Joaquin Maurin,
Victor Serges, and Andres Ninn. They were all young men. They had all received special
training in revolutionary activities in the Lenin Institute in Moscow before being entrusted with
the leadership in Spain. Maurin had been mixed up in the Separatist movement in Catalonia
since he was sixteen years of age. At the mature age of seventeen this intellectual thinker had
set out to teach the Spanish people the Soviet solution of the world’s economic troubles. At the
age of twenty-one he was elected head of the Anarchists. He preached and practised the
religion of hate and violence. In 1914 he was condemned to twenty years’ imprisonment but he
was not of legal age for such a penalty. Maurin was a delegate to the Third Congress of the
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (5 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:26William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
Communist International held in Moscow, 1921. He attracted favourable attention.
With the fall of Primo De Rivera, Maurin returned to Spain. He had been hiding out in France
and Moscow. He had lived a hectic life. He had been in and out of jail; had escaped from
prison; been wounded in 1925; confined in Citadel Montjuich, etc., etc. It is said the only
period of peace he enjoyed in his life was the three years he and his young wife spent in Paris,
1927-30.
Maurin wrote a book in 1936. Victor Serges wrote the preface to it. In this book Hacia la
Segunda Revolucion he exposed the fact that Stalin had departed from the Marxian ideology and
charged he was using the forces of Communism to forward his own secret totalitarian
imperialistic ambitions. [12]
Even after Maurin, Serges, and Ninn broke openly with Stalin in 1936, their power and
influence amongst the working classes was so great that Stalin ordered that they should be
allowed to live until they had served their purpose. Stalin used them right up to the beginning
of the Civil War in Spain. Then he ordered them liquidated. He directed that “Their deaths
shall be accomplished in such a manner as to make it appear to the public that all three had died
as martyrs to the Communist Cause.” Maurin was betrayed to Fraco’s forces and after trial was
executed. Serges is reported to have been shot by Loyalists while fighting, and Ninn was also
disposed of. Their deaths were loudly attributed to acts of violence by the enemies of
communism.
Victor Serges wrote “The evolution of Soviet Communism was completed in 1936... from
revolutionary internationalism to a nationalism of great military power served, in various
countries, by parties which it subsidized. After July 1936 the Stalinites formed the unified
Socialist Party affiliated with the Third International... and the object of Stalinism is to establish
the new power of a Fascist nature to encircle France, the probable ally of Russia, IN THE WAR
THAT IS being prepared.”
Then again Maurin says : “The traditional policy of England is to ruin its adversaries, so as then
to pose as the Protector and to render impossible the renaissance of the conquered vassal. Spain
is primarily the victim of England and, next in order, of France. When Spain hesitates England
and France attacks her strongly. If she inclines towards England, France increases the
persecution. So long as France and England are capitalistic countries they will not have to be
the natural ally to Spain. [13] The Logical line would be the curve through Portugal, Germany,
Italy and Russia. A bloc of this nature would neutralize France and England.” [14]
Serges explained how so much Loyalist propaganda found its way into the universal press,
while so little space was given to Franco’s releases. Serges wrote: “Never has there been
brought into play, the one against the other, such low and demoralizing methods as those used
by Stalin and his instrument, the Third International, in a continuous stream of propaganda at
long range and without heed for the truth. The method of repetition and cynicism have become
almost mechanical ... The Soviet bureaucracy is plotting this procedure on an international
scale. Every infamy given out by a correspondent of Izvestia at Valentia is at once taken up in a
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (6 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:26William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
chorus by the special papers in Paris, Stockholm, Oslo, Brussels, London, New York,
Melbourne and Buenos Aires... Millions of copies of infamous lies are circulated, they are the
only information millions of Soviet workers receive. English, American, Chinese, and New
Zealand papers reproduce these lies (by order). Advanced intellectuals, who think they are anti-
Fascist, will appear to believe them. One sees that a formidable enterprise of demoralization is
functioning in the universe, and I find pitilessly just, the words of Trotsky, that the Stalinite
Comintern propaganda is a Syphilis of the Workers Movement.” [15]
What Maurin and Serges wrote in 1336 only confirms what Pope Pius XI said in his encyclical
“Divini Redemptoris” issued in March 1937. One chapter of this famous document reads :
“There is another explanation for the rapid diffusion of Communistic ideas... A propaganda truly
diabolical that the world has perhaps never witnessed its like before. It is directed from one
common centre; it is shrewdly adapted to the varvious conditions of diverse peoples; it has at its
disposal vast financial resources, innumeratble organizations, international congresses; and
countless trained workers; it makes use of newspapers, and pamphlets, cinema, theatre, radio, and
schools and even universities. Little by little it penetrates into the minds of all classes of the
people. Another powerful factor is the suppression and silence on the part of a large section ... of
the press of the world ... we say suppression because it is impossible otherwise to explain how a
press, usually so eager to exploit even the little daily incidents of life, has been able to remain silent
for so long about the horrors perpetrated in Russia, in Mexico, and even in a great part of Spain;
and that it should have so little to say concerning a world organization as vast as Russian
Communism. The silence is due in part to short-sighted political policy and is favoured by various
occult forces which for a long time have been working for the overthrow of the Christian social
order.
“The sorry effects of this propaganda is before our eyes. Communism has striven, as its champions
openly boast, to destroy Christian civilization and the Christian religion by banishing every
remembrance of them from the hearts of men, especially of the young... In Spain, as far as possible,
every church and monastery was destroyed and every vestige of the Christian religion eradicated.
The theory has not confined itself to the indiscriminate slaughter of bishops, and thousands of
priests and religious of both sexes; it searches out above all those who have been devoting their
lives to the working classes and the poor. The majority of victims have been laymen of all
conditions and classes ... with a hatred and a savage barbarity one would not have believed possible
in our age. No man of good sense, nor statesman conscious of his responibility, can fail to shudder
at the thought that what is happening to-day in Spain may be repeated to-morrow in other civilized
countries. For man some restraint is necessary, as an individual or in society... But tear the idea of
God from the hearts of men, and they are urged by their passions to commit the most atrocious
barbarities.”
We will proceed to review the conditions in Spain to which Pope Pius XI tried to draw the
attention of the Christian world early in 1937, and failed.
_______________________
1 This refers to the advice sent by the Sanhedrin in Constantinople to Chemor, Rabbi of Arles in Provence in 1489
mentioned previously.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (7 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:26William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
2 For further particulars see Bakhunin by Professor E.H. Carr.
3 For details regarding this period of Spanish History read La Quiebra Fraudulenta de la Republica by C. Domi.
4 This is a typical example of how any situation is used to divide the citizens of a nation and get them fighting each
other on the principle that all wars pave the way for revolution.
5 This is a typical example of how the agents of the International Bankers are placed in private and responsible
enterprise for the purpose of helping their revolutionary leaders to oust moderate leaders they cannot buy or
otherwise control.
6 See The Spanish Arena, p. 56.
7 See Jean Dauraya L’Oeuvre Latine January, 1937.
8 What General Mola said was confirmed by a broadcast over the radio from Moscow on March 13, 1938. The
announcer was explaining why the Civil War wasn’t going in favour of the Communists (Loyalists). He said: “The
great work in Spain was seriously compromised by the wicked generals breaking their plighted word to the Grand
Orient.”
9 Evidence is given elsewhere to prove the revolutionary leaders were supplying counterfeit English Bank Notes to
finance revolutionary efforts in other countries also.
10 This document proves that the International Press lied to their readers when it reported The King of Spain had
abdicated. The King of Spain never abdicated. Franco holds control of Government because the International
conspirators are still determined to turn Spain into a Totalitarian Dictatorship to serve their ends).
11 See English edition of report of Eleventh Plenum, p. 11, and Twelth Plenum, p. 37.
12 Even Maurin and Serges failed to suspect that Lenin and Stalin were only carrying out the orders of the
international bankers, who in turn obey the Illuminati.
13 Here again is a typical example of how well the International Bankers kept their secret. Maurin blamed the
Governments of England and France for the international crimes perpetrated against humanity by the Bankers,
under the direction of the Illuminati.
14 This confirms what has been previously stated, that once the Sphere of Influence was established between the
35th and 45th parallel, the countries within the circle would be subjugated.
15 Victor Serges in Maurin’s Revolution et Contre-Revolution en Espagne.
C HAPTER T HIRTEEN
The Civil War In Spain
General Mola said: “Following the election of the Socialist government in Spain, and the king’s
withdrawal from the country, there was an absolute avalanche of public officials who rushed to
the Grand Orient Lodges to request entry. They thought they could thus be free of the
persecution which had been practiced by the majority of Masons in the government. Their
purpose was to give evidence of their republicanism and to prevent the certainty of having their
careers ruined.”
Immediately after the king had left, Franco told the Military Academy, of which he was then in
charge, “The republic has been proclaimed in Spain. It is the duty of all at the present time to
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (8 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:26William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
co-operate with their discipline and allegiance so that peace may reign and the nation be
permitted to direct itself through the natural judicial channels. Hitherto, at the Academy, there
has always been discipline and exact fulfilment of duty. To-day these qualities are even more
necessary; the Army needs, serenely, and with a united spirit, to sacrifice every thought of
ideology to the good of the nation and the tranquility of the fatherland.” The wording of this
proclamation shows Franco to be anything but a “Black” Nazi which Communist propaganda
would have the public believe him to be.
But the Secret Powers were not willing to give the republican government a chance to operate in
an efficient and democratic way. Churchill wrote: “The Communists helped set it up so they
could knock it down again and create more political and economic chaos, until they had the
country, and the people, in such a state that the leaders could advocate with reason, that only a
proletarian dictatorship could restore law and order and save the day.”
Having overthrown the monarchy in Spain, the next logical move was to attack the religion of
the people. Secularism was introduced into the schools. A campaign was launched to destroy
parental authority and that of the Church. Having created thousands of anti-religious, and anti-
social young Bolsheviks, it was only necessary to await the opportunity to turn the masses loose
against the forces of law and order in a well-planned revolt.
On May 14th, 1931, a meeting was held in the Ateneo Club, in Madrid, to discuss the new
political programme.
Its eight points were :
1. Creation of a republican dictatorship.
2. Immediate punishment of all responsible for illegal acts under the dictatorship.
3. Disbanding the Civil Guard, the Army, and the police, etc., and the substitution of armed
republicans chosen from the labouring classes and Republican Clubs.
4. Confiscation of property of religious orders.
5. Nationalization of land.
6. Suppression of all press agencies hostile to the Republican cause.
7. Utilization of technical schools and other buildings for the public good.
8. Postponement of the Cortes until this programme had been carried out.
Azana, an intellectual Liberal; Prieto — a socialist; and Caballero, a Communist, were three of
the most prominent political leaders at this time. Azana, with his tongue in his cheek, publicly
opposed such radical suggestions, although he secretly approved. When elected to power he put
the programme into effect.
In due course the ‘Cortes Constituyentes’ was elected. Under the excuse of “Law for the
defence of the Republic”, a ruthless dictatorship was set up — The only democratic feature
about it was its name “the Republic of the Workers”. A Moscow trained revolutionary, Jiminez
Asua drafted the new Constitution. [1] Azana now concentrated his entire efforts on destruction
of the churches and persecution of religious orders. In December 1932, he set up the “League
of Atheism”. He financed its periodical ‘Sin Dios’ (The Godless), out of public funds. All
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (9 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:26William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
these moves were made in the name of democracy. The leaders told the people they were being
liberated from the control of the religious orders, and the clergy who, they said, were allied to
feudalism and tyrannical monarchs.
In Catalonia the revolutionary activities which General Prime, de Rivera had subdued broke out
again. By January 1933, the London Morning Post correspondent reported “Huge stocks of
bombs, rifles, and ammunition are being found by the police all over Spain. An enormous
amount of money is being spent to foster the revolutionary cause. Many of those arrested,
though to all appearances not well paid, carried note-cases full of bank-notes.” [2]
Next an uprising in Asturia was organized, and on September 14th, 1934 a report was issued
which implicated war officials and army officers in the sale of Arms.
General Franco made a desperate effort to try to re-organize the Spanish Army and put an end to
Anarchy, but he obtained little support from government authorities. To indicate how well the
Communist underground was organized, over three hundred churches were set afire at exactly
the same time in a hundred different cities and towns. The assassination of individuals the
revolutionaries wanted removed, became so common that ‘Professional Pistoleros’ became
competitive. It was possible to have an enemy liquidated for 50 pesetas (a little more than $5.00
American). The Moscow agents used the confused conditions existing in Spain to carry out
Lenin’s mandate: “The Communist legal Code is to base terrorism on fundamental principles.”
[3]
Torture, mutilation, rape, burnings, bloodshed, and death, were the methods by which
Communism tried to obtain power. Conditions deteriorated from bad to worse. By the
beginning of 1936 the whole country was in a state of turmoil. President Alcala Zamora
dissolved the Cortes. February 16th was set as the date for a general election. Gil Robles, and
Calvo Sotelo, stamped the country on a straight anticommunist ticket. Bolshevik election
propaganda was issued by ‘The Friends of Russia’.
Largo Caballero was in prison at this time for the part he had played in a revolutionary
uprising. He was interviewed by Mr. Edward Knoblaugh who afterwards wrote “Correspondent
in Spain”.
Caballero said : “We will win at least 265 seats. The whole existing orders will be overturned.
Azana will play Kerensky to my Lenin. Within five years the republic will be so organized that
it will be easy for my party to use it as a stepping stone to our objective. A union of the Iberian
Republics ... that is our aim. The Iberian Peninsula will again be one country. Portugal will
come in peaceably we hope, but by force if necessary. YOU SEE BEHIND THESE BARS THE
FUTURE RULER OF SPAIN . Lenin declared Spain would be the second Soviet Republic in
Europe. Lenin’s prophecy will come true. I shall be the second Lenin who shall make it come
true.”
After the most completely dishonest election Spain ever endured, President Zamora wrote :
“The Popular Front was hoisted into power on the 16th of February, thanks to an electoral
system as absurd as it is unfair, which gives an extraordinary advantage to a relative majority
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (10 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:26William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
though absolutely it may be a minority. Thus in a certain constituency the Popular Front with
30,000 votes less than the opposition was nevertheless able to win ten seats out of thirteen,
though in no part of the constituency did the number of votes exceed those of its major
adversary by more than 2 per cent. Paradoxical cases of this kind were fairly common.”
In spite of the illegal means employed, first count only gave the Popular Front 200 seats out of a
possible 465. Thus it became the largest minority group in the parliament, but did not have
enough seats to form a government. The next move was for the Popular Front members to join
forces with the Basque, and other minority groups. They elected a Committee to verify the
election returns in each constituency. They made sure the final returns were favourable to the
Popular Front Party. In several cases Rightist candidates were disqualified and Popular Front
candidates were elected as deputies in their place. When the “fixing” was all over the Popular
Front had the 265 seats Caballero predicted they would have... But even after all this had
happened, the final breakdown of the votes showed : —
For ‘Centre’ and ‘Right’ parties ........... 4,910,000
For the ‘Popular Front’ .......................... 4,356,000
‘Right Centre’ majority : 554,000
It must be understood that Popular Front candidates elected to the Spanish Cortes represented
every kind of individual from the very mild socialist to the dyed-in-the-wool Bolshevik.
The Stalinites created so much chaos that hellish conditions broke out all over Spain. Previous
to the February elections in 1936 the governmental record in Spain was as follows :
From the end of the Prime de Rivera dictatorship in 1931 there had been one revolution with
2,500 persons killed, seven revolts, 9,000 strikes, five prorogations of the budget, two billion
pesetas increase in charges, 1,000 municipalities suspended, 114 newspapers forbidden, two and
a half years of “States of Exception” (equivalent to our state of martial law). After six weeks of
popular front government under Azana, Caballero, and Prieto the record read : —
Assaults and robberies : At Political headquarters, 58; At public and private establishments,
105; At churches, 36. Fires : At political headquarters, 12; Public and private establishments,
60; Churches, 106. Disturbances: General strikes, 11; Risings and revolts, 169; Persons
killed, 76; Wounded, 346.
Caballero, speaking at Zaragoza, said : “Spain must be destroyed in order to remake it ours. On
the day of vengeance we will leave not a stone upon a stone.”
Caballero also declared : “Before the elections we ask for what we want. After the elections we
will take what we want by any means. ‘The Right’ must not expect mercy from the workers.
We shall not again spare the lives of our enemies.”
Azana declared happily, “Spain has ceased to be Catholic”.
Communist leader, Marguerita Nelken, announced “We demand a revolution. But even the
Russian kind will not serve us. We need flames that will be seen throughout the planet, and
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (11 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:26William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
waves of blood that will redden the seas.”
The Times correspondent reported conditions in Barcelona. In February 1936, he said : “A
vigilance committee warned a number of high officials on February 20th to relinquish their
posts. The committee was obeyed.” A month later he wrote : “The Dictatorship of the
Proletariat is now the open aim of all the Reds.” A little later he wrote : “Spanish Socialism
had been drifting towards Communism. It is among the younger generation that Marx and
Lenin have gained most of their disciples. These young people believe that the conquest of
power is the immediate requirement of Spanish Socialism; violence the ultimate means of
getting it; and a dictatorship of the proletariat the only way to retain it. The subversive doctrine
is preached untiringly.” In March 1936 he reported : “Deputies in the Cortes (Spanish
Parliament) with clenched fists, in Communist salute, sang the Soviet national anthem,
L’Internationale, in the House itself.”
Why did the youth of Spain turn in great numbers to Communism ? If the technique used by
those who direct the W.R.M. is to be understood the answer must be found, because it is from
the labouring classes, and the youth of the nation, that the revolutionary leaders draw their
shock troops.
Investigation reveals that Azana represented himself as an intellectual with a sincere belief in
Socialism. He was openly anti-religious. He protested, however, that he was not in agreement
with the terrorism advocated and carried out by the Anarchists and the Communists. Once he
obtained the necessary political power, however, he used it to have the republican government
abolish religious teaching orders from the schools. He engaged Francisco Ferrer to establish
secularism in the schools. Instead of opening the school day with a prayer to Almighty God, the
new secular teachers opened the classes by having the pupils sing :
“We are the sons of the revolution
We are the sons of liberty.
With us comes the dawning
Of a new humanity.”
A translation of another ‘Hymn’ sung at the beginning and end of class periods in Barcelona
schools is as follows :
“Sling the bomb; place well the mine; grasp firm the pistol,
Pass on the word of revolution ... Help for the Anarchists.
Stand to arms till death; with petrol and dynamite destroy the government.”
The news editors of British and American papers refused to publish the truth because it sounded
so fantastic. Very similar ‘Hymns’ were broadcast in English from Moscow for the instruction
of English Communists during 1937-38.
The most damning evidence, proving the systematic method used to subvert, and pervert, youth
into becoming revolutionaries, was supplied by Francisco Ferrer himself. In a letter to a
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (12 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:26William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
revolutionary comrade he wrote :
“In order not to scare people and give the government (republican) a pretext for closing down
my establishments I call them ‘Modern Schools’, and not schools for Anarchists. My wish is to
bring about the revolution. For the time being, however, one must be content to implant the
idea of violent upheaval in the minds of the young. They must learn that against the police, and
the clergy, there is only one means of action... bombs and poison.” [4]
When Ferrer was captured by Franco’s forces during the Civil War he was tried as a traitor to
Spain. The above letter was used as evidence. He was found guilty and executed. The High
Council of the Grand Orient of Paris protested to Masonic Lodges all over the world claiming
that Ferrer had been murdered because of his Anti-Catholic activities.
Investigation into the youth training programme revealed the methods used to corrupt the
morals of the youth of a nation also. Lenin had said : “The best revolutionary is a youth devoid
of morals.” His word being law in Communist organizations, all members work secretly to
make young people of both sexes anti-social and immoral.
Children up to teen-age are taught to rebel against the discipline of the home. Parents are
represented to their children as old-fashioned. Parental authority is scoffed at. The subverters
argue that parents have lied to their children since they were old enough to listen, regarding
Santa Claus, and where babies come from. The subversives claim parents are the victims of
reactionary teachings and capitalistic exploitation. The child is encouraged to educate the
parents in regard to modern and progressive ideas. They are warned that, for their own good,
they must refuse to be dominated or disciplined by their parents. The purpose of this subversive
campaign is to destroy the sanctity, and unity, of the home which is the foundation upon which
our civilization is founded.
To rob children of their respect for the ministers of religion the subversives first represent them
as being chosen from the less intelligent or physically retarded members of families. They are
ridiculed as spineless ‘holy joes’, ‘womanish do-gooders’, and servants of the ruling classes.
Quoting from Marx, children are told : “Religion is the opium of the people, because it teaches
acceptance of poverty, sickness, and hard work as good for the soul.”
The Christian child is poisoned against the ministers of his religion by being told the most
fantastic slanders against them in connection with their private lives. They are presented as
‘sheep in wolves clothing’; as ‘black crows’ feeding upon the gullibility of their parishoners.
If, as often happens, a minister or priest does become involved in a scandal it is played up for all
it is worth.
The Christian religion is ridiculed in a most nauseating manner. Christ is represented as the
illegitimate son of Mary, a young Jewess, who, in order to save her face, hoaxed Joseph into
believing she had been conceived by the Holy Ghost. Christ as an adult is depicted as a faker.
His miracles are said to be illusions cleverly performed as magicians perform them to-day. The
twelve Apostles are said to have been his accomplices. The so-called comic “Mandrake The
Magician” is often used to illustrate how a hypnotist and magician can fool the public.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (13 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:26William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
One favourite story told Christian children is that Christ was a bootlegger at a very early age.
Subversives claim he pretended to work a miracle at the marriage feast of Cana in order to sell
his bootleg wine. They even accused Christ, and all Roman Catholics, of being cannibals.
They support their arguments with the biblical quotation that Christ admonished his followers
that unless they ate his flesh, and drank his blood, they could not have eternal life.
Teen-aged youths are introduced to companions who teach them liberalism which is soon turned
to licentiousness. They are taught the Anarchist conception of life. The less laws, the better.
Do as you like. According to subversive teachers, there is only one sin and that is disobedience
to orders given by authorized leaders. There are only two crimes — neglect of duty and
betrayal of party secrets.
The next step is to lead anti-social youth into actual conflict with the police. They start them off
by linking them up with some ‘gang’. Young Communist leaders egg the other members on.
They dare them to do things outside the law. They force them into fights to prove their physical
courage. They inveigle them into petty crime and then lead them deeper into the jungle of the
Communist organized underworld. [5]
The publication of Crime and Sex Comics is part of the Communist psychological warfare.
These Comics are calculated to awaken in children hidden and suppressed sadistic tendencies
and to weaken the moral armour of children who are otherwise normal. Any ‘professor’ who
claims Crime and Sex Comics do not influence children in the way the Illuminati wants them to
go is either a fool or a knave.
Toy guns, soldiers, revolvers, movies, with plenty of crime and shooting, are all calculated to
break down the finer feelings of normal Christian children and acclimatize them to the use of
weapons, scenes of violence, and sudden death.
Pornographic books, and magazines are circulated profusely at low prices, because such
literature is calculated to destroy the thin veneer of virtue and respectability which civilized
Christian moral codes have caused us to develop.
Few people realize the important part modern movies play in subverting youths away from their
homes, their country, and their religion. Many movies show an hour of film in which the
criminals and bad men and women do everything that is forbidden by our laws and moral code
and devote one minute during which the law catches up with them, or they die because of their
sins. Films taken of actual fighting during the Mexican revolution in 1913 were shown in
Galveston, Texas. The sight of seeing men killed in battle, or being dragged from their homes
and slaughtered by revolutionaries caused women to scream and faint, and men to vomit.
Public opinion caused the showings, to be prohibited. To-day these scenes are shown on films
advertised as “Children’s Special” for Saturday afternoon performances. That is just one
illustration of how the general public, and particularly the children, have been systematically
hardened to accept the sight of violence and bloody death as normal. It supports the
revolutionary motto that “Much needed reforms can only be brought about speedily by
revolutionary action.”
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (14 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:26William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
In every country not subjugated to date the directors of the World Revolutionary Movement
have set up private Film Agencies which supply the most obscene pictures imaginable for
presentation to private parties. These films illustrate every form of sexual depravity known to
man. They are used for the purpose of demoralizing youth so they can be recruited into
revolutionary organizations. This statement is proved by the fact that the laws barring them in
the USSR are strictly enforced.
Youths who prove themselves to be anti-social, anti-religious, hardened, and brutalized, are sent
to Moscow and taught “Revolutionary Warfare, and the Art of Street Fighting”. This is a
different course from that given prospective labour leaders and intellectuals.
Revolutionary psychological warfare is accomplishing its purpose in the Western World as it
did in Spain. This is proved by the fact that no person loses any sleep nowadays when the last
thing they hear before going to bed is a recital of the details of air disasters, automobile
accidents, crimes, and brutal slayings. A night-cap of that kind would have been too strong to
induce sleep fifty years ago.
Public opinion is no longer aroused to action when the newspapers blandly report that several
thousand Jews were systematically exterminated in gas chambers by anti-Semitics, or that ten
thousand Christians were martyred because of their anti-Communist convictions by Béla Kun or
Chinese sadists. Such horrors are now accepted as every day occurrences. We are being
rendered immune to the reactions we once experienced when violence of any kind came to our
attention. We no longer are disturbed by the overthrow of established governments by force. If
we were, we would have done something to stop what has been going on. People listen to those
who continually cry, as they did in Spain, “Communism can never cause a revolution here”.
They listen to those who give them a sense of false security. The majority of citizens are like
children, who hide their heads under the blankets when they fear danger. It should be
remembered that pulling the bedclothes over one’s head never saved a person from an assassin,
a rapist, or an exploding bomb.
A few illustrations will show how psychological warfare worked in Spain. We must remember
always that Lenin said : “Part of the training of all revolutionary youths must consist of robbing
a bank, blowing up a police station and the liquidating of a traitor or a spy.” Not until a youth
has been drained dry of the milk of human kindness, and all feelings of sympathy, is he
considered qualified for party membership. This is a vastly different status from that of a
‘Fellow Traveller’.
As the day chosen for the revolt drew near in Spain, the purveyors of pornographic literature
and obscene pictures became so bold they took their stand at the entrances to churches and
offered their wares to the congregations going in and coming out. The outside covers of these
publications usually showed a picture of priests and nuns engaged in sexual high-jinks. Mr.
Edward Knoblaugh, [6] who is recognized as an authority on the Civil War in Spain, was so
struck by this anti-clerical campaign that he wrote : “Occasionally delegates of Protestant
clergymen came to Loyalist Spain to investigate stories they had read of anticlerical activities.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (15 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:26William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
These delegations were warmly received. Great pains were taken to convince them they had
been badly misled. Special guides were detailed to show them around. They saw only what the
Communist authorities wanted them to see. After a day or two they were hustled home, suitably
impressed.”
But one day there was a slip up. A delegation of clergymen stopped at a book-stall to admire
some rare old volumes. Before the guide could prevent it they saw also copies of “La Traca”
and “Bicharracos Clericales”. The covers portrayed priestly orgies with semi-naked nuns. Both
magazines were profusely illustrated with obscene pictures. Mr. Knoblaugh commented : “The
delegates left in a huff”.
The situation in Spain between 1923 and 1936 was very similar to that which exists in Canada
between the French and English speaking population to-day. The Basque people have their own
language, culture, and traditions, which date back into antiquity. They are deeply religious and
very proud. Like many French Canadians they believed they deserved National Independence.
To achieve this objective they organized a separatist movement to liberate the Basque people
from the rest of Spain. As was only natural, the plotters of the revolutionary movement in Spain
didn’t overlook such a situation. The Basque people were devout Roman Catholics. They
believed they were justified in fighting for political independence if necessary. The vast
majority however, would never have knowingly affiliated with the Communist Party to achieve
their goal. Yet that is exactly what happened. Marxist ‘Cells’ infiltrated into Basque society.
They hid their real identity so well, they became the leaders of the “Separatists”. Then, like the
Judas Goat, they led the Basques to slaughter. Operating under the banners of intense
patriotism and religious fervour, the Basque leaders, President Aguirre, Gird, and Negrin,
blended and beat into an unbelievable mass, Christ’s cross, the pistol of Anarquism, and the
sickle and hammer of Communism. Then, when the revolt started, the masses were abandoned
to their fate. Aguirre was head of the Basque State and generalissimo of the Basque armies. He
sat in his office in Bilbao, while hundreds of Catholic priests and other leaders of Basque
society were systematically murdered. Their martyrdom naturally increased the hatred existing
between the Basques and Spain.
F.J. Olondriz wrote the foreword to the book The Red Persecution in the Basque Country,
written by José Echeandia. He said : “When the day arrived the Basque separatists, blind with
passion, many of them forgetting their faith, and their Catholic sentiments, felt closely and
firmly united to the Communists, to the Atheists, and to the Anarchists ... and they launched into
a war, and made themselves responsible for slaughter, and believed all means were licit,
rebelliously ignoring the peremptory words of their religious leader, Pope Pius XI, as contained
in his encyclical ‘Divini Redemptoris’ — Communism is intrinsically perverse, and it cannot be
admitted that those who wish to serve the Christian civilization may in any way co-operate with
it.” How well some of our top-level statesmen should have remembered those words of wisdom
when they tried to co-operate with Stalin during World War II. Another truth Government
leaders must never forget is the fact that Communists, and all other international groups, are
used by the Illuminati to further their own secret plans and ambitions.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (16 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
_________________________
1 Exactly as agents of the W.R.M. drafted the Federal Reserve Banking legislation in the U.S.A. 1910 and 1913
and the ‘Palestine Mandate’ in England in 1916.
2 Police seized 90,000 rifles; 33,000 revolvers; and 500,000 rounds of ammunition and a tremendous amount of
counterfeit money.
3 See The Bolshevik, October issue, 1930.
4 It was to finance Ferrer’s ‘Training Schools’ for youth that Moscow subscribed the $200,000 previously
mentioned. In Toronto in 1954 there were seventeen such ‘Training Schools’. There were several in Sudbury. All
big cities of population have them.
5 The sex orgy that took place in the Ford Hotel in Toronto, October 23, 1954, after the Red Feather Football game,
involved dozens of teen-agers of both sexes. It was a typical example of what Communist influence, secretly
exerted, can have on the youth of any nation.
6 Mr. Knoblaugh was a ‘Correspondent in Spain’. He published a book with that title.
C HAPTER F OURTEEN
Franco
To understand what happened in Spain in 1936, one must have at least a general idea of the type
of man Franco really is. Franco entered the Spanish army seriously intending to make it his
career. His life in the army reads like a romance. He distinguished himself after he was
appointed to the Spanish Legion. He turned the defeat inflicted on General Sylvestre by the
Moors, into final victory. Not only did he lead his troops fearlessly, but he inspired in them
great confidence because of his genius regarding strategy. He also earned the respect of his
foes, because of his military progress, and his sound administrative policies in Morocco. The
Moors finally looked upon him as almost divine. They came to call him “The Victorious”;
“Chief of Chiefs”; “Brave as a Lion”. The above facts explain why they rallied around him
when he asked for their loyalty in July 1936.
Franco is not spoken of as being popular with his brother generals. He did, however, have the
respect of most of them. It was this fact that prevented the Popular Front Government being
turned into a totalitarian dictatorship.
Azana, Caballero, and Carlos Prieto, dominated the Popular Front Government. Senor Gil
Robles, and Calvo Sotelo, led the Rightist opposition.
When Sotelo revealed in the “Cortes” that between February and June 1936 there had been 113
general strikes, 218 partial strikes, 284 buildings, 171 churches, 69 clubs and 10 newspapers
offices burned, and over 3,300 assassinations committed, Casares Quiroga, Premier at the time,
jumped to his feet and angrily retorted “You will be held personally responsible for the emotion
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (17 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
your speech will cause.”
Dolores Ibarruri, a Communist, named “Pasionaria” because of her inflammatory speeches and
fanatical actions, was a member of the Spanish Cortes. She jumped to her feet and, pointing her
finger at Sotelo, literally screamed : “That man has made his last speech.” She proved to be
right. On July 13th, 1936, Senor Calvo Sotelo was dragged from his home by fifteen Assault
Guards under command of Captain Don Angel Moreno. He was taken to a near-by churchyard
and murdered. It was this event that caused many of the Spanish generals to break their oath to
the Grand Orient and ask Franco to take over leadership in Spain. Dolores Ibarruri was a
Stalinist agent in Spain. She had been entrusted with the task of corrupting army officials,
organizing and directing raids on government armouries, and arming the revolutionary forces in
Spain. She performed her various tasks most efficiently.
Assault Guards raided the houses of many other prominent anti-communists following Sotelo’s
murder, but most of them had been warned and made their escape.
On the day of the elections in February 1936, General Franco telephoned General Pozas, who
was then in charge of the Civil Guard. He warned him that the Communists elected to the
Cortes planned to stir up mob violence in the hope that they could develop a revolutionary effort
for the purpose of over-throwing the republican government. General Pozas informed General
Franco that he thought his fears were exaggerated. General Franco next telephoned General
Molero, the Minister for War. He informed him of the threatening danger. Franco suggested
that he be allowed to declare Martial Law, Franco drew up the necessary orders which would
give him the authority to prevent excesses and mob violence. Only the signatures of the
Council of Ministers were necessary to enable him to preserve law and order, and protect the
republican government from revolutionary action. But Portela, who was then acting as premier,
pleaded that he was too old to put the Cabinet’s decision into practice. Franco retorted “You
have brought Spain to this sorry pass. It is your duty now to try and save her.”
General Franco was given orders to proceed to the Canary Islands. The order actually meant his
virtual exile from Spain.
Before he left, General Franco had a conference with Generals Mole, and Varela. They assured
him, they felt certain, that once the other generals who had joined the Grand Orient Military
Lodges, knew the truth, most of them would break with the Grand Orient and accept his
leadership. Before the meeting broke up a secret means of communication between Mola and
Franco had been arranged. Immediately Franco departed for the Canary Islands Stalin’s agents
renewed their activities.
On June 23rd, 1936, Franco wrote a long letter to the Minister for War in which he once again
pointed out specific dangers. [1] But these warnings were ignored as the others had been. It was
obvious that the Communist members of the republican government were able to dominate its
policy and actions.
The murder of Calve Sotelo on July 13th decided Franco. He sent a coded message to the
generals who were sworn to fight to save Spain from becoming a Russian satellite state.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (18 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
Amongst those Franco contacted were Mola, Goded, Fanjul, Sanjurjo, Saliquet, some officers of
the Spanish Navy, and Queipo de Llano. After the message was sent Franco flew from the
Canaries to Tetuan where he knew he could rely upon the loyalty of the Moroccan troops.
On July 21st, 1936 Franco issued his proclamation which defined the issue at stake in the least
possible number of words. It read : “It is the duty of every man to enter this definite struggle
between Russia and Spain.” Thus started the civil war. Professor Unamuno explained the issue
in even fewer words. He said : “It is a struggle of Christianity against barbarism.” He should
have said “Against Illuminism”.
Other evidence was obtained to prove that Stalin’s Comintern plotted to subjugate Spain to
bring about a total war between Britain and her allies, on the one side, and Germany and her
allies on the other. There is the report of the meeting of the Political Secretariat of the
Comintern which took place January 25, 1938. The purpose of the meeting was to discuss ways
and means to develop the revolutionary effort in Spain and North Africa. Attending the meeting
were representatives of the Profintern, and the Foreign branches of the G.P.U. (The Secret
Police). All of Moscow’s most experienced revolutionary leaders were present; Iejov, head of
the secret section of the Comintern; Georges Dimitrov of the Reichstag Fire infamy; head of
the League of the Godless, and the Free Thinkers League; the then Secretary of the Communist
International; Schick, Manuilsky, and Lozovsky of the Profintern; Popescu, Weintrauben,
Gourovitch, Liemann, Turrini, Adami, and Valdez, who represented the Soviet of Foreign
Affairs in the political bureau of the Comintern (These are the names of men who all took an
active part in spreading the sphere of Communist influence around the world in later years).
After the meeting opened Dimitrov gave a fiery speech. He denounced the lack of missionary
vigour among the special military envoys who had been sent to Spain to help corrupt the
Popular Front Government and direct the military operation of the Loyalist armies. Their action
he said : “Has not had sufficient stimulus, and revolutionary elan, on the general European
masses. The results obtained have not justified the heavy risks taken. THE PRINCIPAL
STRUGGLE, WHICH IS TO BRING ABOUT AN ARMED CONFLICT BETWEEN TWO GROUPS OF
CAPITALISTIC STATES, HAS NOT BEEN REACHED .” Then he went on to advocate “The Soviet
military commandant in Spain should pass under the control of the Comintern emissaries, like
the ambassadors, who know how to impregnate him with the necessary revolutionary feeling.” [2]
In the Civil War in Spain the propaganda issued at the time convinced the average person that a
small group of generals in Spain had organized a revolt to overthrow the Republican Popular
Front Government and establish a military dictatorship. The Popular Front Forces named
themselves Loyalists. Franco Forces called themselves Nationalists. The Loyalists were
comprised of all political factions Left of centre. The Nationalists contained all political
factions Right of Centre.
The Communists were divided into two groups ... those who intended to turn the Proletarian
Dictatorship into a Stalinist Totalitarian State, and those who wished to make the Spanish Soviet
a unit in the International of Soviet Republics as advocated by the Marxism theory. The
Nationalist Forces included men who had sponsored the Carlist movement which, ever since
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (19 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
1837, had had as its cause the restoration of the Spanish Throne to the descendants of Don
Carlos. The Carlists were located in the Navarre province and they supported Franco’s
Nationalist Army simply because they didn’t intend to tolerate Communism in Spain.
On the Right also were the Falangists, the extreme Rightists among whom there were
undoubtedly quite a number of the German type of Nazi who believed in using Total War to
subdue their Leftist enemies. With a situation of this kind it is understandable that those on the
Right accused all those on the Left of being Communists, while all those on the Left accused all
those Right of centre of being Fascist. Most horrible atrocities, including torture, mutilation,
rape, and the execution of thousands of innocent victims, were committed by the Communists
as part of the accepted pattern of the Reign of Terror. A few extremists on the Franco side
committed atrocities also. All civil wars seem to turn a great number of men into inhuman
brutes who descend below the level of brute beasts once the blood lust has been aroused in
them. Civil War cannot be justified. Those who advocate revolutionary wars should be
executed. The evidence goes to show that the king of Spain in 1931, and General Franco in
1936, did everything in their power to avoid fighting a civil war.
Franco did not call upon the citizens of Spain to rally around him until he had exhausted every
other means of preventing the Communist coup taking place on July 26th, 1936. The
professional Army in Spain had been reduced greatly in numbers. It had been replaced by a
National Police Force controlled by the Leftist government. It is extraordinary that Franco’s bid
to defeat the Communist plot did not fail, because post-war investigations revealed that in 1936
the armed forces were riddled with traitors, both officers and men, who had been placed in key
positions by the agents of Moscow working within the Popular Front Government in Spain. On
July 21st, 1936, the Moscow directed organization for taking over the government in Spain was
complete.
Franco knew that in one day Julio Alvarez del Vayo, who was Foreign Minister in the
republican government, and Commissar-General, appointed hundreds of political commissars to
the republican army. The majority of these men were Communists. Vayo did this without
consulting the Premier. The commissars compelled soldiers to join the Communist Party,
offering them advantages, and promotion, if they did, and they threatened persecution by every
means in their power if they did not. Luis Araqistain, ex-ambassador of the Spanish Republic in
Paris, published this fact in the New York Times May 19th, 1939. It was proved to be true.
Indalecio Prieto was Spanish Socialist deputy, and minister of National Defence, during the
Spanish Civil War. He helped direct the war against Franco. In a report published in Paris in
1939 entitled : “How and Why I left the Ministry of National Defence”, he said : “It is difficult
to be on guard because there are Communists occupying confidential positions who, so as to
avoid suspicion, are ordered to hide their affiliation, and sometimes ordered to conceal it by
joining other parties. Dr. Juan Negrin was one of these. He was one of the most powerful men
in Spain during the Civil War.” Prieto wrote of him : “Because I refused to obey orders from
Moscow, Juan Negrin expelled me from the government over which he presided on April 5th,
1938. I occupied the post of Minister of National Defence in his government. Two
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (20 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
simultaneous actions were initiated against me; one was entrusted to the Russian secret police,
and military men who operated in our country, and the other to the Spanish Communists ... The
Russians ordered and the Spanish Communists obeyed.”
Dr. Juan Negrin claims he was, and is, not a Communist, but it was he who ordered that 7,000
boxes of Spanish gold be delivered to Stalin. The boxes were loaded in the ships “Kine”,
“Neve”, and “Volgiles” — All three displayed the Soviet Flag. Jose Velasco, and Arturo
Candela, accompanied the shipments as persons of trust to Odessa. Everything was done
undercover and other members of the Popular Front government were not cognizant of the
situation. During Negrin’s term of office three Communists were appointed as under-secretaries
of defence, and thus were the true masters of the republican army, navy, and air force. [3]
Largo Caballero was a Communist but, when he refused to obey the order given him by
Moscow’s emissaries they overruled his orders even when he was serving his presidential term.
When he tried to rectify his own mistakes, he found it was too late. How Moscow’s agents in
foreign lands obtain such an absolute control of Leftist leaders is explained by Prieto. He
wrote : “The majority of the military commands of the Popular Front government were finally
occupied by Communists, and in their hands were the most important reins of power. How
could that phenomenon happen ? Through a system of coercion graduated between personal
advancement for those who bowed their heads, and the murder of those who rebelled.”
Theo Rogers in his “Spain; a Tragic Journey” makes reference to the capture of documents
which proved beyond doubt that a full scale revolution had been planned to break out in July
1936. Rogers wrote : “Discovery amongst militant Communists, and Anarchists, of documents
and plans, showed that a carefully schemed plot had been matured for an outbreak which would
upset even the central government in Madrid and establish a Soviet Dictatorship.” The Work of
the Illuminati.
Roger’s statement was proved to be true. Evidence was produced to prove that both General
Franco, and General Mola, knew as early as April 1936 that a Communist coup was planned
first for May 1st; then set back to June 29th; and then set back again to July 22nd. The delays
were ordered to give those who were entrusted with putting the plan of revolt into effect, more
time to complete the final necessary details.
The whole world should have known of the Moscow directed plot against Spain because the
final orders were intercepted while being passed by the Comintern to the leaders of the
revolutionary movement in Spain. The documents were given to the Echo de Paris, which
published them in April 1936. The Echo de Paris article reads :
“ TEXT OF INSTRUCTIONS FOR THE RED MILITIA ”
“These instructions to the heads of the Spanish Red Militia ... do not emanate from a Spanish
Central Organization, but from the Technical Services in Paris, which sent them to Spain at that
date. These Technical Services are those of the French Communist party, working in close co-
operation with the Comintern, and its delegates in France. The document, which we are publishing,
is in the hands of the government; we were not the parties who communicated it to them. We are
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (21 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
convinced that M. Daladier, Minister of War and Defence, has given orders for preventive
measures of defence, and protection, to be taken.”
The abbreviated text is as follows :
1. Reinforce shock troops and guards in barracks, and supply them with automatic pistols. These
shock troops and guards are members of the Communist party serving in the permanent forces and
reserves.
2. These troops will be placed in communication with the Groups who are to break into the
barracks. The latter will be in uniform, and under the orders of our officers in whom we have
complete confidence.
3. When the fight starts our officers will be given admittance with their groups secretly. They will
contact the respective committees and carry out the pre-arranged plan of attack inside the barracks.
4. The provisional committees, in the barracks, shall renew every two days, their lists of enemies,
neutrals, sympathizers, and experts. When the barracks have been taken over, those classed as
enemies, including in particular all commanders and officers, shall be rapidly eliminated, and
without hesitation.
5. Each member of the committees shall be provided with a list of the names of individuals who
are to be murdered by himself personally.
6. After the enemies have been disposed of, neutrals shall be subjected to severe teats in order to
kill in them any hesitation habitual in such undecided characters.
7. The committees handling the neutrals will make the necessary arrangements for the vigilance
groups outside to enter the barracks on the pretext of assisting to put down the rebellion.
8. This has little importance.
9. Those detailed to liquidate generals on the active list shall consist of ten men with revolvers.
The generals have two adjutants, and a secretary, who must be murdered in their own homes.
Those detailed to perform these killings shall not withdraw in face of any obstacle or opposition,
and they shall eliminate anyone who opposes them regardless of sex or age.
10. Those detailed to eliminate generals not holding command shall consist of three men groups
and shall carry out their duties as outlined in preceding paragraph.
11 and 12. Details how houses and sites, in strategic positions, must be procured by Communist
militants, and secretly armed and fortified in order to ambush troops who may succeed in escaping
from barracks. The instructions read : “As military officers have protected cars, groups of our
militants must proceed to strategic points such as cross-roads, in cars and trucks; armed with
machine guns so as to prevent help reaching those inside the cities. Lorries shall carry supplies of
grenades.”
13. Our militants shall quickly put on the uniform previously obtained and they shall be served
with rifles.
14. When the rebellion breaks out our militant groups, wearing uniforms of the Civil Guards, and
of the Assault Guard, and equipment already prepared for them, shall arrest all heads of all
political parties under pretext of the necessity of doing so for their personal protection. Once in
custody the procedure for the elimination of generals not holding command shall be carried out.
Uniformed groups shall also arrest and detain important capitalists whose names appear in
appendix "B" of Circular No. 32.
15. Violence shall not be used against these capitalists except if they resist; they shall however be
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (22 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
forced to hand over the balance of the current accounts at the banks, and their securities. In the
event of concealment they shall he completely eliminated, including their families, without
exception. It is desirable that Cells shall be worked in on their staffs as domestics, or mechanics, as
they can be very useful. [4]
16. Can be skipped.
17. With regard to members of the armed forces who claim to be sympathizers the same tactics
shall be followed as was done in Russia. First use their services and then eliminate them as
enemies. For our effort to be successful, and permanent, a neutral officer or man is better than one
who has betrayed his uniform because his life was in danger. It is likely he would betray us also if
provided with the opportunity.
18. Instructions to our militia regarding mobilization, movements of transportation, use of arms,
and marksmanship, must be intensified. [5]
19. Militia posted at cross roads must eliminate all defeated troops trying to escape.
20. Machine gun posts shall be located in premises which cover the front and rear of all armouries,
police stations, and fire halls and all approaches to, and exits from, the cities, and if, in spite of this,
the enemy are able to get out, they shall be attacked with hand-grenades.
21. Other militia shall be placed in armoured lorries in strategical positions within the cities not
more than one kilometer apart, they also shall be armed with machine guns.
22. Liaison shall be by light cars, and cyclists, who shall be armed with revolvers.
23. Is of no special importance.
24. The most intimate details concerning the lives and characters of all neutrals and sympathizers
must be obtained and carefully recorded, including their family requirements, and the influence
which love of their children, and desire for these necessary requirements, may exercise over them.
If any of our militia, or any of the neutrals, and sympathizers, show any kind of weakness, or
resistance to orders, they must be denounced to the highest committee of the organization as being
guilty of complicity and/or reaction.
25. Our militia must be organized to work away from their own homes and localities because
experience has taught us that at the last moment, through sentimentalism, men working in their own
localities, and amongst their families, and friends, have failed to carry out our plan with proper
enthusiasm.
26. All owners of depots of goods and merchandise shall be regarded as important capitalists.
These depots must be organized to serve the proletariat through the administrative groups. [6]
27. Deals with the question of using STARVATION as a means of reducing opposition quickly, and
confirms what has been said regarding the use of this weapon in national disputes, and international
warfare. It reads : “During the first week, and until the constitution becomes normal the supply of
food and drink to the bourgeois is prohibited.”
28. Reads – Stock of foods in barracks, and in the hands of our enemies, which cannot be captured,
must be rendered useless by mixing paraffin or other substances with them.
Since these orders were issued the revolutionary leaders in all countries have been given special
instruction to make careful plans to deal with the members of the police and fire-departments
because experience has shown that the majority of these civic employees “remain loyal to their
bourgeois bosses”. The action recommended is to :
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (23 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
1. Infiltrate into the two forces.
2. Corrupt the rank and file.
3. Party members are urged to purchase or rent properties covering the approaches to both back
and front of police stations, and fire halls, so the member, can be eliminated as they change shifts.
The hour to revolt is to coincide with the time the police change shifts.
The orders which were given to the leaders of the Communist party in Spain detailed how they
were to take over a11 public utilities and public services as well as civic administration. The
objective was to obtain, in the shortest possible time, full and absolute control of all food
supplies, and communication systems.
Revolutionary Orders seized at Majorca in October, 1936 were translated by Jacques Bardoux
who afterward wrote “Chaos in Spain”. They were on their way to revolutionary leaders in
Spain.
SPANISH DOCUMENT
With the object of being able to control the smallest details of the movement, from the 8th of
May, only the link agents will be able to give orders and they will communicate with each other
by means of the Cypher E.L.M. 54-22. The local leaders must give verbal instructions to the
committee with the help of the following code :
1.2.1. Order to begin mobilization.
2.1.2. Order to begin the revolt.
2.2.1.1.1. Order to attack at pre-determined points.
3.3.3. Provide for counter-revolutionaries.
2.4.3. Mobilization of trade unions.
2.5.5. General strike.
2.6.5. Acts of sabotage, i.e. blowing up railway lines, etc.
1.3.2. Signal to put off the revolt.
1.1.0. Order to provision.
1.0.0. Reorganization is ready.
0.0. Close frontiers and ports.
1.1. Execution of those whose names are on the black list.
All these orders will be given on the day before the revolt, 1st May or 29th [7] , at midnight, from the
transmitter installed in the Casa del Pueblo at Madrid, the wave-length of which is nearly the same
as that of the Madrid Union Radio.
Organization of Madrid :
To be divided into the following sections :
A.B. Chamartin de la Rosa, H.Q. at the Casa del Pueblo of this district.
C.D. Cuatro Caminos, H.Q. at Socialist Club of the district.
E.F. Palace District, H.Q. at the printing works of Mundo Obrero.
G.H. University District, H.Q. at editorial offices of El Socialista.
I.J. Latina District, H.Q. at Casa del Pueblo.
M.N. Inclusa District, H.Q. at Socialist centre.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (24 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
N.O. Pardinas District, H.Q. at Garage, at Castello 19.
P.Q. Southern District, H.Q. at Socialist Centre of Vallecas.
R.S. Carabanchel District, H.Q. at Socialist Club.
T.U.V. Centre of Madrid, H.Q. at Casa del Pueblo, Secretary’s.
X.Y.Z. Offices Nos. 2, 3, 4, 6, 8, 10, 12 (balcony room).
Plan of Campaign in Madrid :
The revolt will be announced by five bombs let off at dusk. Immediately a Fascist attack on one of
the C.N.T. (labour) centres will be faked; then a general strike will be declared and the soldiers and
chiefs who support us will rise in revolt. The groups will come into action.
Those designated in T.U.V. will take over the Bureau of Communications, the Presidency, and the
Ministry of War. Those belonging to the district will attack the Commissariats, and those
belonging to the X.Y.Z. Section will take the Bureau of Public Safety.
A special group composed exclusively of machine-gunners with hand-grenades will go to the
headquarters of the government and attack it by the following routes : Carretas, Montera, Mayor,
Correos, Paz, Alcala, Arenal, Preciados, Carmen and San Jeronimo. The groups, composed of fifty
cells of ten men each, will act in streets of the second and third order, and of two cells only in those
of the first order and in the avenues.
The orders are for the immediate execution of all the counter-revolutionaries who have been
detained.
The republicans of the Popular Front will be asked to support the movement, and in ease of refusal
they will be expelled from Spain.
FRENCH DOCUMENT
Secret.
To the Leaders of Groups and Sections :
Cell of St. George du Bois, Look-out Station.
F IRST G ROUP : H.Q. Town Hall. Leader of Group, A. President.
First Section : B.
4 volunteers
5 rifles, 1 revolver, 70 rounds of ammunition for rifle, 20 for revolver, 15 grenades.
Second Section : C.
6 volunteers
4 rifles, 3 revolvers, 70 rounds of ammunition for rifle, 20 for revolver.
Third Section : D. Leader, C.
4 volunteers for distributing arms and ammunition and for making ammunition. 6 revolvers, 15
cans petrol, 25 cans (5 litres each) reserve, issued to Comrade C.
S ECOND G ROUP : H.Q. Railway Station. Leader, D.E.P.
7 volunteers, 8 rifles, 80 rounds of ammunition, 20 sticks of dynamite issued to comrade E.
T HIRD G ROUP : At the Station. Leader, F.E.
5 volunteers (2 experts), 6 rifles, 1 revolver, 60 rounds of ammunition for rifle, 20 for revolver,
1,500 metres of insulated telephone wire issued to Comrade F.
F OURTH G ROUP : (attacking party) H.Q. Basement of Town Hall, Leader G.
First Section : H.
4 volunteers, 4 rifles, 50 rounds of ammunition, 10 knives, 12 ropes.
Second Section : I.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (25 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
4 volunteers, 4 rifles, 50 rounds of ammunition, 10 knives, 10 ropes. Special instructions.
S ECOND G ROUP : Blow up Railway and Fascist convoys.
T HIRD G ROUP : Link immediately Telephone Exchange P.O., Railway Station and Town Hall.
To A LL G ROUPS : Save ammunition pending arrival of arms and ammunition from the cell at
Rochefort.
First Group to commander all provisions, animals and fodder pending arrival of instructions from
Rochefort for distribution. [8]
C OMRADE P RESIDENT
Author’s Comment
Recent history has proved that the instructions given by the Illuminati through Moscow for the
subjugation of Spain have since been brought up to date, and carried out in all countries in
Europe which have been subjugated since 1936. There is no reason to believe that the 5th
Column in Canada, and the U.S.A., is less thoroughly organized. The 5th Column is ready to
carry out the Illuminati’s orders when those who direct the World Revolutionary movement
consider the time opportune. There is ample evidence to prove that the members of the
Communist party in Canada, and the U.S.A., have, since 1948, been practising speedy
evacuation from large cities and industrial areas so they could be in the country on picnics, and
other reasonable excuses, during the initial stages of a Soviet bombing raid. They plan to return
and take over while conditions are chaotic and the inhabitants are still in a state of panic.
While it is necessary to check Illuminism in Europe and Asia, it will be a tremendous, and
costly, error if we fail to realize the full extent of the danger of their 5th Column. We must
remove our internal danger or all our plans for civic emergency defence will be useless. We
must deal with the enemy within first, then our defence plans, and other matters, will fit
smoothly into gear unhampered by traitors and saboteurs. The fact to remember is that
Communists are used to start the revolt. Those who lead the Communists then form a
dictatorship of the Proletariat, which in turn is taken over by the agentur of the Illuminati.
___________________________
1 The details can be obtained by reading Arrara’s Franco.
2 Reported in Gringoire issue February 11th, 1938.
3 The theft of this gold is still an international problem in 1955. Franco demands that the Soviets return the gold.
4 This order protected the bankers and capitalists who were working as agents of the Illuminati in exactly the same
way in which similar order protected the Rothschilds in the French revolution.
5 In 1946 the author reported to the proper authorities that .303 rifles had been imported into Canada as scrap; in
the same manner Canada’s Cabinet Ministers permitted arms to be shipped to the Middle East as scrap in 1956.
6 This order also goes to show the Illuminati are the real leaders of a revolutionary effort. They are always in the
top-levels of Governments, Society, Industry and the Armed Forces. The workers, the Mob, are simply the ‘Pawns
in the Game’. They are used and then subdued. Prove this to them and the Communist plot will fail. —Author.
7 It was after these orders had been issued that the date to revolt was changed to July 22nd.
8 The above information was made available to the ‘Free Press of the World’ by Free Lance writers and accredited
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (26 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
correspondents as soon as it became available, but it was never published. Why ? —Author.
C HAPTER F IFTEEN
The revolutionary Reign of Terror
Study of the methods employed by the Illuminati’s agents in Spain, is of great value to those
who would protect their country from the danger of similar tribulations. Revolutionary leaders
have Cells occupy key positions in jails, prisons, and asylums. Their purpose is to control these
institutions so they can release the anti-social elements under detention, and use them as shock
troops during the revolt. In every revolution to date the anti-social prisoners, and the criminally
insane, have been used to arouse the blood-lust in the mob and thus introduce the “Reign of
Terror” which, the revolutionary leaders calculate, will cause the general public to surrender in
the quickest possible time. [1]
The prison policy in Madrid was influenced greatly by the advice given the authorities in the
Popular Front government by ‘General’ Kleber, the Canadian-Russian, who, after taking
theoretical training in the Lenin Institute in Moscow, was sent to Spain to serve Stalin and
obtain practical experience in revolutionary warfare.
As soon as the Popular Front government took office in March 1936, the extreme Leftist
members insisted that an Amnesty Bill be passed, granting liberty to all those who had taken
part in the Asturian rebellion. In addition to this small army of revolutionaries, 30,000 others,
who had been arrested as Communists, were given their liberty. After July 17th, another 40,000
common criminals were released on condition they would bear arms in the Loyalist army.
Revolutionary leaders liquidate most of the common criminals after they have served their
purpose. By doing so, they convince a great many people that the atrocities committed during
the revolution were the crimes of irresponsibles acting on their own initiative, and not in
accordance with a pre-conceived plan of terrorism.
These were the conditions existing when General Franco decided he would try to save Spain
from Communistic tyranny. Many books have been written telling how Franco, and a mere
handful of Spanish generals, finally managed to defeat the Communist plot. It is an exciting
story of courage, and fortitude, and great faith in their Christian Crusade. As soon as Franco
issued his proclamation, the Red undersecretaries for army, navy, and air ordered the communist
cells to liquidate all officers listed as enemies. This task was carried out with great
thoroughness. Communist cells had been placed in the mechanical, communications, and
signals branches of the services. This proved the organizers were sticking to the pattern laid
down for the English, French, Russian, and German revolts.
Taken by surprise, nearly two-thirds of the officers were murdered cold-bloodedly during the
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (27 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
initial stages of the attack. The mutineers tried to convince other ranks and ratings that they
were carrying out the government’s orders, and executing officers who had been convicted as
enemies of the Popular Front government.
Many men would not believe what they were told. Before long it was not uncommon for one
warship to be seen firing at a range of only a few yards into another. In one case, the fore-turret
was manned by Reds and the after turret of the same ship manned by anti-reds. The massacres
which started aboard the ships spread to the dock-yards and the cities in which they were
located.
There might have been some excuse for the drastic action taken against the officers who could
be expected to take sides with Franco, but it is impossible to excuse the terrorism which the
Communists, acting as soldiers and police of the Popular Front government inflicted upon the
unarmed, and unsuspecting populace. The imposition of terrorism proved, at the cost of
hundreds of thousands of innocent lives, that Lenin’s policy had been accepted. He ruled that
terrorism had to accompany every violent effort to overthrow a government because terrorism
was the most economic method of subjugating the masses quickly and thoroughly.
It must be remembered that the leaders of a revolution don’t consider the effort entirely wasted
if it doesn’t end in a proletarian dictatorship. Every revolt against constituted government and
lawful authority is considered by those who plot and plan revolutionary efforts as a step in the
right direction. If the effort falls short of success that is bad, but not hopeless. It doesn’t matter
how many people are killed. They are just pawns in the game. They are expendable. It is
extraordinary how few of the top-level revolutionary leaders get killed during a rebellion. [2] It
is accepted as good revolutionary technique, to sacrifice the masses and preserve the members
of the Illuminati, for they are to govern the new order. Even in ordinary strikes the Reds usually
stir up the trouble, and then sneak away. They leave the other workers to do the actual fighting
with the police or militia.
The following facts are given to prove that during a revolution everyone who is not a party
member or a fellow traveller, may expect no mercy of any kind. Even Fellow Travellers are
liquidated after they have been used to advantage.
Prior to July, 1936, the directors of the W.R.M. had literally flooded Madrid with agents.
Moses Rosenberg arrived as Moscow’s ambassador to Madrid. Anteneff Avseenko arrived in
Barcelona. Dimitrov arrived to personally conduct the religious persecutions planned to follow
the Communist Coup. During the Civil War Rosenberg ruled as tzar of Madrid. Avseenko
assumed command of the Catalan Red Army. Rosenberg organized the Chekas in Spain and
saw that they carried out their work of spying out more and more victims.
Moscow’s agents organized “Purification Squads”. Officially their duty was to seek out
Fascists but secretly they liquidated all those who had been previously listed as reactionaries to
the Illuminati’s plan for subjugation of Spain. These lists had been compiled by Communist
spies who had been worked into the Union of Concierges; (house and apartment janitors) the tax
departments, the Postal Services, and other public offices. The lists of those to be liquidated
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (28 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
were very complete because Moscow’s spies, some disguised as scissors and knife grinders, had
covered every district, street by street and house by house. All citizens were listed according to
their political, labour, social, and religious standing and affiliations. When the order for the
Reign of Terror to start was given, the Communists worked with the sureness, the ferocity, and
the thoroughness, of starved brutes. Stalin had once stated : “It is better that a hundred
innocent people die than one reactionary should escape.” They obeyed this order with devilish
persistency.
So others who live in countries not yet subjugated may understand what happens during a reign
of terror, some actual atrocities will be described.
On July 17th, 1936, a group of Communists wearing the uniforms of government troops called
at the Dominican Convent in Barcelona. The leader informed the Mother Superior that because
mob violence was feared he had orders to escort the sisters to a place of safety. The sisters
gathered together their few belongings and, unsuspectingly, accompanied the soldiers who took
them to the suburbs where they murdered them all. The leader callously remarked afterwards,
“We needed the building. We didn’t want to muss it up before we occupied it. [3]
Senor Salvans was a known anti-Communist. Three times purification squads visited his home
in Barcelona. When the third visit produced no information regarding his whereabouts, the
Reds murdered the whole family of eight. That vile deed was performed in accordance with
paragraphs 15 and 16 of the instructions already referred to.
One of the most senseless acts of violence ever committed in the name of “Liberty ... Equality ...
Fraternity”, was the murder of sixteen lay-brothers who worked voluntarily as male nurses in
the largest hospital in Barcelona. Their only crime was that they belonged to a religious order.
The fact that they nursed all who were sick, regardless of class, colour, or creed, made no
difference to those who ordered their “liquidation”. E.M. Godden, who published Conflict in
Spain, on page 72 reported : “The slaughter of the living was accompanied by derision for the
dead. During the last week of July, 1936, the bodies of nuns were exhumed from their graves
and propped up outside the walls of their convents. Obscene, and offensive, placards were
attached to their bodies.”
My cousin, Tom Carr, was a Mining Engineer in Spain from 1919 till 1938. He was married to
the daughter of Mr. Allcock, the American Consul of Huelva. One of Caballero’s 5th
Columnists had been elected mayor of Huelva. When Moscow gave the word, he turned over
the civic administration to the Communists. Their first act was to torture, and then murder all
the priests. The nuns were stripped naked and driven from the convents into the streets to
provide sport for the revolutionaries. [4]
Godden also states that he interviewed two English women who only escaped molestation
because they were foreigners. These two women told Godden they had been forced to witness a
mob of men and women act like fanatical dervishes. In the first instance the Reds tortured and
mocked a priest before they finally hung his dismembered body and limbs from a statue of the
Blessed Virgin. In the second instance the mob drilled a hole through the body of a young
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (29 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
priest and then, while he was still living, transfixed him with a crucifix.
In September, 1936, Pere Van Rooy, famous French author, reported Dimitrov as saying : “We
are reproached with destroying the churches and convents of Spain. What does the destruction
of a few convents and churches matter ? We are out to create a new world. [5]
A Committee, which officially investigated Communist atrocities in Spain in 1939, agreed that a
conservative estimate placed 50,000 as the number of citizens liquidated in Barcelona as
“reactionaries”, between July, 1936, and December, 1937. In Valencia the number was set at
30,000. In Madrid they estimated that fully one tenth of the whole population was
systematically murdered to make Spain into another totalitarian state. [6]
To illustrate what happened when the Reds took over control in Spain, I will quote some other
independent witnesses. Marcel M. Dutrey, the famous French author, stated : “At Castre
Urdiales the Communist Military commandant was an ex-municipal policeman who had been
dismissed for theft. The new Chief of Police had previously made his living making and selling
obscene postcards. The public prosecutor was the illegitimate son of a woman who had
previously been a well-known streetwalker. He was nicknamed “Son-of-his-mother”. The Red
Tribunal was presided over by a miner who was assisted by two “Assessors” ... All these men
were sadists. They glorified in carrying out the sentences they themselves imposed on their
victims. They opened the stomach of Vincent Mura; they martyred Julie Yanko publicly in the
market square; they dismembered Varez, the famous Spanish racing motorist, on the grounds
that he refused to betray his friends into their hands.”
Mr. Arthur Bryant, who wrote the preface to the fully evidenced, and authenticated, report on
“Communist Atrocities in Spain” remarked on several occasions “Soviet agents obtained such a
control of the communications systems that only reports favourable to their cause got into the
majority of the world’s newspapers, but, on the other hand, the most outrageous lies against the
Franco forces were conjured up and given to the press of the world without let or hindrance.”
Bryant was so disgusted with what he saw that he wrote : “No university lecturer, or
anonymous B.B.C. commentator [7] has told the just, and compassionate, British people the truth
about the women of San Martin de Valdeiglesias. For no greater crime than that they were
found to possess some religious emblem, the women in San Martin de Valdeiglesias were
condemned to be violated, and to satiate every vile passion, of twenty-five Red Militia men
each. The fact that the fathers of some of the women had been imprisoned, and were under
sentence of death, and that their mothers were forced to be present to witness the degradation of
their daughters, was not sufficient to dissuade the Red Militia men from carrying out the
sentence. The horrors of the hours suffered by these women had terrible effects on some of
their minds. The survivors related how, again and again, they implored their executioners to kill
them rather than submit them to such dreadful dishonour. The appalling cruelty of such
atrocities can be realized by the fact that many of the condemned women were married, and
when they were conducted between militiamen, before this pitiless tribunal, they carried
children in their arms, and these children were witnesses of this culmination of the horror in the
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (30 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
dishonour of their mothers.” [8]
It is little wonder that the secret power directing the W.R.M. said : “Communists should not be
required to carry out their plan of Terrorism in the localities in which they had lived with their
families, but had to be used elsewhere.”
Every Communist will declare that these atrocities were committed by “Uncontrollables” who
were punished when they were caught. So that no person may be deceived by such lies I will
again quote Lenin, the first canonized saint of the Illuminati totalitarian creed. Lenin said on
various occasions : “There are no morals in politics, there is only expediency. A scoundrel may
be of use to us just because he is a scoundrel.”
On another occasion he said : “Young revolutionaries should start training for war immediately,
by means of practical operations such as liquidating a traitor, killing a spy, blowing up a police
station, or robbing a bank to provide funds for the uprising, etc... Do not shirk from these
experimental attacks. They may of course degenerate into excesses, but that is a worry of the
future”. [9]
The Communist Krassikov was a libertine who squandered party funds on riotous living. Lenin,
when ordering his liquidation said : “It does not matter that Comrade Krassikov has squandered
party funds in a brothel, but it is scandalous that this should have disorganized the transportation
of illegal literature”. [10]
Communist training is designed to squeeze the last drop of human kindness out of the hearts of
men and women who aspire to become high priests of the religion. Anna Pauker rose to dizzy
heights in the Soviet hierarchy. She became Foreign Minister of Rumania. She proved she was
loyal to Stalin when she rendered herself a widow by denouncing the father of her three children
as a Trotskyite.
Communist terrorists encourage mere boys to become executioners of the enemies of the
proletariat in order to harden them, and remove from their hearts every last vestige of human
sentiment and sympathy. One such youth told how he had had a lot of fun with a priest. He
said : “Night after night we took him out with the groups we had to kill, but always we put him
last in the line. We made him wait while we killed all the others and then we took him back to
the Bellas Artes again. (The Bellas Artes was the Building of Fine Arts which the Communists
used as a prison). Each night he thought he was to die, but a quick death was too good for him.
That ‘Fraile’ died seven deaths before we finally finished him.”
Mr. Knoblaugh, on page 87 of his book Correspondent in Spain, tells of a horrible incident
which confirms the contentions that the planners of World Revolution select potential leaders
while they are very young and then train them until they are devoid of every trace of human
sentiment and pity. Knoblaugh tells how two Communist youths boasted to a doctor, in his
presence, that they had mutilated and murdered two young priests. They penetrated the disguise
of these two religious men who, to escape detection and death, were working as coal-heavers.
The two youths told how they made the two priests dig their graves with their coal shovels,
then, in accordance with the Communist-designed Reign of Terror, they emasculated their two
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (31 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
victims and forced the organs into their mouths. They stood by jeering while the priests died
slow lingering deaths.
De Fonteriz, in Red Terror in Madrid pages 19-20 tells how the Chekas, organized by Dimitrov
and Rosenberg tried to make a certain lady tell where her husband was hiding. The woman
probably didn’t know his whereabouts, but to make sure she didn’t, the members of the Chekas
made her sit and watch while they amused themselves piercing the breasts of eight women
members of her household with long hat-pins.
To prove a previous statement, that those who design the pattern of the Reign of Terror used
criminals and lunatics to stir up the blood-lust, I report what happened at Alcala on July 20th,
1936 : The Reds released all the prisoners, both male and female, on condition that they would
bear arms for the Communist Cause. They numbered one thousand men and two hundred
women. They were formed into the Battalion of Alcala. They excelled themselves in the
victorious attack on Madrid. As a reward they were sent to Siguenza. After taking over the
town, they murdered two hundred citizens to break down the resistance of the others. This
battalion of criminals occupied Siguenza for sixteen weeks. When they were driven out by
Franco’s forces, it was found that every female, from ten to fifty, had been violated. Many of
them were pregnant and many diseased. Some were both. One girl, a waitress in a hotel, told
how lucky she had been. She told how the criminals had murdered the bishop of Siguenza in a
most horrible, barbarous, and unprintable manner. At a banquet held in the hotel that night, one
of the battalion took a fancy to her and demanded that one of his comrades dress himself in the
murdered bishop’s vestments and marry them. The others thought this a great joke and carried
out the mock ceremony. After the wedding the “Militiennes” performed the “Danse on Ventre”
using the dining tables as a stage. After the orgy ended, the man claimed the girl as his own
personal property. Relating this happening she remarked : “I was lucky. My man was an
assassin, but it was better to belong to him than to be the plaything of all. I at least escaped
disease.”
Marcel M. Dutrey published the fact that in Ciempozuelos over one hundred religious brothers
were bound to lunatics who were then furnished with knives. One can imagine the horror which
followed. Moscow’s army of trained propagandists told the world how Franco’s troops had
murdered the mayors of many small towns, but they didn’t mention the fact that they had been
tried by a properly constituted military court and proved to have been Communist agents of
Largo Caballero who had plotted to turn Spain into a dictatorship.
If further proof is needed to substantiate the statement that the Secret Powers behind the World
Revolutionary Movement use Communists throughout the world to further their totalitarian
plans, the numerous desertions from the Communist party, all over the world, should provide
that proof. Douglas Hyde, who for the preceding five years was news editor of the Daily
Worker, Britain’s leading Communist newspaper, in March 1948 announced his resignation
from the Communist party. In a press release he stated : “I believe that the new ‘line’ of the
Communist party, introduced after the formation of the Cominform last year (1947), if
successful, will bring nothing but misery to the common people.” Mr. Hyde went on to explain
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (32 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
that since the end of World War II he had been worried regarding Moscow’s foreign policy. He
said he had finally become convinced that the Party Line as now determined by the Moscow
Clique, was no longer in keeping with the ideals for which he had worked so long, and that the
ultimate result would be to destroy the very freedoms and decencies for which Communists had
been fighting for so long a time. He concluded with these words : “My growing
disillusionment led me to seek some other answer to the problem of our day, and another way
out of the world chaos.”
Right on top of Mr. Hyde’s resignation in London, England, came that of Mrs. Justina
Krusenstern-Peters, a staff member of Soviet publications for the preceding twelve years. She
announced her resignation in Shanghai, China. She said : “The strain of writing according to
orders from Moscow became more than I could bear ... I am still a Soviet citizen. I am sure my
feelings are shared by many of my colleagues in Russia, the only difference is that they are not
able to protest against their enslavement.”
Most Communists work to bring about an International of Soviet Socialist Republics. In other
words, they feel that only by using revolutionary methods can they speedily destroy the
stranglehold of selfish capitalism and place political power in the hands of the workers. Few
party members realize they are working themselves into a state of slavery from which there is
no hope of escape. [11]
____________________________
1 Investigation of outbreaks in many prisons in both the U.S.A. and Canada indicate these revolt, were
Communistically inspired. It took nearly twenty-three years to prove that some of the officials in Kingston
Penitentiary, at the time Tim Buck was confined in the institution, were Communists. Evidence would indicate
they helped him organize the Kingston Prison Riots. I was a Free Lance writer at the time. I wrote that the whole
thing smelt to high heaven as a plot to make a martyr of Tim Buck, in order to arouse public sympathy, in order to
obtain his release. I declared it my opinion that guards, and other prison officials, were implicated. My story never
appeared in print. In 1953 one of the officials I suspected in 1932 of having ‘Red’ affiliations contested the Federal
election in British Columbia as the Labour Progressive Candidate. Between 1939 and 1944 this same man had
charge of the training of personnel in the engineering branch of the Royal Canadian Navy. This information was
given to the proper authorities. —Author.
2 It is an historical fact that ten times as many revolutionary leaders have died during Party Purges than died during
the actual revolutionary ware.
3 Recorded in official reports "Communist Atrocities in Spain”. Parts one, two and three. The investigations were
conducted by a committee composed of men of different nationalities. The editing was done by Arthur Bryant,
internationally known journalist and author.
4 This statement of my consin’s was confirmed an page 238 of the Spanish Arena, written by William Fees and
Cecil Gerahty, and also by Arthur Bryant who investigated the Communist Atrocities in Spain.
5 See Catholic Herald, February 11th, 1938.
6 In case some people think that Communists hate only Roman Catholic, it is well to remember that the Secret
Powers behind the world Revolutionary Movement are determined to ultimately turn this world into the despotism
of Satan. That is the essence of Illuminism. In order to lull people, in countries not yet Sovietized, (sic) into a
some of false security, they will try to convince them of their tolerance to religions other than Roman Catholic, but
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (33 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 12, 13, 14, 15
investigation shows that they are determined, when they have sufficient power, to wipe out all religions.
7 N OTE — Red agents had infiltrated onto the Staff of Britain’s B.B.C. in 1938 and for nearly two years the policy
was Pro-loyalist, i.e. Communistic. The present trend of the C.B.C. is much the same. The majority of programs
are slanted sharply to the “left”.
8 The details are on page six of the second report ‘Communist Atrocities in Spain’.
9 Communist agents teach children, in all Free Nations the inversion of the Ten Commandments. Communism is
therefore responsible for the increase in juvenile delinquency more than any other single cause. While professed
atheists they serve the purpose of Illuminati and Satanism.
10 The magazine Time made reference to these views expressed by Lenin, November 17th, 1948.
11 Mr. Hyde, and others, who broke away from the communist party don’t seem even yet to realize that they were
only tools used to further the plans of the Illuminati.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_12.html (34 of 34)5.4.2006 12:16:27William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
Guy Carr
Pawns in the Game
C HAPTER S IXTEEN
The Events Leading up to World War Two
It has been told how the international bankers enabled Germany to secretly re-arm, with the aid
of Stalin, in spite of the restrictions imposed by the Treaty of Versailles. In order to understand
what happened in Germany to bring Hitler into power, it is necessary to be familiar with the
political intrigue which went on between 1924 and 1934. ‘The Secret Powers’ always have had
their agents divide the population of countries. They plan to subjugate into many religious,
economic, political, social, and labour groups. Their agents then divide the various groups into
as many factions as possible. Their motto is ‘United we stand. Divided they fall’.
Most German citizens, excepting only Communists, were agreed upon the following issues:
That Germany had been winning the war when had she had first been betrayed and afterwards
victimized. That the national money-lenders had used the so-called democracies of Britain,
France, and the United States, to defeat Germany’s armed forces. That the Jewish-led
Communist Party assisted the international bankers by bringing about the chaotic conditions
that preceded the signing of the Armistice and the revolution that followed. They agree that
every patriotic German male and female, should do his or her uttermost to build up post-war
Germany, and break the economic and military stranglehold placed on their nation by the Treaty
of Versailles.
Most political leaders, except Communists, were also agreed that in order to free themselves of
the economic sanctions imposed upon the nation, it was necessary to break away from their
dependence on the international bankers for financial assistance in the form of interest bearing
loans. In other words, most German politicians, except Communists, were agreed that Germany
should depart from the practice of financing the nation’s business by incurring debts, a practice
which had been imposed upon England in 1694, France in 1790, and the United States in 1791,
by the International bankers. They realized that this system had resulted in astronomical
National Debts, the principal and interest payments on which were guaranteed and secured by
Direct Taxation of the people.
The Fascist leaders in Germany decided they were going to create their own money and use
their national assets, such as the value of their real estate, their industrial potentials, their
agricultural production, natural resources, and the nation’s capacity to produce, as collateral.
The people of Germany found that, generally speaking, their views regarding future political
and economic policy were shared by the people of Italy, Spain, and Japan, and thus came into
being THE AXIS POWERS , and the Fascist Movement. Because of their dynamic personalities,
Hitler, Mussolini and Franco became the chosen leaders. History proves that these three men
did a great deal to help their countries recover from the effects of the preceding revolutions and
wars. The industrial and agricultural developments were little short of miraculous. Their
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (1 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
military rearmament was made possible by the secret assistance given by the agentur of the
Illuminati who planned to bring the Fascist and Capitalistic countries into another World War.
When Hitler and Mussolini first rose to power they advocated the moderate Fascist policy
which demanded that the wrongs done their countries be rectified; that they contain
communism; and curb the powers of the Illuminati who controlled finance and industry. But as
time went on, both Hitler and Mussolini came under the influence of the leaders of the hard core
of Nazi War Lords who claimed the only way to establish a permanent peace in the world was
by military conquest. The Nazi leaders sold the top-military leaders in Italy and Japan solidly
on the theories and plans advocated by Karl Ritter in 1849. Franco in Spain refused to go along
with their totalitarian plans. His religious beliefs convinced him that an ideology which denied
the existence of an Almighty God was doing the work of the Devil.
The Totalitarian minded leaders in Germany, Italy, and Japan were determined to use Fascism
to further their secret Long Range Plans in exactly the same way as their opponents, the
international bankers, used Communism. The immediate plans of the War Lords were to first,
defeat the Stalin-controlled Empire; second, wipe out Communism in Europe; third,
consolidate the control of the Axis Powers on Continental Europe; fourth, invade Britain and
France and subjugate the people, and fifth, to invade and conquer the United States by using
two vast pincer movements. Japan was to land invading forces on the west coast of Mexico in
the south and in the Northwest Territories in the north. Germany was to invade Canada by air in
the North and the German-Italian forces were to jump the Atlantic from Africa, and attack the U.
S.A. from South America and the Gulf of Mexico.
The Northern invading forces were scheduled to join together at a point in the vicinity of
Chicago and push on down the Mississippi while the South-West and South-East invasion
forces were to meet at New Orleans and push north up the Mississippi, thus dividing the country
into two halves. [1]
With the conquest of Britain and the United States the Nazis planned to exterminate the Jews
living in these two countries as they had exterminated those they located in Europe. The
international bankers, and big capitalists controlled by them, were listed for immediate
liquidation, together with confiscation of all their assets and estates.
While Hitler suffered imprisonment prior to 1934 because he was considered the personal
enemy of the Nazi War Lords and the international bankers, he wrote Mein Kampf. On the very
last page he stated: “The party (National-Socialist) as such stands for positive Christianity but
does not bind itself in the matter of creed to any profession. It combats the Jewish materialistic
spirit within and without us.”
In 1933 Hitler also announced his policy in regard to Britain. He pointed out that Marx, Lenin,
and Stalin had all repeatedly reiterated that before International communism could reach its
final objectives, Britain and her Empire had to be destroyed. Under these circumstances Hitler
said: “I am willing to help defend the British Empire by force if called upon.”
Of the Treaty of Versailles Hitler wrote: “It was not a British interest (intention) but, in the first
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (2 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
place, a Jewish one to destroy Germany.” He also wrote: “Even in England there is a continual
struggle going on between the representatives of British States’ interests and the Jewish World
dictatorship. Whilst England is exhausting herself in maintaining her position in the world, the
Jew to-day is a rebel in England and the struggle against the Jewish world menace will be
started there also.”
Hitler never wavered from his personal opinion that the survival of Germany as a great power
depended upon an alliance with the British Empire. In 1936 he instituted proceedings to try to
bring about this alliance. He arranged for unofficial conversations to take place between
German and British diplomats, and after the meetings failed to produce the alliance he so greatly
desired, he said: “No sacrifice would have been too great in order to gain England’s alliance. It
would have meant renunciation of our colonies; and importance as a sea power; and refraining
from interference with British industry by competition.” [2] He considered all these German
concessions would have been worthwhile if only he had been able to bring about the German-
British alliance. His failure to bring about the British Alliance caused him to weaken in his
opposition to the totalitarian ideology as advocated by the extreme Nazi War Lords. The failure
of the conference convinced Hitler that no moderate policy would ever break the control the
international bankers had over British Foreign policy. He reluctantly began to concede that Karl
Ritter had been right when he said: “The power the Jewish financiers hold over Communism
must be destroyed, as well as of those who are members of the world revolutionary movement,
before peace and economic freedom can be restored to the world.”
The purpose of this book is to record the events in history which provided the ‘Causes’ which
produced the ‘Effects’ we experience to-day. We are not concerned with the ‘Rights’ or
‘Wrongs’ of the decisions made by individuals, except to judge for ourselves whether the
decisions furthered the Devil’s Plan or were in accordance with the Plan of God. The only
value of historical research is to obtain knowledge of how, and why, mistakes were made in the
past so we can try to avoid making similar mistakes in the future.
The momentous meeting regarding the possibility of an alliance between Great Britain and
Germany took place in January 1936. Lord Londonderry represented the British government
and Goering, Herr Ribbentrop, and Hitler, Germany.
An authority on this phase of history informed me that Herr Goering and Herr Von Ribbentrop
outlined the history of the World Revolutionary Movement to Lord Londonderry, explaining the
detailed research work done by Professor Karl Ritter and others. They reasoned that the only
successful way to fight a totalitarian-minded conspiracy was to use Total War. They explained
to Lord Londonderry their plan was to attack all Communist-controlled countries; liberate the
people, and execute all Communist traitors. They claimed the only way to wipe out
Communism was the extermination of the whole Jewish Race. [3] They produced masses of
documented evidence which, they claimed, was authentic, to prove Communism was organized,
financed, and directed by powerful,wealthy and influential Jews, who also organized, financed
and directed secret ambitions to bring about the Messianic Age. [4]
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (3 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
Hitler is said to have promised that he would continue to oppose the extreme totalitarian plans
of the Nazi War Lords and confine his activities against Communism to Europe, providing the
British government would enter into an alliance with Germany. When Lord Londonderry said
he doubted if the British government would take part in a plan to abolish Communism, which
called for ‘Genocide,’ Hitler compromised. He said Germany would undertake the task alone
provided England would enter into an agreement that the two countries would under no
circumstances war against each other for ten years. Hitler argued that the only way Britain,
France, and Russia could shake off the unbearable and ruinous burden of ever-increasing
national debts was to repudiate them and restore the issuing of money to the government where
it originally and rightfully belonged.
Hitler is said to have pointed out that the purpose of his National-Socialist party ... call it
Fascism ... was to put an end at once, and all time, to the power and influence the international
money-lenders exerted on national and international affairs by reason of the fact that they were
forcing every nation that still claimed to be independent, further and further into their debt. He
is said to have quoted what Benjamin Disraeli made one of his characters say in his famous
book Coningsby, “So you see, dear Coningsby, the world is governed by very different
personages from what is imagined by those who are not behind the scenes.” [5]
Goering is said to have backed up the Führer by pointing out that history had proved that the
wealthy and influential Jews had obtained economic and political control of every country into
which they had infiltrated by using illegal methods and corrupt practices.
Herr Von Ribbentrop is reported to have supported Goering’s arguments by reminding Lord
Londonderry that as recently as 1927-28 when he was in Canada, the Stevens Royal
Commission into the Canadian Customs Service proved that the country was being robbed
annually of over ONE HUNDRED MILLION DOLLARS by smuggling and other kinds of illegal
traffic and trade organized and directed from an International Headquarters. He pointed out that
evidence placed before the Royal Commissioner had proved that in order to get away with
gangsterism and licentiousness to ‘Fix’ thousands of public servants and hundreds of
government officials, even as high as cabinet level. He pointed out that what had been
absolutely proved to exist in Canada was ten times as bad in the United States of America.
Ribbentrop reasoned that the only way to clean up the mess was to ‘Get’ the three hundred men
at the top who were ‘The Secret Power’ master-minding the negative forces whose various evil
influences, and criminal activities, all furthered the Long Range Plan of those who directed the
World Revolutionary Movement. [6]
Goering is said to have reviewed once more the part the international bankers had played in
bringing about, directing, and financing the Russian revolution in 1917, which had enabled
them to bring into existence the adverse conditions being experienced throughout the world at
that time. [7]
Hitler reminded Lord Londonderry of the millions of Christians who had been ruthlessly
slaughtered in the Communized countries since October, 1917, and argued that the men
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (4 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
responsible could not be considered as anything else than international gangsters.
The final item of discussion was the manner in which Stalin had been instructed to turn Spain
into a Communist dictatorship. The whole pattern of international intrigue was laid bare. The
manner in which Germany had been enabled to secretly re-arm: The way French politics were
controlled by Grand Orient Freemasonry. [8] The manner in which Britain had been persuaded
to disarm, while her potential enemies were being re-armed.
According to the Germans, it would be impossible for the world to enjoy peace and prosperity
as long as those who directed the World Revolutionary Movement insisted on fomenting wars
in order to create conditions favourable for revolutionary action. They argued both international
Communism and political Zionism had to be stopped and the movements ended at once, or
another war was inevitable, because the Secret Powers, pulling the strings, were determined
they were going to reach their ultimate objectives.
Hitler was a great orator, and my informant claimed he ended the discussions with a plea that
Lord Londonderry return to England and persuade the British government to join in the
suggested alliance with Germany “because I am convinced that the British Empire and the
Roman Catholic Church are both universal institutions, the continuance of which is absolutely
essential as bulwarks for the preservation of law and order throughout the world in the future.”
What has been said here of Hitler is so absolutely foreign to the general idea that the following
historical facts and documents are quoted to support what has been said :
Lord Londonderry returned to London following the conference and made his report to the
British cabinet. On February 21st, 1936, he wrote Herr Von Ribbentrop. He referred to the
conversations he had had. The letter reads in part :
“They (Hitler and Goering) forget that here (in England) we have not experienced the devastation
of a revolution for several centuries... In relation to the Jews ... we do not like persecution, but in
addition to this, there is the material feeling that you are taking on a tremendous force which is
capable of having repercussions all over the world ... it is possible to trace their participation in
most of these international disturbances which have created so much havoc in different countries,
but on the other hand, one can find many Jews strongly ranged on the other side who have done
their best, with the wealth at their disposal, and also by their influence, to counteract those
malevolent and mischievous activities of fellow Jews.” [9]
After Hitler realized his hopes to bring about an alliance between Germany and Britain had
failed, he leaned further and further to the ‘Right.’ He became convinced that it was impossible
for an individual, groups of individuals, or even a single nation to break the power and influence
the international bankers exercised over the so-called democratic nations by reason of their
financial control and the encumbrance of their national debts.
In July, 1936, the Spanish Civil War broke out and Hitler, Mussolini and Franco were drawn
closer together. It was the fact that Franco had had to start a Civil War in Spain to prevent
Spain being Communized without a struggle, that caused Hitler to round out his boundaries and
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (5 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
concentrate military power on his borders. He was determined to make sure that Stalin, who he
knew was only the agent of the international bankers appointed to rule over Russia, would not
extend his dictatorship over other European countries. Every step Hitler took in the direction
was termed ‘Acts of aggression’ by the anti-Fascist press. Hitler explained such moves as
‘preventive’ wars or occupations. He stated that he was primarily concerned in ‘preventing’
Stalin establishing his sphere of influence on or about the 40th parallel of latitude in Europe. If
he was allowed to, Germany, Britain, and other northern European countries would be
entrapped like flies in a spider’s web.
Hitler had not only failed to bring about the British alliance, but he had earned the enmity of the
Nazi War Lords who advocated totalitarian methods for solving the very complicated and
dangerous problem. They did not want an alliance with England. They did not want to see
Christianity flourish. They did not agree with Hitler’s “preventive” measures. They didn’t
agree with anything Hitler did to hinder their plans to wage ‘Total War,’ first against Russia,
then against Britain and France. The ‘hard core’ of the pagan Nazi War Lords demanded that
Hitler take offensive action, as the best defence against gradual encroachment by Communist
underground and Stalin’s armed forces. When Hitler refused to go all the way with them, they
decided to get rid of him. The first attempt was made on his life. The Nazi War Lords next
tried to weaken the control he had gained over the German people.
They launched a campaign to sell their Aryan Pagan ideology to the German people. They
taught the superiority of the Aryan Race. They advocated war to establish the undisputed
supremacy of the Aryan State. They made it a fundamental principle that all men and women of
Aryan blood should give unlimited obedience to the Head of the Aryan State and acknowledge
no mortal as above him. This campaign was attributed to Hitler, and the anti-Fascist press
throughout the world cried to high heaven that Hitler was a pagan, and a Black-shirted
totalitarian-minded Nazi War Lord. Thus started the clashes between both Catholic and
Protestant clergy and the state. The clergy condemned the Nazi ideology on the grounds that
those who preached it were preaching the deification of men.
The Nazi leaders charged that both Catholic and Protestant clergy were breaking the laws and
defying the authority of the state. The Roman Catholic and Protestant bishops replied by stating
the extreme Nazi doctrines were antagonistic and contrary to the Divine Plan of Creation. The
Nazi leaders countered with the argument that the Church had no right to interfere in matters of
state.
Hitler tried to pacify the clergy by banning the Grand Orient Lodges which were known to be
the headquarters of the Aryan extremists throughout Germany. The Nazi leaders rendered this
step abortive changing them over to “Orders of German Chivalry.”
Hitler, in order to maintain a united front against Communism, tried to pacify the Nazis by
issuing an edict that any clergyman preaching against the laws of the state, or questioning its
supremacy, would be subjected to the full process of the law and, if found guilty, would suffer
the penalties provided for such ‘crimes’. This situation provides another example of how the
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (6 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
forces of evil divided two powerful forces which were both combating a common enemy.
The anti-Fascist propaganda made the most of the disagreement between Hitler and the Pope. It
is true Pope Pius XI denounced Naziism in no uncertain terms in the Encyclical of March 14th,
1937 “on the condition of the Church in Germany.” He told Roman Catholics that he had
weighed every word of the encyclical in the scales of truth and clarity. In reference to the Nazi
conception of the superiority of the Aryan race and the supremacy of the state he said :
“While it is true that the race or the people; the state or a form of government; the representatives
of a civil power, or other fundamental elements of human society have an essential and honourable
place in the natural order, nevertheless, if anyone detaches them from this scale of earthly values
and exalts them as the supreme form and standard of all things, even of religious values, deifying
them with idolatrous worship, he perverts and falsifies the order of things created and constituted
by God, and is far from true faith in God, and from a conception of life in conformity therewith...
Our God is a personal God, transcendent, Almighty, Infinite, Perfect. One in the Trinity of Persons
and three in the unity of the Divine Essence; creator of the universe; Lord; King; and ultimate
purpose of the history of the world; who does not suffer and can never suffer any other divinity
besides Him ... Only superficial minds can fall into the error of speaking of a National God, of a
National Religion, of foolishly attempting to restrict within the narrow confines of a single race that
God, who is the Creator of the world, the King and Law-Giver of all peoples, before Whose
greatness the nations are as small as drops of water in a bucket” (Isaias XL-15).
In a pastoral letter dated August 19th, 1938, the bishops of Germany struck out boldly against
Nazi ideology. The letter says that the attitude of the Nazi towards the Christian religion in
Germany is in open contradiction with the Fuehrer’s assertions... [10] “What is aimed at is not
merely the checking of the growth of the Catholic Church but the wiping out of Christianity and
the setting up in its place of a religion which is utterly alien to the Christian belief in One True
God.” The letter goes on to point out that the Nazi attack on Dr. Sproll, the Protestant bishop of
Rottenburg, clearly proved that the ‘persecution’ is directed not only against the Catholic
Church but against the whole Christian idea as such... “An attempt is being made to get rid of
the Christian God in order to replace Him with a “German God”. What does a German God
mean ? Is He different from the God of other peoples ? If so, then there must be a special God
for each nation and for each people... This is the same as saying “There is no God.” [11]
What happened in Germany in 1936 has happened in other countries since. The leaders of
‘Black’ Naziism joined forces with the leaders of ‘Red’ Communism in an attack on both the
Christian religion and the British Empire. The totalitarian-minded Nazi War Lords initiated
their followers into the German Grand Orient Lodges, using the ancient pagan rites and ritual
handed down from the time the barbaric Aryan tribes and the Huns swept over Europe. The
totalitarian-minded men who direct international Communism initiate their leaders into the
Grand Orient Lodges of other countries using the ancient Cabalistic Rites of Illuminism. To
understand this situation, it is necessary to recall that Jews have never, under any circumstances,
been admitted into the German Grand Orient Lodges since 1785 when the papers found on the
body of the Courier of the Illuminati, who was killed by lightning at Ratisbon, were handed
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (7 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
over by the police to the Bavarian authorities, and proved that the Grand Orient Lodges in
France were being used as the secret headquarters of the Jewish inspired revolutionary
movement.
When complicated situations such as these develop, it can be understood why the Roman
Catholic Church has taken such a definite stand against ‘Black’ Naziism, while tolerating the
less extreme forms of Fascism, i.e. anti-Communism as practiced by Franco in Spain. It also
explains why Cardinal Mindszenty collaborated with allegedly Fascist leaders who attempted to
overthrow Communist domination in his country.
Franco has consistently refused to go off the deep end. He refused to support German Naziism
in World War Two simply because the extreme Nazi Pagan War Lords had become all powerful
in Germany. In Germany, Italy, France, Spain, and Japan, millions of citizens, peaceful by
inclination and charitable at heart, found themselves in the position of having to decide whether
they became actively Pro-Fascist or Pro-Communist. They were given Hobson’s Choice. They
usually picked what they considered the lesser of two evils. They were immediately labeled
accordingly.
By diabolical intrigue the nations of the world were being lined up for World War Two. The
Russian dictatorship was secretly rearming the German armies. The Italian dictatorship, under
Mussolini, was secretly building a huge navy of submarines to German specification and
design. These submarines were tested out under conditions of actual warfare during the Spanish
Civil War. These tests proved the German designed submarines were, in 1936, practically
immune to British anti-submarine weapons including Asdic. The British government was
informed in regard to this matter. Captain Max Morton, R.N., had emphasized the warnings
being given by evading all the anti-submarine devices used for the protection of the British
Mediterranean fleet while it was at anchor. He actually got into the guarded harbour and, in
theory, sank half a dozen capital ships as they rode to their anchors. This act of Captain Max
Morton brought him condemnation from the British Civil Sea Lords instead of praise and
recognition. His promotion was held up, and he was silenced. He was not allowed to take a
very active part in British naval affairs until 1940. When German U-boats threatened to starve
Britain into submission he was asked to take over direction of the anti-submarine Battle of the
Atlantic.
The British government was warned as early as 1930 that German-designed submarines had
dived deeper than 500 feet, thus rendering obsolete all depth-charges then in use. They were
warned that Asdic gear then in use was also obsolete. But they refused to heed the warnings.
The Secret Powers were using their agents within the British government to weaken the British
war potential, while they were secretly strengthening that of Germany. When the war broke out,
Britain did not have one single modern anti-submarine ocean escort vessel in service. As a
result she lost 75 per cent of her merchant ships, and over 40,000 seamen, before the tide turned
in her favour in April, 1943. [12]
Hitler antagonized the international bankers when he announced his financial policy and
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (8 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
monetary reform programme. He persuaded Italy, Spain, and Japan to back him in his
determination to challenge the power of the Cartels and Monopolies financed and controlled by
the international bankers, particularly their “Brain-child,” the Bank of International
Settlements. The German Reich abrogated the clause in the constitution which made Dr. Hans
Luther, the president of the Reichsbank, a permanent fixture. Until the change was made, the
president of the Reichsbank could not be removed without his own consent and a majority vote
of the board of the Bank of International Settlements.
Since the Great War the international bankers had set up twenty-six central banks. They were
modeled after the Federal Reserve Banks in the United States, which had been established in
1913 according to the theories of Mr. Paul Warburg, the German who had gone to America in
1907 and become a partner in Kuhn-Loeb & Co. of New York.
Mr. Paul Warburg’s creation of 1913 had been steadily attempting to set up a ‘Central Banking
Organization’ which would acknowledge no authority on this planet as above it. Hitler knew
that if Warburg and associates had their way, the Bank of International Settlements would
become as autocratic as the bank of England is in regard to British National Affairs and Foreign
Policy. Politicians and statesmen were being asked to believe this banker’s dream would
stabilize the banking system of the world. In this contention they were absolutely correct. The
nigger-in-the-gold-pile is the fact, that with the realization of this dream, all hope of freedom
and plenty for the individual and private industry would automatically disappear. The citizens
of the world would have the same financial security as the criminal who enjoys social security
behind bars. Against this process of reducing the people of the world to financial slavery Hitler
decided to take a definite stand, and he refused to allow Germany to be merged into the league
of Monopolist States, secretly controlled by agents of the Illuminati.
After Paul Warburg’s Federal Reserve System had been in operation three years i.e. 1913 to
1916, President Woodrow Wilson [Rosicrucian; bought and paid for by the money power; who signed the
Federal Reserve Act; who by hook and crook and lies dragged the US into WWI; after four years of his own presidency,
during his electioneering] summed up the economic situation in the United States of America as
follows : “A great industrial nation is controlled by its system of credits. Our system of credit
is concentrated. The growth of the nation, therefore, and all our activities are in the hands of a
few men... We have come to be one of the worst ruled; one of the most completely controlled
and dominated governments, in the civilized world... no longer a government by conviction and
the free vote of the majority, but a government by the opinion and duress of small groups of
dominant men.” That is actually what modern so-called democracy really means. [13]
When the countries of the Western World were plunged into the economic depression of the
1930s, out of which only another war could lift them, President Franklin D. Roosevelt [Marxist,
fomentor of WWII] said : “Sixty families in America control the wealth of the nation... One-third
of the nation’s population is ill-housed, ill-fed, and ill-clad...” “Twenty per cent of the men
working on W.P.A. projects are in such an advanced state of malnutrition that they cannot do a
day’s work... I intend to drive the money changers from the Temple.” [But he did not drive any of
them anywhere, but introduced the new deal] Roosevelt knew that unless he could drive the international
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (9 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
bankers out of the modern temple of international finance only a full scale World War could
relieve the chronic condition of financial constipation they had brought about on an
international scale by withdrawing currency, restricting credits, and other financial
manipulations. They grew richer while everyone outside their select circle grew steadily
poorer. But soon Roosevelt was docile.
President Roosevelt found he couldn’t break, or even curb, the power of the Illuminati. He was
forced to lead his country into war against the only countries who held firm to the very policy
he had so rashly announced soon after he was elected to office. And, after he had grown
haggard and grey doing the bidding of the men whose money and influence had placed him in
the office of president of the United States, he allegedly died in the home of the richest, and
most powerful man in the United States ... Bernard Baruch... A man above all others who, for
the past forty years at least, has sat quietly in the background but was acknowledged the ‘king’
over all American bankers and undoubtedly one of the select few who, in our time, has been
‘The Secret Power’ behind the scenes of international affairs. If this were not so, why does
Winston Churchill and his son visit him so often ? Why did Winston Churchill make his
momentous announcements regarding his attitude towards political Zionism and peaceful co-
existence immediately after his visit to Bernard Baruch in 1954 ?
It is unfortunate, but true, that to-day ‘democracy’ is a very deceptive word. It is used to
describe all countries which are in fact a money-lender’s heaven. Today countries which are
termed ‘democratic’ follow a monetary system devised by the international bankers, under
which currency originates in debt to groups of private individuals who manipulate the price
levels of different countries and use money as a stable value facilitating the exchange of REAL
WEALTH . Britain, France, and the United States are termed ‘democratic’ countries only because
they are linked together in debt to the international money-lenders. The Communist countries
also call themselves ‘democratic’ republics and they are entitled to do so as long as they also are
controlled by the same international financial groups. //* Interestingly, those so-called Communist
countries had state-owned and controlled central banks, and used state-issued paper currency, backed by nothing but
their own credit.
When the Axis Powers in Europe refused to place themselves in usury to the international
bankers, they placed themselves in exactly the same category as the small independent store
keeper is in relation to the big chain-store organizations and business combines and
monopolies. They were given the option of joining the big ‘Happy Family’ ... or else. In the
case of an independent store keeper, if he refuses to ‘see the light’ he is put out of business by
systematically applied pressure of unfair competition. In the case of nations who refuse to ‘play-
ball,’ they are doomed to suffer war or revolution. There is no mercy shown to the nations
whose leaders refuse to bow down and worship at the feet of Mammon. There is no
consideration given to nations which refuse to place themselves in usury to the High Priests of
the God of Mammon. All must pay the tribute demanded of them ... or else.
World War Two was started in order to enable the Illuminati to finally rid themselves of the
barriers of caste and creed and prejudice. Their ideas regarding a new civilization had to be
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (10 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
built through a world at war. In proof of the above statement a portion of the broadcast Sir
Anthony Eden addressed to America on September 11th, 1939, is quoted. He said : “Can we
finally rid Europe of the barriers of caste and creed and prejudice ? ... Our new civilization must
be built through a world at war. But our new civilization will be built just the same.” What
utter rot. Wars are destructive not constructive.
From 1930 onwards, informed and influential Britishers had been doing everything within their
power to try to prevent England and her allies being inveigled into another war with Germany.
As was to be expected, everyone of these people was attacked by the anti-Fascist agencies as
being ‘black’ totalitarian-minded Nazis.
Some of the British who opposed Communism — and also the continued subservience of the
British government to the international bankers — openly declared themselves in favour of the
Fascist principles as expounded by Franco and Hitler. This group was led by Sir Oswald
Mosley. Others, mostly statesmen, retired admirals, and generals, worked quietly trying to
inform politicians and members of the government regarding the purpose behind the
international intrigue.
The anti-Semitic movement started in England early in 1921, after Mr. Victor E. Marsden
returned from Russia where he had been imprisoned by the Bolsheviks. Mr. Marsden had been
correspondent in Russia for the London Morning Post since before 1914. When Mr. Marsden
returned to England he was in possession of the document which Professor Sergei Nilus had
published in Russian in 1905 under the title Jewish Peril. Professor Nilus claimed the original
documents had been obtained from a woman who had stolen them from a wealthy international
Jew when he returned to her apartments after addressing top-level executives of the Grand
Orient Lodges in Paris in 1901.
While Mr. Marsden was translating the documents he received a warning that if he persisted in
publishing the book he would die. Mr. Marsden published his translation of the documents
under the title Protocols of the Learned Elders of Zion and he did die under suspicious
circumstances a few years afterwards.
Following the publication of the book by the Britons Publishing Society, Mr. Marsden was
denounced internationally as a bare faced anti-Semitic liar. The book caused one of the greatest
controversies the world has ever known. My own research work has caused me to believe that
the documents published by professor Nilus in Russia in 1905 as Jewish Peril and by Mr.
Marsden in England in 1921 as Protocols of the Learned Elders of Zion are the long range plans
of the Illuminati which was explained by Amschel Rothschild to his associates in Frankfort in
1773. Rothschild was not addressing rabbis and elders. He was addressing bankers,
industrialists, scientists, economists, etc. Therefore to charge this diabolical conspiracy as a
crime against the whole Jewish people and their religious leaders is unjust. I am supported in
this opinion by one of the highest ranking intelligence Officers in the British Service. He
studied the matter in Russia, Germany, and England.
That the document which fell into the hands of Professor Nilus had been used as material for
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (11 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
lectures to instruct leaders of the W.R.M. cannot be doubted because in addition to the original
outline of the conspiracy there are additional remarks which explain how the plot had been put
into effect; and how Darwinism, Marxism, and Neitzche-ism had been used since 1773.
Mention is also made saying how it was intended to use political Zionism to service the purpose
of the W.R.M. in the future ... the Illuminati.
The term Agentur contained in the document would seem to indicate an individual; a group; a
race; a nation; a creed; or any other agency that could be used as a tool or an instrument to
further the Long Range Plan of the Illuminati for ultimate world domination.
Regardless of its origin, no person who has read it can deny that the trend of world events has
followed the programme suggested in the document from 1773 to date. No one can be
otherwise than amazed at the deadly accuracy of the forecast made in the document.
To give only one glaring instance of many. The document outlines how Zionism shall be aided
to reach its objectives. Theodore Herzl was the founder of the Zionist Movement. He is
recorded as saying : “From the first moment I entered the Zionist movement my eyes were
directed towards England, because I saw by reason of the general conditions there the
Archimedean point where the lever could be applied.” Then again : “When we sink (the we
referring to Zionists) we become a revolutionary proletariat; the subordinate officers of the
revolutionary party; when we rise, there rises also our terrible power of the purse.” [14]
More amazing still, and getting back to near the time the document came into professor Nilus’s
possession, Max Nordeu, addressing the Zionist Congress held in Basel, Switzerland, August
1903, is quoted as saying : “Let me tell you the following words as if I were showing you the
rungs of a ladder leading upward and upward... The Zionist Congress : The English Uganda
proposition : The future World War : The Peace Conference where, with the help of England, a
free and Jewish Palestine will be created.” The fact to remember is this — these men who were
outstanding leaders of the Zionist Movement probably spoke in all sincerity. History proves,
however, that the small select group, who have in the past, and still do, comprise ‘The Secret
Power’ behind the World Revolutionary Movement, have used both Communism and Zionism
to further their own selfish totalitarian ambitions.
The contents of the document translated by Mr. Marsden detail the “Party Line” as followed by
the Bolshevik revolutionary leaders under the leadership of Lenin and Stalin, just as it details
the policy followed by the leaders of the Zionist movement. Lord Sydenham read the document
and then remarked : “The most striking characteristic ... is knowledge of a rare kind, embracing
the widest field ... knowledge upon which prophesies now fulfilled are based.”
Henry Ford studied this document. He had many outstanding and learned men study it also. He
published a book of amazing disclosures, all of which add up to the sum total that the document
details the plan by which a small group of international financiers have used, and still use,
Communism, Zionism, and all other agencies they can control, regardless of whether they be
Jewish or Gentile, to further their own secret totalitarian ambitions.
Mr. Henry Ford was interviewed in regard to the document by a reporter of the New York
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (12 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
World. His comments were published February 17th, 1921. He said : “The only statement I
care to make about the Protocols is that they fit in with what is going on. They are sixteen years
old, and they have fitted the world situation up to this time. They fit it now.”
Mr. Ford made his statement thirty-four years ago and what he said then is equally applicable to-
day. This should prove to any unbiased person that the document is a genuine copy of the
originally conceived plan which has been put into practice. It has almost achieved the purpose
for which it was intended.
One may well ask “How long are the people going to stand for such a state of affairs?”
Revolution is not the answer. Revolution only plays into the hands of the powers of evil. Only
the indignant voice of the masses of all free nations can insist that their elected representatives
end the totalitarian plans of the money-lenders before they reach their goal.
From 1921 to 1927 Mr. Marsden remained in the employ of the Morning Post. He had many
friends but he had made powerful enemies. In 1927 he was chosen to accompany the Prince of
Wales on his ‘Tour of the Empire’. It is very unlikely that Mr. Marsden failed to avail himself
of this opportunity to inform His Royal Highness in regard to the document and the manner in
which international financiers were involved in international intrigue and the Communist and
Zionist movements. When the Prince of Wales returned from his tour of the Empire he was a
very changed man. He was no longer ‘A gay young blade’. He was much more matured and
had assumed the serious role of ‘Good Will Ambassador of the British Empire’. It may be pure
coincidence, but Mr. Marsden, whose health had improved greatly during his travels abroad,
took suddenly ill the day after he arrived back in England and died a few days later. It reminds
one of what Mr. E. Scudder wrote regarding the death of Mirabeau in his book The Diamond
Necklace. “King Louis of France was not ignorant of the fact that Mirabeau had been
poisoned.” Mirabeau died because he had told the king of France who the real instigators of the
French Revolution were.
Everyone who has had the privilege of knowing the present Duke of Windsor knows how
deeply he was affected by his experiences at ‘The Front’ during the 1914-1918 war. He insisted
on spending a great deal of time in the Front Lines cheering and encouraging the troops. He
won their admiration and loyalty, and in return he loved and respected his future subjects who
fought so well and died so bravely.
After the tour of the Empire, His Royal Highness took a great interest in social and economic
problems. He visited the coal mining districts and entered the miners’ homes. He chatted with
miners and their families regarding their problems. He wanted to dispense with many of the
frills which encumber royal ceremonial proceedings. He had the audacity to disagree when
statesmen and politicians tendered him advice he knew was unsound. He dared to express his
opinions in regard to Foreign Affairs. He was alert and opposed to any proposed government
policy which might play into the hands of ‘The Secret Powers’ and lead the country into another
war.
After he was proclaimed king, January 20th, 1936, he took his responsibilities even more
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (13 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
seriously. He didn’t intend to be just ‘another king’ on the international chess-board, to be
moved here and there at the will of the Powers-behind-the-throne, until he had been
manoeuvred into a position of stalemate or checkmate. It became quite evident he had a mind
and a will of his own. A king with his knowledge and character-istics can be a serious obstacle
to the men who are determined to have affairs of State managed according to their plans. He
had to be got rid of.
From the time he became associated with Mr. Marsden be had been subjected to a modern
version of “L’Infamie”. A whispering campaign of slander hinted that he was ‘wild’ and
inclined to licentious conduct. He was accused of leaning to the ‘Right’ and being associated
with Sir Oswald Mosley’s Fascist movement. [15]
When his friendship with Mrs. Wally Simpson was discovered, the full power of the ‘leftist’
press was turned loose on them and, regardless of his position, the vilest insinuations were
made, and the worst possible construction placed on their relationship. This was exactly the
kind of situation his enemies could use to further their own unscrupulous plane, The Prime
Minister of Great Britain was given his orders. In 1936 Mr. Baldwin carried out their mandate
in regard to King Edward VIII’s abdication in exactly the same way Messrs Lloyd George,
Churchill and Balfour had carried out their mandate in regard to the Palestine Mandate in 1919.
King Edward was manoeuvred into a position in which he either had to make Mrs. Simpson his
‘Morganatic’ wife, and lose the love and affection of his subjects, or he had to abdicate and
marry her. He took the only course a gentleman could take under the circumstances.
The reader may wonder why the document over which there is so much controversy cropped up
in 1901. The answer is to be found in the fact that the artificially created depression in 1893
brought about conditions favourable to war. The international bankers met in London to
consolidate their position, and work out the details for the Boer War. They considered this war
necessary in order to obtain control of the African gold fields and diamond mines. The Jameson
Raid took place as scheduled January 1st, 1896. This led to the most unjustifiable war the
British have ever fought. Winston Churchill hot-footed it to Africa to act as observer.
Officially he was a war correspondent. A great deal regarding this period of history remains to
be written.
The details leading to the Spanish-American War had to be worked out. This war gave the
American bankers control over sugar production in Cuba. More important still was the business
that had to be transacted in regard to the war scheduled to take place between Russia and Japan
in 1904. This business was very complicated. Matters had to be so arranged. that while the
Rothschilds financed the Russians, Kuhn-Loeb and Co. of New York financed the Japanese, An
understanding had to be reached by which both groups made money while the Russian Empire
was weakened, and made ready for the Menshevist revolution scheduled to take place in 1905.
While the international bankers met in the financial district of London, the leaders of the World
Revolutionary Movement met in the slum-district of the same city. Lenin received his orders.
He was told how he should manage the various revolutionary groups so that independent action
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (14 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
on their part would not seriously interfere with the overall plans of those who directed the W.R.
M. It has been proved that the Directors of the W.R.M. used the heads of the Grand Orient
Lodges in France, and other countries, to further their revolutionary plans, therefore it is
reasonable to suppose that an agent was sent from London to Paris in 1900 or 1901 to instruct
the top-level executives of the Grand Orient Lodges in regard to the part they were to play to
bring about the programme of wars and revolutions agreed upon, in exactly the same way they
had sent the agent who was killed in Ratisbon, from Frankfort to Paris in 1785. It is just another
illustration of how and why history repeats itself.
__________________
1 This military plan had been in existence since before 1914 and was reported to the Allied Governments fighting
World War One by intelligence officers of both the British and American armed forces. The plan is explained in
detail in Hell’s Angels of the Deep and Check Mate in the North by W.G. Carr.
2 This statement and others of a similar nature prove that Hitler never had accepted or agreed with the extreme Nazi
War-Lords’ Long Range Plan for World domination by Military conquest.
3 Once again rabid anti-Semitism shows itself and yet history proves that the International conspirators have used
every race and creed to serve their own secret and selfish ambitions.
4 Most of this evidence is reproduced in The Palestine Plot by B. Jensen, printed by John McKinley, 11-15 King
Street, Perth, Scotland.
5 The book Coningsby was published in 1844 just before Karl Marx published “The Communist Manifesto”. At
that time several revolutions were being planned and took place immediately after Karl Marx’s book appeared in
print.
6 Ribbentrop was evidently quoting from an article Weiner Freie Presse published December 14th, 1912 by the late
Walter Rathenau in which he said, “Three hundred men, each of whom is known to all the others, govern the fate of
the European Continent and they elect their successors from their own entourage.” These are the Illuminati.
7 Most countries of the world were mired deep in economic depression.
8 Hitler closed all Grand Orient Lodges in Germany.
9 Quoted from the Evening Standard, London, dated April 28, 1936. For further particulars regarding Lord
Londonderry’s conversations with Hitler, Goering, and Von Ribbentrop read Ourselves and Germany published by
Lord Londonderry.
10 For the full text of these letters read, The Rulers of Russia by Rev. Fr. Fahey pp. 64-70.
11 The opening paragraph of this letter confirmed the opinion reached by the author i.e. the extreme Nazi plan was
at variance with Hitler’s plan.
12 The author personally informed both the Canadian Chief of Naval Staff, the First Lord of the Admiralty and
other government officials regarding this sorry state of affairs.
13 For further particulars regarding international finance read Wealth, Virtual Wealth and Debt by Professor Soddy,
pp. 290 and on.
14 Theodore Herzl in A Jewish State (Judenstaat) re-quoted from p. 45 of The Palestine Plot by B. Jensen.
15 As recently as November 1954, this old slander regarding the Duke of Window’s connection with Fascism was
revived. He was accused in the Press of having given secret information to German officials regarding allied
defences and plans in 1936. This he vigorously denied.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (15 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
C HAPTER S EVENTEEN
World War Two Breaks Out
After King Edward VIII abdicated, many well-educated Britishers, including members of
parliament and retired naval and military officers of high rank carried on a strenuous campaign
to try to convince the leaders of the British government of the truth regarding “The International
Bankers’ Conspiracy”. Amongst these were Capt. A.H.M. Ramsay and Admiral Sir Barry
Domvile, K.B.E., C.B., C.M.G. Captain Ramsay was educated at Eton College and Sandhurst
Military College. He served with His Majesty’s Guards in France from 1914 to 1916 when he
was seriously wounded. He was appointed to Regimental H.Q. after recovering from his
wounds. Later he was transferred to the British War Office. He served with the British War
Mission in Paris until the war ended. He was elected to parliament in 1931 as member for
Midlothian-Peeblesshire and served in that capacity until 1945.
Admiral Sir Barry Domvile had a brilliant naval career. He earned the reputation of being one
of Britain’s better Gunnery Officers.
He started his naval service 1894 as a midshipman in sail and steam driven warships. Because
of ability, he received accelerated promotion and was made lieutenant in 1898. In 1906 he was
awarded the gold medal of the Royal United Services Institution. He was placed in command of
destroyers in 1910. When World War I appeared unavoidable he was appointed assistant
secretary to the Committee of Imperial Defence. After hostilities started he was appointed to
the Harwich Striking Force consisting of light Cruisers and destroyers under Admiral Sir
Reginald Tyrwhitt. He commanded seven destroyers and light cruisers all of which earned an
enviable reputation as “Fighting Ships”. He was made “Flag Captain to Admiral Tyrwhitt in
1917 and served in that capacity until the end of the war. [16] His postwar service included
Director of Naval Intelligence; president of the Royal Naval College, Greenwich; and vice-
admiral commanding the War College. He retired in 1936 with the rank of full Admiral.
During the years 1920-1923, because of his special ability and varied war experience, he was
first, assistant director, and subsequently, director of the Plan (Policy) Division of the Admiralty
Naval Staff. In this capacity he attended a number of conferences at Paris, Brussels, Spa, San
Remo, and the Washington Naval Conference.
Both these ex-officers, one army — the other navy, suspected the Bolshevik revolution in
Russia had been plotted and planned, financed and directed, by men who considered the
liquidation of the British Empire was essential before they could achieve undisputed control of
the wealth, natural resources, and manpower of the entire world.
Both these gentlemen have been frank to admit that until 1935 they had failed to identify those
who constituted the “Secret Power” behind the world revolutionary movement and international
affairs.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (16 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
In 1933, by reason of their studies and research, they reached a decision that the leaders of
World Jewry, headed by the international Jewish bankers, were the “Secret Power” behind the
World Revolutionary Movement. They became convinced that these men used the wealth they
possessed to purchase sufficient power to influence international affairs in such a manner as to
bring nations into conflict with each other. They also reached the conclusion that the motive
behind the Long Range Plan was to establish the Messianic Age, so that International Jewry,
with a central government in Palestine, could enforce their totalitarian ideology upon the
peoples of the entire world. With this latter conclusion I agree. As the reader knows, I admit
going through the same period i.e., 1907 to 1933 in doubt and uncertainty, but in 1939 I became
convinced, after the way the Jews had been “purged” by Stalin in Russia, and used to start
abortive revolutions in other countries, and then abandoned to their fate, that the men who
constitute the “Secret Power” behind national and international affairs were the Illuminati who
used Zionism and anti-Semitism; Communism and Fascism; Socialism and selfish Capitalism
to further their secret plans to bring about a One World Government which they intended to
control in exactly the same way as they had controlled Russia, in the person of Lenin, after
October 1917. A world wide dictatorship is the only type of government which could, by police
rule, enforce their edicts upon the people, and thus assure peace. If there is only ONE STATE
governed by ONE DICTATOR , there can’t be any wars. This is pure logic, because to have a
dispute — a quarrel — a fight — a revolution — or a war, there must of necessity be two
individuals, holding opposing ideas and opinions which they intend to make the other party
accept by force of arms if argument and negotiation fail. Furthermore, my studies and research
convinced me that from the time of Christ right down to the present day, the men who have
been the “Secret Power” behind national and international intrigue have always used their
wealth illegally to obtain the power and influence to put their secret plots and plans into effect.
They have used usury, bribery, corruption, graft, illegal methods of traffic and trade, slavery,
assassinations, wars, revolutions, prostitution, drugs, liquor, and any and every other form of
licentiousness and vice to bribe, blackmail, or in other ways force unwilling humans to do their
bidding. These “tools”, be they Jew or Gentile, Freemason or otherwise, have been, without
exception, liquidated by one method or another if, after serving their purpose, they were
considered to know too much.
Considering these facts, I became convinced that the top conspirators did not belong to any one
race or nation; they were “Agents of Satan”, doing his will, and serving his purpose, here on
earth. The one and only purpose of the Devil is to win the souls of men away from Almighty
God. The men who plot and plan wars and revolutions have done a great deal to bring about a
Godless world. This reasoning enabled me to understand the evil genius of these men. They
could not move nearer to their totalitarian-materialistic goal without fomenting wars and
revolutions. They must of necessity destroy the civilization founded in accordance with the
Divine Plan of Creation before they could impose their evil totalitarian ideology upon the
peoples of the world.
Both Captain Ramsay and Admiral Domvile tried from 1936 to 1939 to prevent Britain
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (17 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
becoming engaged in war with Germany, because they considered “international Jewry”
intended to arrange a war in which the German and British Empires would destroy each other.
The people who survived could be easily subjugated by Communism afterwards in exactly tile
same way Russia had been communized.
I agree that World War II was engineered by the Illuminati who used anti-Communism, anti-
Fascism, anti-Semitism and anti-everything else to further their evil Long Range Plans and
secret totalitarian ambitions. I arrived at the conclusion that it was a fatal mistake to be anti
anything but anti-evil. I believe the only way to defeat the diabolical international conspiracy is
to educate as many people as possible in regard to tile truth and convince them that they have
been used as “Pawns in the Game” by these evil men.
Captain Ramsay tried hard to Convince Mr. Neville Chamberlain that it was against the best
interests of tile British Empire to allow the international conspirators to involve Britain in war
with Germany. He was right. He did not convince the British Prime Minister, but he at least
impressed him sufficiently so that when he went to Munich he compromised with Hitler and
returned to England waving exuberantly his famous umbrella, and a paper which he said was an
agreement “Guaranteeing Peace in Our Time”.
Immediately this announcement was made, the Press, controlled by the international bankers,
started an anti-Fascist campaign of hate. The controlled Press damned Chamberlain as “An old
woman willing to buy Peace at any price.” They lampooned him with his umbrella. They
accused him of being Pro-Fascist. Their agents in Moscow burned Chamberlain in effigy in the
public squares. The British public was never allowed to know the difference between Pagan
Aryan Naziism, and Christian Anti-Communistic Fascism. According to the Press, German and
Italian Fascism are both black-pagan atheistic ideologies and totalitarian in purpose. Few
people understand the difference between Naziism and Fascism and Communism and Socialism.
Space does not permit recording all the details of the intrigue put into effect by the evil group
who were determined to bring about way between Britain and Germany. In my opinion,
Hitler’s anti-Semitic policy was wrong, but throwing Britain and Germany at each other’s
throats wasn’t going to save the Jews residing in Germany, Poland, and other countries from
persecution and death. Forcing the countries into a war enabled the anti-Semitic hatreds of the
Nazis to be vented on the Jews by direct action on a tremendous scale, with a hideous ferocity
only witnessed previously during a revolutionary “Reign of Terror”. If those who claim the
way was brought about by the international Jews, and not the Illuminati, (who don’t give a
damn for the Jews or anybody else for that matter) would stop and think, they will realize that
by fomenting World War II those responsible condemned a great many innocent Jewish people
to death, while most of the Jewish revolutionary Communists escaped death by going
“underground” and later obtained illegal entrance into Palestine, the U.S.A., Canada, and other
countries. If peace had continued, the German anti-Semitic feelings could never have reached
the extremes they reached during the war. A peaceful solution could have been found for the
problem. But NO ! The Long Range Plan of the International Illuminati called for the
destruction of the British, the German Empires, and the Jews who were not actively
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (18 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
Communistic and therefore not their “Tools”.
Captain Ramsay had promised Mr. Neville Chamberlain that he would produce documentary
evidence to prove a conspiracy existed to force Britain into declaring war on Germany. This
evidence consisted of secret coded cables which had passed between Mr. Winston Churchill and
President Roosevelt, unknown to Mr. Chamberlain, the then Prime Minister. Captain Ramsay
offered to obtain copies of these documents to prove that the International Bankers were
determined to bring about World War II for the purpose of bringing the rest of the European
nations under Communist control. The Illuminati control both.
Tyler Kent was the coding officer who had coded and decoded these secret documents in the
American Embassy in London. Anna Wolkoff was his assistant. Like Gouzenko they felt sick
at the thought of the world being plunged into another Global War to further the ambitions of a
few totalitarian-minded men whose wealth compelled even presidents and top-level statesmen
to do their will. The same conditions existed in 1938 as existed in Paris in 1919, prior to the
signing of the Treaty of Versailles.
Tyler Kent, like many other people, knew Captain Ramsay was suspicious of “An international
Jewish conspiracy”. He knew Captain Ramsay was trying to prevent the war. When Captain
Ramsay told him Mr. Chamberlain would prevent such a conspiracy from being put into effect
if he was given authentic documentary evidence to prove such an international conspiracy did
actually exist, Tyler Kent offered to show Captain Ramsay the damning documents in his flat at
47 Gloucester Place, London.
The international conspirators had, however, been busy. In March, 1939 they had tricked Mr.
Chamberlain into signing a guarantee to protect Poland from German aggression by presenting
him with a false report to the effect that a 48-hour ultimatum had been delivered by Germany to
the Poles. The facts are that the German government did not issue any 48-hour ultimatum. The
German note set forth reasonable suggestions for a “peaceful” solution of the problems created
by the Treaty of Versailles in regard to the Polish Corridor and Danzig.
History will prove that the only reason the Polish government ignored the German note was
because agents of the international conspirators advised its leading statesmen that the British
guarantee assured them against German aggression.
Month after month went by and still Poland ignored the German note completely. Meanwhile
the anti-German Press speeded up its torrents of abuse against Hitler because he had dared to
defy the power of the international Money-Barons. Hitler had earned their hatred by his
independent financial policy and monetary reforms. The public was made to believe, and at
that tine I was also made to believe, that Hitler’s word couldn’t be trusted. The public was told
after his “Putsch” into Sudetenland, that Hitler had said he “intended to make no further
demands.” It was made to appear by the press that the German note to Poland suggesting a
“peaceful” solution to the problems created by the Treaty of Versailles was “another demand”,
and therefore, “a broken promise”.
History proves it was no such thing. What Hitler had said was that he would make no further
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (19 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
demands AFTER he had rectified the injustices inflicted upon the German people by those who
had dictated the terms and conditions incorporated into the Treaty of Versailles. That is a horse
of a very different colour. It is a typical example of how a half-truth is far more dangerous than
a direct lie.
Hitler’s promise was qualified. He promised he would make no further demands after the
problems involving Sudetenland, part of Czechoslovakia, the Polish Corridor and Danzig, had
been solved.
The German grievances were real and justified. By the Treaty of Versailles the Polish Corridor
had separated East Prussia from the rest of Germany. Danzig, a purely German city, had been
isolated; the Germans who had remained in the territory which became known as
Czechoslovakia, had been persecuted; the expressed wish of the Austrian people to unite with
Germany, for their own protection against Communist aggression, had been denied. Generally
speaking, public opinion in the Western World has been moulded to blame France and the
nations which formed the ‘Little Entente’ for insisting on this policy towards Germany. It
cannot be denied that the post-war policy of the Allied Powers towards Germany was in direct
contradiction to the principles of “Self-Determination” which had been accepted by the
governments involved on behalf of the people who had elected them to manage their affairs.
Each succeeding German democratic chancellor had tried by diplomatic negotiation to obtain
redress and had failed. It was their failure to obtain justice by peaceful means that influenced
the German people when they swept Hitler to power. Winston Churchill labeled Hitler “That
Monstrous Abortion of lies and deceits”, but it cannot truthfully be denied that in 1939 Hitler
was trying once again to arrange a peaceful solution of the problems created by the Polish
Corridor, and Danzig, when the agents of the international conspirators deceived Prime Minister
Chamberlain into believing that Hitler had issued an ‘Ultimatum’ to the Polish government and
had moved in his armies to back up his demands. It was this act of deception that caused Mr.
Chamberlain to reluctantly advise His Majesty’s government to declare war on Germany.
This is a grave accusation to make, but its truth and justification is proved by the fact that
exactly the same thing happened all over again towards the end of, and immediately after the
end of, World War II.
It would be ridiculous to suppose that sincere, Christian statesmen could repeat, and compound,
such injustices as those perpetrated by the Treaty of Versailles. But these injustices were
repeated by the Allied Powers by the adoption of the policy of unconditional surrender; by the
adoption of the Stalin-White-Morgenthau Economic Plan; by the partitioning of Germany; by
the evil motives behind the German re-armament plan; by the post-war crisis with France; and
(as will be explained in another chapter) by the dangerous game that has been played between
the international financial interests, and the Soviet and Chinese dictators, since the war with
Japan ended. Any unbiased person must admit that it is not the common people of the
democracies who demand that their governments carry out such a policy of hatred and injustice
against the German people. It is not the elected representatives of the people who conceive
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (20 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
these diabolical programmes of persecution and irritation. It is the evil powers behind the
scenes of government who are responsible. Their evil policy is based on devilish cunning.
They know that a house divided against itself must surely fall. That nations divided against
each other must surely be subjugated also. The more human beings are forced to fight each
other, the stronger grow those who sit back and push them into the wars. By allowing this
secret scheming, plotting, and planning to continue we are allowing the forces of evil to make
us commit national and racial suicide.
When Hitler tired waiting for Poland’s reply, and of being insulted by the Allied Press, he
moved his armies into Poland. Britain then declared war in accordance with her agreement.
The criminal nature of the advice given Poland can be realized by the fact that although Britain
declared war on Germany she was powerless to give Poland any direct aid, either naval,
military, or with air-power.
No lesser an authority than Lord Lothian, who was in recent years British Ambassador to the
United States, stated in the last speech he made at Chatham House : “If the principles of self-
determination had been applied in Germany’s favour, as it was applied against her, it would
have meant the return of Sudetenland, Czechoslovakia, parts of Poland, the Polish Corridor, and
Danzig to the Reich.”
It is safe to assume that had the British people been permitted to be correctly informed regarding
these matters they would never have permitted war to have been declared. But it was “War”,
not Truth or Justice, upon which the international conspirators were determined.
Even though Britain had declared war, Hitler refused to depart from the policy he had set forth
in Mein Kampf regarding Britain and her Empire. He ordered the generals, in command of the
famous Panzer Corps, to halt on May 22nd, 1940, when they could easily have driven the
British armies into the sea or made them surrender. Captain Liddell Hart in his book The Other
Side of the Hill quotes Hitler’s telegram to General Von Kleist :
“The armoured divisions are to remain at medium artillery range from Dunkirk. Permission is only
granted for reconnaissance and protective movements.”
General Von Kleist was one of the Germans who didn’t agree with Hitler’s policy towards
Britain. He decided to ignore the order. Captain Hart quotes Von Kleist as telling him after the
event.
“Then came a more emphatic order. I was ordered to withdraw behind the canal. My tanks were
kept halted there for three days.” [17]
Captain Hart next quotes a conversation which took place between Hitler, Marshall Von
Runstedt, and two members of his staff. According to Marshal Von Runstedt “Hitler then
astonished us by speaking with admiration of the British Empire; of the necessity of its
existence, and of the civilization that Britain had brought into the world ... He compared the
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (21 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
British Empire with the Catholic Church — saying they were both essential elements of stability
in the world. He said all he wanted from Britain was that she should acknowledge Germany’s
position on the continent; the return of Germany’s lost colonies would be desirable but not
essential; and he would even support Britain with troops if she should be involved in
difficulties anywhere. He concluded by saying that his aim was to make peace with Britain on a
basis that she would regard compatible with her honour.”
Thus it was that Britain was given time to organize her evacuation forces and get her soldiers
back home from Dunkirk.
It will be recalled that for the first few months of the Second World War Hitler did not bomb
Britain. While Neville Chamberlain remained Prime Minister, Britain did not bomb Germany.
The controlled press called it “A Phony War”.
It is quite obvious that two great empires cannot destroy each other if they will not fight.
Chamberlain would not initiate the offensive because he was almost convinced that he had been
the victim of international intrigue. Mr. Winston Churchill had been given full powers and
responsibilities regarding all naval, military, and air operations. He decided he would take the
initiative.
Churchill conceived the idea of “The Norway Gamble”. This poorly planned, and executed,
“combined operations” involved Britain’s army, navy, and air force. It was doomed to failure
before those involved ever got into action. Even a person with only an elementary knowledge
of military strategy would have realized that such an operation could not possibly succeed
unless the invading forces had control of the Kattegat and Skagerrack. Churchill had this fact
pointed out to him by competent naval authorities. Churchill is not a fool, but he went ahead
with his project in opposition to his naval and military advisers, exactly as he had done when he
sent the Naval Divisions to save Antwerp in 1914; and when he insisted upon the invasion of
Gallipoli in 1915. The results in all three of “Churchill’s Gambles” were the same. No gains,
severe reverses, exceptionally heavy casualties, and loss of valuable equipment and materials.
The fiasco of “The Norway Gamble” was not blamed on Churchill, however. His friends, “The
international Money-Barons” used their controlled press to release their full powers of hatred,
criticism, invective, censure, sarcasm, and satire against the Prime Minister, Mr. Chamberlain.
They wanted Chamberlain out of the way so they could put Winston Churchill in his place and
turn the “Phony War” into a “Shooting War”.
This propaganda campaign forced Chamberlain to resign, exactly as Mr. Asquith had been
forced to resign in 1915. Thus, once again, history repeats itself. In May, 1940, Churchill again
joined hands with the Socialists to form a new government.
Mr. J.M. Spaight, C.B., C.B.E., was the principal assistant secretary to the British Air Ministry
during World War II. In his book Bombing Vindicated, published in 1944, he reveals that the
ruthless bombing of German cities started on May 11th, 1940, the evening of the day Winston
Churchill became Prime Minister. Britain started the bombing and, as was to be expected,
Germany retaliated. Thus the war was placed on a destructive basis.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (22 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
Mr. Spaight also reveals that on September 2nd, 1939, when Mr. Chamberlain was still in
office, a declaration had been made by the British and French governments that “Only strictly
Military objectives, in the narrowest sense of the word, would be bombarded.” Churchill’s
policy to bomb open towns and cities has been defended but it never can be justified.
There is another point, not generally known, that needs to be mentioned. It has been recorded
that many German generals did not agree with Hitler’s policies. The Nazi War Lords knew they
had to get Hitler out of the way, and subjugate the Communist Dictatorships controlled by
Stalin, before they could carry out their Long Range Plan for world domination. The all-out-
war against Britain was not in keeping with their programme. Russian Communism, and the
Jews, had to be subjugated and destroyed before they could launch their attack westward and
subjugate Britain and the United States. This was the Nazi Plan, not the Fascist policy. The
Nazi plan was international in scope. The Fascist cause was national.
A secret meeting of Nazi War Lords was held in May, 1941. They decided they would use Herr
Hitler’s friendly policy towards Britain to try to get Britain to call off the war against Germany.
Rudolf Hess was instructed to fly to Scotland and contact Lord Hamilton and Churchill, so he
could try to influence the British government to sign a Peace Treaty.
Hess was instructed to tell the British government that if they would sign a Peace Treaty the
German generals would get rid of Hitler and then concentrate all their military power on the
destruction of Communism in Russia and other European countries. Hitler knew nothing of this
plan.
Hess flew to Scotland, but Churchill refused to agree to the offer made by Hess. The German
generals then persuaded Hitler to undertake an all out offensive against Russia, pointing out that
until Russia was defeated they could not extend their military operations outside of Germany
without undertaking the serious risk of being stabbed in the back by Stalin when he considered
the moment opportune.
On June 22nd, 1941, German Forces invaded Russia. Immediately they took action to crush the
Communist menace Britain and the United States of America pooled their resources to aid
Stalin defeat the German armed forces. Convoys of ships were organized to carry munitions of
war to Russia via Murmansk and the Persian Gulf. [18]
During the Irish Rebellion, a security regulation 18-B had been passed by Order in Council to
enable the English police to detain and interrogate people they “suspected” might be members
of the Irish Republican Army intent on committing acts of annoyance or sabotage. In 1940 the
practice had been discontinued for many years.
On May 23rd, 1940, during the first two weeks of Mr. Churchill’s Premiership, he used this
obsolete regulation to arrest all the prominent people who had tried to prevent Britain from
being dragged into a war with Germany, prior to September, 1939, and those who had opposed
his policy to turn the Phony War into a Fighting War.
Many hundreds of British subjects were arrested without any charge being made against them.
They were thrown into prison without trial under Regulation 18-B which deprived them of the
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (23 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
rights and privileges of the Habeas Corpus Act. Magna Carta was ignored and ridiculed.
These wholesale arrests were made by the police on the unsupported statement of Mr. Herbert
Morrison that he, as Secretary of State, “had reasonable cause to believe the said persons had
been recently concerned in acts prejudicial to the public safety, in defence of the realm, or in the
preparation or instigation of such acts, and that by reason thereof, it was necessary to exercise
control over them.”
Captain Ramsay, Admiral Sir Barry Domvile, their wives and friends, and hundreds of other
citizens were thrown into Brixton prison. Some of them were detained until September, 1944.
[19] They were treated like criminals, and far worse than prisoners on remand.
Just prior to this outrageous action on the part of those who did the bidding of the international
bankers, the press controlled by the Money-Barons had conducted an hysterical propaganda
campaign claiming Germany had a strong and well-organized 5th Column in Great Britain
ready to give aid to invading German troops the moment they landed.
Subsequent investigation proved that the very competent British Intelligence Service never
produced at the time, or since, even the flimsiest evidence that any of those arrested were ever
engaged in any conspiracy.
There is plenty of evidence to prove that the newly formed British government, under Churchill,
was ordered to take this unjust action against all prominent and influential people in Britain who
had voiced their opinion that “International Jewry” had promoted the war between Britain and
Germany.
Just before the wholesale arrests were made, Mrs. Nicholson, the wife of Admiral Nicholson,
another very distinguished British naval officer, had been arrested as a result of a “Smear”
campaign. She had stated publicly she thought the plot to involve Britain in war with Germany
was the work of the international Jewish bankers. Four charges were actually ‘framed’ against
Mrs. Nicholson. She was tried by a judge and jury. She was acquitted on all counts. This
action on the part of the judge and jury did not suit those who were determined to persecute
people who objected to the international bankers in Britain, France, and America running the
affairs of the nation so as to inveigle them into another Global War. So the antiquated
Regulation 18-B was used to put them out of the way. The Phony War became a fighting war.
The British and German Empires weakened, as those who started the wars strengthened their
positions. The Illuminati laughed up their sleeve.
Notwithstanding the fact that Mrs. Nicholson had been exonerated of all guilt and blame
regarding the charges laid against her, she was among those arrested and imprisoned under
Regulation in 18-B in May, 1940.
Captain Ramsay tells the whole story of the events that led up to his arrest and imprisonment in
his book The Nameless War. Admiral Sir Barry Domvile tells of his experiences in his book
From Admiral to Cabin Boy. These are books which should be read by every person interested
in the continuance of freedom. [20]
Mr. Neville Chamberlain died in 1940. He was worn out in body and soul fighting “The Secret
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (24 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 16, 17
Powers” who govern from behind the scenes. So also had died Mr. William Pitt. But those who
swim with the tide of Illuminism, and do as they are told, usually live to a “Ripe Old Age”.
They are showered with earthly honour and worldly wealth. One thing is certain : They can’t
take wealth and honours with them when they die — and after death will come the judgment.
__________________________
16 The author published the story of the Harwich Striking Force in 1934, under title Brass Hats and Bell-Bottomed
Trousers.
17 The review of The Manstein Memoirs in the Globe and Mail, Toronto in 1955 confirms this statement.
18 I was one of Canada’s Naval Control Officers at this time. I felt it my duty to protest the policy which diverted
ships, that were sorely needed to take supplies to England, and send them to Murmansk. My protest was ignored.
The battle to save International Communism had started.
19 Mr. Herbert Morrison visited Canada in November 1954. He was Chief Speaker at a meeting held in Toronto to
raise funds for the support of ‘Political Zionism’. The author is informed that the U.S.A. Government agreed that
the British authorities arrest and detain Tyler Kent. This action was against all the accepted principles governing
personnel attached to Embassies in foreign countries. This matter was brought up again in the U.S.A. as recently as
1954 but nothing seems to have come of it.
20 While revising and editing this M.S.S. October, 1954, I received a later from the head of Publishing Firm in
England who had dared publish Admiral Domviles’ book. The letter said in part : “The ‘Evil Powers’, regarding
which you are so well informed, made things so difficult that I was ‘forced’ to go out of business after more than 50
years.”
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_16.html (25 of 25)5.4.2006 12:16:42William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
Guy Carr
Pawns in the Game
C HAPTER E IGHTEEN
The Present Dangers
By studying history it is possible to predict future trends with a certain degree of assurance.
History repeats itself because those who direct the W.R.M. do not CHANGE their Long Range
Plans — they simply adapt their policies to suit modern conditions and adjust their plans to take
full advantage of the advancement of modern science.
In order to understand the international situation as it is to-day, we must recall what has
happened since Lenin established the totalitarian dictatorship in Russia in 1918. It has been
proved that the dictatorship was established to provide the Western Internationalists with the
opportunity to put their totalitarian ideas and theories for a universal dictatorship into effect.
They wished to iron out any wrinkles by the process of trial and error.
When Lenin died Stalin took over. At first he was ruthlessly obedient to the dictates of the
international bankers. He appointed Béla Kun to put their ideas for the collectivization of farms
into effect in the Ukraine. When the farmers refused to obey the edict, five million were
systematically starved to death when their grain was taken from them forcibly. This grain was
dumped on the markets of the world to aggravate the artificially created depression. Another
five million farmers and peasants were sent to forced labour to teach the rest of the subjugated
people that the STATE was supreme and the Head of the STATE their God, whose edicts must be
obeyed.
It was not until Stalin began to purge a great number of Jewish Communist leaders, who were
undoubtedly Marxists, that Trotsky and other revolutionary leaders knew for certain that he had
abandoned the Illuminati and developed imperialistic ambitions.
Stalin’s conduct of the revolution in Spain perturbed the Western Internationalists still more,
particularly when Serges and Maurin proved Stalin was using international Communism to
further his own secret plans and imperialistic ambitions.
After Franco won the Civil War, Stalin’s conduct was very difficult to understand.
Revolutionary leaders in Canada and America just couldn’t follow the drastic changes in the
Party Line as they had been taught it during their indoctrination into the Marxian theories.
When Stalin signed the non-aggression pact with Hitler, after the British and German Empires
had been plunged into World War Two, it appeared as if Stalin wanted to do everything within
his power to aid Hitler overrun Western Europe and destroy the power of the international
bankers.
The situation looked so grave from the international bankers point of view that they decided
they had to try to persuade Stalin to abandon his imperialistic ambitions and go along with them
in a spirit of peaceful co-existence. They tried to persuade Stalin that it was quite feasible that
he should rule the Eastern World by Communism, while they ruled the Western World under a
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_18.html (1 of 18)5.4.2006 12:16:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
super-government. Stalin asked for proof of their sincerity. This was the beginning of the now
much talked about theory of peaceful co-existence. But peaceful co-existence between two
internationalistic groups; or between people who believe in God and those who believe in the
devil, is impossible.
By secret communications between Churchill and Roosevelt, which Tyler Kent exposed, it was
agreed that Chamberlain should be removed as Prime Minister so that Churchill could assume
office and turn the ‘Phony’ war into a ‘Hot’, and shooting war. They considered this act would
convince Stalin of the sincerity of their intentions.
History reveals that Mr. Chamberlain was ousted as Prime Minister in May 1940 in much the
same way Asquith was ousted in 1913. Churchill assumed office as Prime Minister May 11th,
1940. He ordered the R.A.F. to start bombing German cities and towns that same night. Mr. J.
M. Spaight, C.B., C.B.E., was principal assistant secretary at the Air Ministry at that time.
After the war he wrote a book Bombing Vindicated. In it he justifies Churchill’s policy to bomb
German cities and towns on the grounds that it was done to ‘Save civilization’. The author
admits however that Churchill’s order was a breach of the agreement entered into by Britain and
France on September 2nd, 1939. On that day the Prime Minister of Britain and the President of
the French Republic agreed that war must be declared on Germany because of Hitler’s invasion
of Poland; they also agreed they would NOT bomb German cities and towns, and make the
German people suffer for the sins of one man. The leaders of the two governments solemnly
agreed that bombing should be restricted to strictly military objectives in the narrowest sense of
the word.
Since the war it has been proved that the real reason Churchill bombed German cities, contrary
to the agreement, was because the Western international bankers wished to give Stalin a definite
assurance that they were sincere in their desire to carry out their suggested policy of peaceful co-
existence between Eastern Communism and Western Illuminism.
The bombing of Germany brought about immediate retaliation and the people of Britain were
subjected to an ordeal the like of which had never been experienced since the dawn of creation.
It is difficult for the average citizen to appreciate the depths to which those involved in
international intrigue can sink. It will be proved that the Illuminati had no intention of keeping
faith with Stalin. It will be proved Stalin had no intention to keep faith with them. It will also
be proved that the Nazi War Lords, while secretly determined to crush both international
Communism and international capitalism, actually tried to deceive Churchill into believing they
did not have secret plans for world domination by military conquest.
In the Spring of 1941 the Nazi War Lords, unknown to Hitler, ordered Hess to fly to Britain and
tell Churchill that if he would agree to end the war against Germany they would guarantee to get
rid of Hitler and then destroy Stalin and international Communism. After consultation with
Roosevelt, Churchill turned down the offer made by Hess.
The Nazi War Lords then tried to convince the Western internationalists of the sincerity of their
intentions by ordering Hitler’s assassination. The plot failed and Hitler escaped with his life.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_18.html (2 of 18)5.4.2006 12:16:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
When this act failed to charge the minds of those who were secretly instructing Churchill and
Roosevelt, the Nazi War Lords decided they must first attack Russia and defeat Stalin, and then
turn their military forces against Britain and the Americas. They launched their attack against
Russia June 22nd, 1941. Immediately this happened both Churchill and Roosevelt announced
publicly that they pledged their respective governments to support Stalin to the limit of their
resources. Churchill, ever dramatic, said he would shake hands with the Devil himself if he
promised to help him destroy German Fascism. He referred to Hitler as “That monstrous
abortion of lies and deceits”, and yet Churchill must have known that Hitler, for all his faults,
was not an internationalist.
This action was calculated to remove from Stalin’s mind any doubt, he might still have
regarding the honesty of the intentions of the Western internationalists to divide the world into
two halves and then live in peaceful co-existence. Roosevelt and Churchill then proceeded to
provide Stalin with unlimited aid. They borrowed astronomical sums from the international
bankers and paid them interest on the loans. They then charged the principal and interest to the
National debts of their two countries so that the tax payers paid for, and fought, the war
fomented by the Illuminati while the bankers sat back and made hundreds of millions of dollars
out of the deal. This extraordinary generosity with the people’s blood and money paved the
way for the meetings which ‘ THE BIG THREE ’ subsequently held in Tehran, Yalta, and Potsdam.
Stalin played a very cunning game at Tehran. He made it clear that he still suspected the
Western internationalists might be deceptive rather than sincere. He played at being difficult to
persuade, and very hard to get. He made outrageous demands. He demanded unreasonable
concessions. He implied that in making these demands he was only testing out the sincerity of
the men he knew only too well, from long experience, were the directors of the international
conspiracy. Roosevelt had been well briefed. He gave Stalin everything he asked for.
Churchill had to go along or lose the financial backing of the international money-lenders and
the military support of the United States.
Then came Yalta. Stalin changed his attitude. He pretended he had been won over. He became
the perfect host. Churchill and Roosevelt were dined and wined. Stalin dissolved the
Comintern. The Comintern was the executive body which had plotted and planned revolutions
in every country. Stalin, Roosevelt, and Churchill drank damnation to the Germans. Roosevelt
assured Stalin that after they were through there wouldn’t be enough German left to worry
about, he is reported to have advocated shooting 50,000 German officers without trial. The
controlled press has never stopped harping upon the Nazi policy of genocide against the Jews,
but it has been singularly silent in regard to Roosevelt’s policy of genocide against the
Germans. In return for the dissolution of the Comintern, Roosevelt gave Stalin more
concessions. Six hundred million human beings east of Berlin were handed over into
Communist bondage.
Churchill acquiesced in everything Roosevelt and Stalin did. History will prove that at the
Yalta meeting Stalin and Roosevelt had several secret meetings after Churchill had been dined
and wined too well to allow him to keep his wits alert. Roosevelt pretended to be friendly with
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_18.html (3 of 18)5.4.2006 12:16:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
Churchill but, on the evidence of his own son, he often said things, and suggested policies,
which showed, that secretly, he looked upon him with contempt.
Only Churchill can explain WHY he had to sit and listen to Roosevelt’s suggestions that Hong
Kong be given to Communist China to bribe Mao-Tse-Tung to play along with the Western
internationalists. How could Churchill profess publicly, such a close and sincere friendship for
Roosevelt when Roosevelt was constantly repeating that he considered the dissolution of the
British Commonwealth necessary to the future welfare of the human race ? Hitler thought just
the opposite.
But Stalin was nobody’s fool. He had been associated wilh the agents of the international
bankers so long that he could read their most secret thoughts like an open book. He knew better
than any man alive that they had used Communism to further their totalitarian ideas, so he
played them at their own game. During the final stages of the war he forced the Allied Armies
to halt and wait until his armies occupied Berlin.
The above statements are proved by the existence of a secret order issued by Stalin to the
General Officers of the Soviet Armies to explain his policy. The order is dated February 16th,
1943. It reads :
“The Bourgeois Governments of the Western Democracies, with whom we have entered into an
alliance, may believe that we consider it our sole task to throw the Fascists out of our land. We
Bolsheviks, and with us the Bolsheviks of the whole world, know that our real task will only begin
after the second phase of the war is ended. Then will begin for us the Third phase which for us is
the last and the decisive one ... the phase of the destruction of world capitalism. OUR SOLE GOAL IS,
AND IT REMAINS, THE WORLD REVOLUTION : THE DICTATORSHIP OF THE PROLETARIAT . We have
engaged in alliances because this was necessary, to reach the third phase, but our ways part where
our present allies will stand in our way in the achievement of our ultimate aim.”
Stalin did not show his true colours until after he had captured Berlin and occupied Eastern
Germany. Then he broke every promise he had made. This turn in events was kept out of the
Press because neither Roosevelt nor Churchill wished the public to know how Stalin, the bank
robber; the murderer; the international counterfeiter had put it over them like a blanket.
The Western internationalists just had to bide their time. They realised that if Stalin and Mao-
Tse-Tung joined forces the Communist hordes could sweep over the western world like a plague
of locusts. They reasoned that Stalin was getting old. They knew he hadn’t too long to live. It
was better to curry favour with him rather than have him spill the beans and expose the whole
diabolical conspiracy.
The Western capitalists considered Stalin’s open defiance a serious matter, but they had a trump
card up their sleeves. Before playing this card, they instructed Roosevelt to make one more
effort to bring Stalin back into line again. Roosevelt offered to grant anything Stalin demanded,
as far as the Far East was concerned, if only he would play along with the Western capitalists.
The controlled press have persistently reported that Roosevelt gave Stalin the concessions he
did in the Far East bebecause his military advisers had told him it would require two full years
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_18.html (4 of 18)5.4.2006 12:16:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
of heavy fighting, after the collapse of Germany, before Japan could be brought to her knees.
This lie is so apparent that it was really unnecessary for General MacArthur to give Roosevelt
the lie direct. The American generals knew that Japan had been trying to negotiate a peace for a
considerable time before Roosevelt made the concessions he did to Stalin.
Once again Stalin took all he could grab in Manchuria. He again reneged on his promises and
renewed his defiant attitude. This time the powers behind the White House administration were
really angry. They must have made some suggestion of such a diabolical nature that it even
shocked Roosevelt, for he sickened and died. It has been said that he died in the house of
Bernard Baruch. The Advisers of the United States government then decided to play their
trump card ... the atomic bomb. The atomic bombs were dropped on Hiroshima and Nagasaki
to indicate to Stalin what was in store for Russia unless he toed the line. The fact that America
had atomic bombs had been kept secret. Japan was already defeated when they were dropped.
Surrender was only a few days off. Over one hundred thousand human beings were sacrificed,
and twice that number injured in Japan, to demonstrate to Stalin that the United States actually
did have atomic bombs. Thus it is seen that Churchill ordered the unrestricted bombing of
Germany to try to fool Stalin into believing the international capitalists wanted to be friends,
and then the U.S.A. bombed Japan with atomic bombs to warn him that he better play along and
do as he was told ... or else.
Molotov was the one man best able to judge what was going on in Stalin’s brain. During the
post-war period Molotov was the Soviet’s Foreign Minister. He represented the Kremlin at the
United Nations for many years. Molotov married the daughter of Sam Karp of Bridgeport,
Connecticut. Thus Molotov became the connecting link between the Kremlin and the
international financiers of the Western World. It has been reliably reported that immediately
after Stalin withdrew Molotov from the United Nations he sent Molotov’s wife into exile in
Siberia. These acts alone strongly indicate that Stalin had broken with the Western capitalists
who had helped put him in power in Russia.
The fact that Tito broke with Stalin after the war ended is further proof that Stalin had
determined to go ahead with his imperialistic programme. Tito has always been subservient to
the western Financiers who supplied him with all the money he required to establish himself in
his present position in central Europe. Churchill’s son risked his life on more than one occasion
during World War Two by parachuting into Tito’s territories to confer with him on behalf of the
western powers.
Finally Stalin died or was disposed of. He left this world with his lips sealed like any other
gangster. The agents of the Western internationalists, located in Moscow, struck as soon as
Stalin died. Beria, and Stalin’s other trusted lieutenants, were done away with. Stalin’s son
disappeared without a trace.
In order that what was happening in Russia would not appear too obvious, it was arranged that
Malenkov should take over temporarily after Stalin’s death. He was ordered to decry the Great
Stalin and, for a time, he did deflate him in the eyes of the people. Then he changed his tactics.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_18.html (5 of 18)5.4.2006 12:16:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
He renewed friendly relations with the Chinese Dictator ; he started to make friends with the
Russian people; he sponsored the development of a spirit of national pride. By doing so he
sealed his own fate.
The Western internationalists countered with a demand that Western Germany be immediately
rearmed. France was the stumbling block. Mendes-France was placed in power long enough to
have France ratify the agreement to rearm Germany. Having served his purpose he was placed
amongst the discards as so many others have been.
The situation in the Far East has deliberately been confused but it is not difficult to explain. The
Western internationalists had friends in China, just as they had in Russia, but Mao-Tse-Tung
cannot be considered one of them. He and Stalin had very similar ideas in regard to the Western
internationalists. But both the Eastern and Western totalitarian-minded groups had one thing in
common ... They wished to get rid of Chiang-Kai-Shek.
The Western capitalists started a propaganda campaign against Chiang-Kai-Shek just as soon as
the Japanese war ended. This action had a two-fold purpose. They wanted to prove to Mao-Tse-
Tung that co-existence with them was feasible and, at the same time, they wished to eliminate
the nationalist leader. The press charged that the nationalist government was corrupt; that the
nationalist generals were lax, and did not maintain discipline amongst their troops; that the
nationalist troops committed pillage and publicly performed rapes. It is only right to admit that
many of the charges made against the nationalists were true.
The fact that many officials in the nationalist government in China were proved to be corrupt
was used to justify Great Britain’s policy to recognize the Communist regime. It was also used
by certain United States advisers as the grounds on which they advocated that America
withdraw support from Chiang-Kai-Shek. What the general public has not been told is the fact
that, after the Communists took over in China, it was proved that most of the high officials who
had brought ChiangKai-Shek and his nationalist government into disrepute were Communist
cells who had infiltrated into the nationalist government for the purpose of wrecking it from
within. This statement is substantiated by the fact that many of the nationalist government
officials, who came under criticism for corrupt practices, were absorbed into the Communist
regime, and given favoured positions and accelerated promotions. The Rev. Leslie Millin of
Toronto, who was a missionary in China during this period, will vouch for the truth of the above
statements.
The way international affairs developed after 1946 would indicate that Stalin did not have
atomic weapons at the time of his death. Had he possessed atomic weapons he could have
knocked the principal cities of Canada and the United States into a cocked hat.
Churchill has served their purpose as far as the international bankers are concerned. He is
growing old and a bit troublesome. He has to be relegated into the discard also. But Churchill
has been built up by the propaganda of the western Capitalists as a GREAT man. He is the
people’s national hero. He couldn’t very well be disposed of by a campaign of L’Infamie. He
couldn’t be ridiculed out of office. With rare cunning the Western internationalists disguised
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_18.html (6 of 18)5.4.2006 12:16:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
their intentions by ordering the Press to organize the greatest tribute a man ever load. On
Churchill’s eightieth birthday they showered him with gifts and honour. They convinced the
vast majority of people that Churchill didn’t have an enemy in the world.
Events indicate that both the Communist dictators and the Western internationalists were agreed
that Churchill could be an obstacle to the furtherance of their plans. The Communist dictators
decided they would use Aneurin Bevan to grease the skids under Churchill. They indicated this
to Communists throughout the entire world when the Chinese dictator Mao-Tse-Tung
entertained Attlee and Bevan at a banquet when they visited China in 1954. The international
press published pictures taken at this banquet.
It is unlikely that one person in a million, other than a Communist, understands the significance
of that picture. Attlee was shown as sitting at the head table. Bevan was shown as having been
placed at the bottom nearest the door. The general impression was that Attlee was the guest of
honour; and that Bevan was considered of very little significance as far as the Communist
regime in China, and the Soviets, were concerned. But this is how the public is confused and
deceived. In China it is customary to seat the Guest of honour nearest to the door.
In view of the events recorded it is reasonably safe to predict that in the near future the
following events will take place.
One. With or without his knowledge the Communist dictators will use Aneurin Bevan to help
oust Churchill by attacking his foreign policy in the House of Commons.
Two. That the Western internationalists will use Bevan’s attacks on Churchill as a lever to get
Bevan out of the British Labour party and parliament. At the same time they will get rid of
Churchill by casting doubts into the minds of the people regarding his ability to carry on
toplevel secret negotiations now he is past eighty. It is possible the Western internationalists
may lift the screen from secret diplomacy just sufficient to justify those chosen to lead the
attack. By doing so the threat would be implied that if he didn’t step down gracefully they
would make known all that went on behind the scenes at Tehran, Yalta, Potsdam, etc.
Three. It is safe to predict Churchill will step down immediately pressure is brought to bear on
him. It is equally safe to predict that Bevan will not step down. The chances are a hundred to
one that Attlee and Deakin will leave, or be removed, from the Labour party in Britain and that
Bevan will lead the party against Sir Anthony Eden when he decides to contest a general
election after taking over from Churchill. [1]
Four. The fact that Roosevelt’s son has given a glimpse of the fact that Churchill had to play
along with his father; and had to do as he was told, and even had to profess publicly his
friendship for the president after the president had so rudely told him that he favoured the
dissolution of the British Commonwealth of nations, is a clear indication as to the line of attack
the Western internationalists will take to get rid of, what so many people consider, ‘The Grand
Old Man of British Politics’.
The point to remember is this. The Nazi internationalists have, for all intents and purposes,
been eliminated from the game. Two totalitarian-minded groups of men remain ... the
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_18.html (7 of 18)5.4.2006 12:16:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
Communist dictators of Russia and China; and the Western capitalists or internationalists,
whichever one wishes to name them.
Just as long as both groups are satisfied to live in peaceful coexistence, with the world
practically divided between them, there will be an uneasy peace. But if the leaders of either side
decide that coexistence is too frail a structure upon which to build their respective New Orders
there will be war.
World War Three if started by the Eastern Communist dictators will begin without any
preliminary warning. An international general strike will be called in all capitalistic countries.
This action is calculated to produce the paralysis previously referred to. The Communist planes
will bomb all industrial centres to knock out the war potential of the United States and Canada
and kill as many of the population as possible in order to bring about speedy surrender and
subjugation. Britain will likely get the same treatment. Nerve Gas may be used on industrial
areas the enemy do not wish to destroy. Soviet forces will occupy the mining districts of
northern Canada from coast to coast. The occupied areas will be used as bases of operation
against the southern objectives. The international general strike will tie up shipping in every
port in the world making it impossible for supplies to reach the people of Great Britain. A
blockade of the British Isles by Soviet submarines will stop any leaks. The people of Britain
will be starved into submission four weeks after the outbreak of hostilities. The members of the
Communist underground in all cities in the western world will evacuate target areas
immediately before the attacks. The underground armies will return and take over the
devastated areas as soon as the “All-Clear” has been given. The Communist 5th Column will
round up and liquidate all people whose names are on the black list. Thus will the directors of
the Western internationalists be got rid of in much quicker time than they got rid of their Nazi
opponents by means of the Nuremberg Trials.
On the other hand, if the Western internationalists become convinced that an attack is to be
made upon them by the Communist dictators, then they will force the western democracies into
another World War in order that they may get in the first blow. As a prelude to their attack the
public will be made aware of the dangers of international Communism. The danger to Christian
democracy will be emphasized. The atheistic-materialists, who have the western world in
economic bondage, will call for a Christian Crusade. They will justify their atomic attacks upon
Russia and China as Churchill justified his attack on Germany. They will say it was necessary
to save our civilization. But don’t lets fool ourselves. Regardless of how the case may be
presented to the public the fact will remain that if World War Three is allowed to take place it
will be fought to decide whether Eastern Communism takes over the entire world or whether the
Western capitalists will continue to rule the international roost.
If World War Three is permitted to take place, the devastation will be so extensive that
internationalists will continue to justify their contentions that ONLY a world government, backed
up by an international police force, can solve the various national and international problems
without resorting to further wars. This argument will appear very logical to many people who
overlook the fact that both the Eastern Communist leaders, and the Western capitalist leaders,
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_18.html (8 of 18)5.4.2006 12:16:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
intend to ultimately bring into effect, THEIR ideas for an atheistic-totalitarian dictatorship.
People who wish to remain FREE can follow only one plan of action. They must support
Christianity against ALL forms of atheism and secularism. They must support private
responsible enterprise against cartels and combines. They must support those who advocate
‘The New Economy’ against those who would continue with the old.
When a person is in doubt regarding the right and wrong of anything, all he or she needs to do
to solve his or her uncertainty is recite the first half of the Lord’s Prayer SLOWLY and
contemplate on the meaning of those wonderful words of wisdom. “Our Father ... Who art in
heaven... hallowed be Thy name ... Thy kingdom come ... Thy will be done ... in earth as it is in
heaven.” It doesn’t require more than a few minutes to decide if any act to be performed
individually, or collectively is in accordance with the Will of God, or furthering the
machinations of the Devil.
If we intend to save the future generations, from the fate being prepared for them by the forces
of evil, we must take IMMEDIATE ACTION ... THERE IS NO TIME TO LOSE . The reader may well
ask : “But what action must we take ?”
That is a very good question. If the answer wasn’t provided there would be no justification for
the publication of this book. Far too many men spend a great deal of time damning this and
damning that. They are anti this and anti that. But very few speakers or writers who condemn
an idea, an organization, or a movement, offer practical solutions to the problems, or make
suggestions to bring to an end the evils exposed.
F IRST : We must as individuals recognize the spiritual issues involved. Once again the
Scriptures advise us how to accomplish this purpose. Ephesians 6th chapter 10th to 17th verses
tells us : “Brethren be strengthened in the Lord and in the whole of His power. Put on the
armour of God, that you may be able to stand against the wiles of the devil. For our wrestling
is not against flesh and blood, but against Principalities and the Powers, against the world
rulers of this darkness, against the spiritual forces of wickedness on high. Therefore take up the
armour of God that you may be able to resist the evil day, and stand in all things perfect. Stand
therefore, having girded your loins with TRUTH , and having put on the breast-plate of justice,
and having your feet shod with the readiness of the Gospel of peace, in all things taking up the
shield of Faith, with which you may be able to quench all the fiery darts of the most wicked
one. And take unto you the helmet of salvation, and the sword of the spirit, that is, THE WORD
OF GOD .”
S ECOND : We must take practical steps and use constitutional means to counteract the threat of
both international Communism and international capitalism, and any other subversive
ideologies which may try to destroy TRUE Christian democracy. In order to carry out the
mandate in the above Gospel we must do the following things :
A. Demand monetary reforms : Because selfishness and greed, and the desire for power, are
the roots from which all evil grows, it is only logical that constitutional means be instituted to
take away the wealth, and curb the powers, of the leader, of all atheistic-materialistic groups
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_18.html (9 of 18)5.4.2006 12:16:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
who, in the first place, usurped it from the governments of the people. This being the TRUTH the
tax-payers have a legal right to demand that their elected governments redress the wrongs
committed against them; put an end to all forms of usury; and reimburse their treasury
departments to the extent of the loans floated during the last century to fight wars fomented to
further the interests of those who loaned the money and charged interest on these loans. If this
advice is followed the proletariat will have restored true democracy mid the Soviet and Chinese
dictators would have no excuse to disguise their imperialistic ambitions under the cloak of anti-
capitalism.
B. Monetary controls : The electors must insist that the issue of money, and the control
thereof, be placed back in the hands of the government where it rightfully belongs. By
government is meant the toplevel executive body chosen from the elected representatives
because of their qualifications to conduct the affairs of the nation in an efficient and business-
like manner, basing their decisions on democratic justice and Christian charity.
C. Punitive action : The electorate can justifiably demand that heavy penalties be imposed on
all those found guilty of corruption and graft because these two evil practices are the principal
means used by the agents of all revolutionary organizations to subvert, or force, others into
doing their will. All subversive organizations must be outlawed and all people, proved to be
members, must be made liable to punishment provided by the law. Those who advocate the
violent overthrow of constitutional government do so in order that they may usurp wealth and
power without having to work for it. Their punishment should therefore consist of performing
manual labour and/or public services. Their hours should be extended 25 per cent beyond the
union limits, and their pay should be 25 per cent below the union rates. The period of their
detention should be decided by the way they improve from their negative attitude towards
society and religion.
D. Diplomatic negotiations : Because the agents of the international conspiracy always work
behind the scenes of government, and always use SECRET meetings and diplomacy to further
their own plans and ambitions, secret negotiation should not be allowed under any
circumstances. If government is to be “Of the people; by the people; for the people”; then the
people have every right to know every detail of what is going on.
E. Christian Crusade : Laymen of all Christian denominations should unite in the Name of God
to put an end to bigotry and misunderstanding which enables anti-Christian ideologies to keep
Christians divided and at logger-heads. The house divided within itself must fall. The Crusade
should be organized for the purpose of educating the public in regard to the methods need by
those who direct atheistic-materialistic ideologies. Special attention should be given to
interesting the youth of our nations in the movement in order that they may be protected from
the subversive actions of the agents of the conspirators. The Crusaders should be trained to take
a POSITIVE approach when dealing with those who have joined subversive organizations either
willingly or because of ignorance. To abuse, to knock, and condemn persons only increases
their resistance and makes them more anti-social.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_18.html (10 of 18)5.4.2006 12:16:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
By first gaining their confidence the Crusader is in position to prove to them that the heads of
all atheistic-materialistic ideologies only use others as “Pawns in the Game” to further their
secret plans and ambitions. Once a person is convinced he or she will be thrown into the
discard just as soon as the directors of their movement consider they have outgrown their
usefulness, this will hurt their pride and cause them to reflect upon the wisdom of their
behaviour. Having once created doubt in their minds it is then possible to convince them by
supplying them with suitable literature on the subject. It was to supply this need that Pawns In
The Game was published. A religious revival amongst the members of all Christian
denominations is essential in order to change men’s thinking in regard to the values and
importance they place on worldly possessions. The hearts of men must be turned towards love
of Almighty God. We must learn once again to take a real delight in rendering Him service and
in performing His Holy Will. The National Federation of Christian Laymen has been organized
to put this idea into action.
F. United Nations : Because the constitution of the United Nations comes up for revision this
year, possible changes may be recommended. It is important, therefore, that all those who
oppose internationalism in any form organize political pressure groups in all parties to urge that
the delegates of the Christian-democratic nations do not lend themselves in any way to
suggestions favouring the trial of a World Government, regardless of whether it is called a super-
nationalist government or disguised in any other way. Churchill’s suggestions for a United
States of Europe was only a move in the direction of internationalism. Only he can say whether
it was intended to help the Eastern Communists or the Western capitalists.
G. Illegal traffic and trade : Because the subversive 5th columns, and undergrounds, are
organized, hidden, and subsist in the underworlds of large cities, and because no revolutionary
effort can hope to succeed without the full co-operation of a well organized, properly trained,
fully equipped, and well disciplined 5th column, or underground organization, it is necessary
that public opinion be organized to demand that all those engaged in illegal traffic and trade, or
criminally connected with the underworld, shall be arrested and brought to trial regardless of
what their political affiliations may be, or what position they hold in society. The public must
be organized to give support to all honest police officers and law administrators. Public opinion
expressed on the floor of the Houses of Parliament must insist that the underworlds be CLEANED
up, and not just raided and scattered. The policy of raiding and scattering the underworld
characters has only resulted in creating a hundred dens of iniquity where only one existed
before. Those convicted should be treated as recommended in subsection ‘C’.
H. Publicity : Christian laymen must be organized to counteract the propaganda of those who
advocate internationalism and the atheisticmaterialistic ideologies. Local branches should be
organized to insist that subversive propaganda be eliminated from the press, the air, and T.V.
programmes. They should demand that time and space be made available so the Christian
democratic way of life may be presented to the people. It is unfortunately TRUE that it is several
centuries since Christian democracy functioned properly.
J. Defeatism : Every effort must be made to counteract the efforts of those who preach
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_18.html (11 of 18)5.4.2006 12:16:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
defeatism. They usually argue that there is nothing that can be done to correct the existing
conditions. They suggest that since the pending fate is inevitable it is no use worrying. The
attitude of the Defeatist is like that of the professional rapist who advises his intended victim
that, because her fate is inevitable, she might as well relax and enjoy it. Those who claim there
is nothing we can do to escape totalitarianism ignore the fact that God exists and is interested in
the destiny of man. People who get discouraged must be reminded that the only way they can
save their immortal souls is to keep on fighting against the Forces of Evil, thus giving service to
God. They must be made to realize that they won’t be judged according to their achievements
and victories, but solely on the merits of the effort they put into the Crusade.
K. Brotherly Love : Because God has provided mankind with all he requires for this earthly
existence there is no logical reason why some of his creatures should live in opulence while
others starve to death. The theories of the new economists should be tried out to devise better
methods for the more equitable distribution of the necessities of life. Once these have been
assured to all human beings it will be a comparatively simple matter to persuade those who have
too much to share it with those who have decidedly less and a greater need. To share what we
have with others in need provides the greatest happiness it is possible to enjoy on this earth. By
living in accordance with the plan of God, economic conditions would improve to such an
extent that the establishment of homes, and the raising of families, could be undertaken in
reasonable security. Conditions of ‘Fear’ and ‘Uncertainty’ would be abolished.
L. Military Preparedness : Military preparedness is absolutely necessary just as long as the
conditions exposed in this book are allowed to continue. Everyone who accepts the hospitality
of a country, and enjoys the privileges of citizenship, should be prepared to defend that country
from aggressors, be they external foes or the enemy within. The only justification for fighting a
war is to prevent subjugation by the enemy on the rational argument that as long as we have
Some resemblance of freedom left there is still hope that we can overcome the forces of evil and
re-establish true Christian democracy.
M. Internal Security : The best way to Strengthen the internal security of any nation is to build
up a strong and efficient Civil Defence organization. To permit of rapid development Civil
Defence should be made part and parcel of the national internal security, system. As such, it
should be a Federal project and responsibility. This suggestion is particularly applicable to
Canada because the Minister of Justice. supported by the Royal Canadian Mounted Police, is
charged with the responsibility for the nation’s internal security.
Civil Defence is the organizing and training of the civilian population into auxiliary units to
augment the regular departments which render public service during normal conditions. Civil
Defence workers are trained how, to protect themselves, and the communities in which they
live, in the event of attack by an enemy. Because our only potential enemies use their 5th
Column and underground organizations to overthrow the constituted government by
revolutionary action, and subjugate the population by means of terrorism, it stands to common
sense that Civil Defence should be organized as a counter-revolutionary organization. The Civil
Defence special police, and intelligence units, should therefore be trained under the supervision
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_18.html (12 of 18)5.4.2006 12:16:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
of the R.C.M.P. so they could co-operate with them to ensure our internal security during any
emergency.
N. Action. There is no time to lose : In reading this book you have faced the challenge and your
response to the action outlined, undertaken with a strong faith in God, will determine the future
of humanity and bring about the overthrow of the forces of evil which plot to destroy our
Christian democratic way of life. The task is not beyond our capabilities. We must remember
that the Devil’s important nucleus of evil in this world at the present time is centred in no more
than about three hundred master-minds.
O. Faith, Hope and Charity : We must never forget that the Christian religion is based on
Faith, Hope and Charity, while all atheistic ideologies are based on doubt, hatred, and despair.
Almighty God has permitted us to GRADUALLY solve many of the mysteries of NATURE in order
that we would use rather than abuse these extra-ordinary benefits. We can now use or misuse
atomic energy. If we allow it to be misused the powers of evil undoubtedly hill off one half the
human race and cripple most of the others. We can rest assured that amongst those who survive
will be the agents of the powers of evil.
Almighty God has provided the human race with all we need to live. He has provided for our
comfort and reasonable pleasures. It is our duty too see that all members of the human race
share equally in the bounties and blessing provided by Almighty God. There should never be a
time when the granaries of the western world are bursting at the seams, while the people of the
Far East are dying by the millions from starvation. We must share freely and generously with
others what we have above our own requirements, because it is certain we cannot take anything
with us when we die.
P. The Christian Crusade : It is suggested that ‘ THE CROSS AND THE FLAG ’ be the slogan for the
Christian Crusade. It is also suggested that the following anthem should be used to open or
close all public meetings held in connection with the crusade.
“THE CROSS AND THE FLAG”
“The Cross and The Flag our emblems shall be,
Our purpose in life to serve only Thee,
Thy Will shall be done ... Thy Kingdom shall come
On earth as in Heaven Eternally.”
1.
The powers of Satan
Our God may deny.
And claim there’s no heaven
For us when we die
All tyrants and despots
Our Faith may decry
Their torments and terrors
We’ll always defy.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_18.html (13 of 18)5.4.2006 12:16:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
2.
We’ll march into battle
Upholding Thy Name
No worldly enchantments
Our ‘Cause’ shall defame
No evil enslavements
Shall swerve from their goal
Thy militant Legions
Till they reach Thy Fold.
3.
What doth a man profit
To gain the whole world
By serving ’neath banners
Hell’s agents unfurled ?
We’ll hold to Thy promise.
“Hell shall not prevail.”
O Lord give us wisdom
Vile plots to curtail.
4.
Men seek greater riches
Use wealth to gain power.
But Lord, we all need Thee.
Life’s span’s but an hour.
Through darkness to daylight
Sustain us with grace.
We’ll fight on to glory,
We’ll run the Good Race. [2]
“The national Federation of Christian Laymen”
The National Federation of Christian Laymen is now being organized and a charter is being
applied for. Our purpose is to try and unite all existing Christian Laymen’s organizations to
combat all forms of atheistic materialism and internationalism. The N.F.C.L. will be kept
strictly non-partisan and non-denominational. It is not intended to interfere with the autonomy
of any existing Christian organizations. Our purpose is educational.
PAWNS IN THE GAME was published to find out how many citizens are interested in taking
constitutional action to end the international conspiracy as exposed in this book, and to take
legal action to break the economic stranglehold a few internationalists have obtained on the
Governments and peoples of the so called Free Nations by their practice of systematically
applied usury. The response has been remarkable and justified the printing of this edition.
It is suggested that interested persons organize branches of the N.F.C.L. in their cities and towns
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_18.html (14 of 18)5.4.2006 12:16:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
and farming communities. Each group should provide itself with a library chosen from the
books listed on another page. The material in the books will provide matter for thought and
subjects for discussion at study groups. When local branches have been organized it is intended
to send speakers, well qualified to explain the various angles of international affairs, to address
public meetings sponsored by the local branches of the N.F.C.L.
Our Policy
1. We advocate Christianity and oppose illuminism and atheistic-materialism. We hold out the
hand of friendship to ALL who worship God and oppose Satanism.
2. We support Nationalism and oppose Internationalism of any kind.
3. We advocate responsible private industry and oppose cartels and combines.
4. We advocate Loyalty to the Constitution and oppose all kinds of subversive activities.
5. We support lawful authority and oppose organized crime.
6. We advocate the practice of ethics in trade and commerce and oppose all forms of illegal
traffic and trade.
7. We recommend brotherly love amongst all God-fearing people and oppose bigotry in any
form.
8. We stand for Liberty and oppose licentiousness.
9. We stand for Freedom as opposed to Dictatorships and tyranny.
10. We advocate justice for all and favours for none.
11. We recommend that punishment should be made to fit the crime.
12. We advocate National Preparedness against internal and external foes.
13. We advocate active interest and participation in political, economic, health and educational
matters as opposed to apathy, indifference, and despair.
14. We work so that Almighty God’s plan for creation may be put into practice in this earth.
Join Our Crusade
The Federation of Christian Laymen is non-partisan and nondenominational. Our purpose is to
help people who have been deceived into joining a subversive movement by telling them the
TRUTH , and to inform others regarding their danger from those who plot, plan, finance, and
direct ALL phases of the international conspiracy. We hope to finance our work by selling the
literature we publish. If you agree with what we have to say then help us make the facts
known. Send copies of our publication to your elected representatives and tell them how you
wish them to act on your behalf. This is very important. Send copies to your friends and
acquaintances, and to people you feel should be informed about these all important matters.
Ask them to do the same. This is our only means of obtaining circulation as the TRUTHS we are
trying to make known are being given the ‘ SILENT TREATMENT ’ by the controlled press. We
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_18.html (15 of 18)5.4.2006 12:16:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
work to retain our national form of government; to protect the Christian religion, to uphold
private responsible enterprise; and to preserve our God-given rights and prerogatives.
Join Our crusade
TO : THE FEDERATION OF CHRISTIAN LAYMEN
Willowdale, Ontario, Canada.
c/o Willowdale Posit Office
Please accept my donation of $5.00 to aid in the educational work being done by the F.C.L. Send
me your monthly bulletin.
(Please print name and address in ink.)
Name ____________________________
Add. ----------------------------
City ____________________________
Prov ---------------------------
The F.C.L. is non-political, non-denominational. Our purpose is to enlighten people who have been
deceived into joining subversive movements by telling them THE TRUTH regarding God’s Plan for
Creation. We fight to retain our National autonomy, responsible private industry, and God-Given
Rights and Prerogatives.
LIST OF PUBLICATIONS
Pawns In The Game with index by William Guy Carr ........ $2.00
(Special discount on quantity orders). Cloth cover .... 3.00
The history of the World Revolutionary Movement. A story of international intrigue. Reveals and identifies the forces
of evil who use wars and revolutions to further their secret plans to establish a One World Government. Shocking but
educational.
The Red Fog Over America by William Guy Carr .......... 2.00
(Special discount on quantity orders). Cloth cover ....... 3.00
The story of how the international conspiracy was introduced into Canada and the United States and how it has been
developed during the past half century. This information will enable the readers to use their franchise intelligently.
THE ABOVE ARE TWO OF THE MOST AMAZING BOOKS EVER PUBLISHED.
The Devil’s Poison by William Guy Carr ............ .15
(The truth about the fluoridation conspiracy)
(Special discounts on quantity orders)
The Synagogue of Satan ................. .10
A handy pamphlet telling what the Scriptures say about this organization.
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_18.html (16 of 18)5.4.2006 12:16:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
The International Conspiracy .............. .10
A small handy pamphlet to pass on to others written to interest them in seeking further after the truth.
News Behind the News — 12 issues ......... 3.00
WHAT READERS HAVE SAID
The Very Rev. Monsgr. W.C. McGrath, Mamaronack, N.Y.
“Pawns In the Game is the most profound study of the International Conspiracy I have ever
seen. Such a book is bound has never before been written. I pray it may be read by millions of
the hapless Pawns while there is still time to avert disaster.”
Admiral Sir Barry Domville, KBE., C.B., C.M.G., R.N. Ret’d.
“I am sure the book, will do much good and make people use their idle brains. The general
effect of your books is bound to help in the fight against evil providing you can get circulation.”
(Admiral Domville was one of Britain’s greatest fighting men. He was at one time Director of
Naval Intelligence Service.)
Rev. Leslie Millin, Chinese Missionary
“I went through the Chinese revolution but failed to realize what it was all about until I read
your book. Now the ‘Causes’ which produced such ‘Effects’ are perfectly clear. I use material
in your books in my lectures.”
Order from : Publications Committee
Federation of Christian Laymen
c/o Willowdale Post Office
Willowdale, Ontario, Canada.
Please note. In Canada order C.O.D. or send money order allowing 25c for registration to ensure
delivery. From the United States and other countries please send money order and allow for
exchange and 25c towards postage.
Only by making the Truth known can we defeat the plot of those who use lies and deceits to further
their secret plans.

ROOSEVELT’S COMMUNIST MANIFESTO
By EMANUEL M. JOSEPHSON
incorporating
http://yamaguchy.netfirms.com/carr/pawns_18.html (17 of 18)5.4.2006 12:16:57William Carr, Pawns in the Game, ch 18
“The Science of Government Founded on Natural Law”
By C LINTON R OOSEVELT
Reprint of original edition, dated 1841, of IIluminist tract containing the first American publication of the plagarized
Communist teachings of Adam Weishaupt, a renegade Jesuit, and the substance of the Communist Manifesto. The
Roosevelt version appeared seven years before it also was plagiarized by another member of the Order of Illuminati,
Moses Mordecai Marx Levy, alias Heinrich Karl Marx, in Germany. It embodies a blueprint of the New Deal, its NRA
and other devices, that became the tradition of the Roosevelt Dynasty. It is the pattern of an American dictatorship
which they seek to impose. Their progress in imposing this dictatorship was slow until the present century. Now thanks
to the support of the Rockefeller dominated “Philanthropic” Foundation Trust it is moving to ultrarapid culmination.


Enter content here

Enter content here

Enter content here

Enter content here

Enter supporting content here